LONDON · ISLAMABAD · WARSAW · WISCONSIN
LexForm
People Expertise Insights About Get in Touch

Contact

+92-323-2999999

London · Islamabad · Warsaw · Wisconsin

WhatsApp

The Companies Act, 2017

Act XIX of 2017 · 401 pages

Document Viewer

PDF viewer not loading? Download the PDF directly or view on Pakistan Code.

Show full text157,348 words · 401 pages

Reproduced verbatim from the official Pakistan Code source PDF. Use Ctrl+F to search within the text below.

                                                                               Updated till 7.10.2022




                           THE COMPANIES ACT, 2017




                                         CONTENTS
                                             PART I

                                        PRELIMINARY

SECTIONS.

     1.     Short title, extent and commencement.

     2.     Definitions.

     3.     Application of Act to non-trading companies with purely provincial objects.

     4.     Act to override.

                                             PART II

                                 JURISDICTION OF COURT

     5.     Jurisdiction of the Court and creation of Benches.

     6.     Procedure of the Court and appeal.

                                            PART III

 POWERS AND FUNCTIONS OF THE SECURITIES AND EXCHANGE COMMISSION OF
                              PAKISTAN

     7.     Powers and functions of the Commission.

     8.     Reference by the Federal Government or Commission to the Court.




                                             Page 1 of 401
                                              PART IV

    INCORPORATION OF COMPANIES AND MATTERS INCIDENTAL THERETO

SECTIONS.

     9.     Obligation to register certain associations, partnerships as companies.

               PROVISIONS WITH RESPECT TO NAMES OF COMPANIES

     10.    Prohibition of certain names.

     11.    Rectification of name of a company.

     12.    Change of name by a company.

     13.    Registration of change of name and effect thereof.

     14.    Mode of forming a company.

    15.     Liability for carrying on business with less than three or, in the case of a private
            company, two members.

    GENERAL PROVISIONS WITH RESPECT TO REGISTRATION OF MEMORANDUM
                             AND ARTICLES

     16.    Registration of memorandum and articles.

     17.    Effect of memorandum and articles.

     18.    Effect of registration.

              COMMENCEMENT OF BUSINESS BY A PUBLIC COMPANY

     19.    Commencement of business by a public company.

     20.    Consequences of non-compliance of section 19.

                  REGISTERED OFFICE AND PUPLICATION OF NAME

     21.    Registered office of company.

     22.    Publication of name by a company.

     23.    Company to have common seal. (Omitted).




                                              Page 2 of 401
SECTIONS.

     24.    Penalties for non-publication of name.

     25.    Publication of authorised as well as paid-up capital.

     26.    Business and objects of a company.

                   MEMORANDUM AND ARTICLES OF ASSOCIATION

     27.    Memorandum of company limited by shares.

     28.    Memorandum of company limited by guarantee.

     29.    Memorandum of unlimited company.

     30.    Borrowing powers to be part of memorandum.

     31.    Memorandum to be printed, signed and dated.

     32.    Alteration of memorandum.

     33.    Powers of Commission when confirming alteration.

     34.    Exercise of discretion by Commission.

     35.    Effect of alteration in memorandum or articles.

                                 ARTICLES OF ASSOCIATION

     36.    Registration of articles.

     37.    Articles to be printed, signed and dated.

     38.    Alteration of articles.

     39.    Copies of memorandum and articles to be given to members.

     40.    Alteration of memorandum or articles to be noted in every copy.

     41.    Form of memorandum and articles.

     42.    Licencing of associations with charitable and not for profit objects.

     43.    Effect of revocation of licence.




                                               Page 3 of 401
SECTIONS.

     44.    Penalty.

     45.    Provision as to companies limited by guarantee.

 CONVERSION OF A COMPANY OF ANY CLASS INTO A COMPANY OF OTHER CLASS
                       AND RELATED MATTERS

     46.    Conversion of public company into private company and vice-versa.

     47.    Conversion of status of private company into a single-member company and vice-versa.

     48.    Conversion of status of unlimited company as limited company and vice-versa.

     49.    Conversion of a company limited by guarantee to a company limited by shares and vice-
            versa.

     50.    Issue of certificate and effects of conversion.

     51.    Power of unlimited company to provide for reserve share capital on conversion of status
            to a limited company.

     52.    Consequence of default in complying with conditions constituting a company a private
            company.

                  SERVICE AND AUTHENTICATION OF DOCUMENTS

     53.    Service of documents on a company.

     54.    Service of documents on Commission or the registrar.

     55.    Service of notice on a member.

     56.    Authentication of documents and proceedings.

                                              PART V

    PROSPECTUS, ALLOTMENT, ISSUE AND TRANSFER OF SHARES AND OTHER
                              SECURITIES

     57.    Prospectus.

     58.    Classes and kinds of share capital.




                                              Page 4 of 401
SECTIONS.

     59.    Variation of shareholders’ rights.

   SHARE CAPITAL AND NATURE, NUMBERING AND CERTIFICATE OF SHARES

     60.    Numbering of shares.

     60A.   Prohibition on issuance of bearer shares or bearer share warrants, etc.

     61.    Nature of shares or other securities.

     62.    Shares certificate to be evidence.

                   SPECIAL PROVISIONS AS TO DEBENTURES

     63.    Issue of debentures.

     64.    Payment of certain debts out of assets subject to floating charge in priority to claims under
            the charge.

     65.    Powers and liabilities of trustee.

     66.    Issue of securities and redeemable capital not based on interest.

                                           ALLOTMENT

     67.    Application for, and allotment of, shares and debentures.

     68.    Repayment of money received for shares not allotted.

     69.    Allotment of shares and other securities to be dealt in on securities exchange.

     70.    Return as to allotments.

                  CERTIFICATE OF SHARES AND OTHER SECURITIES

     71.    Limitation of time for issue of certificates.

     72.    Issuance of shares in book-entry form.

     73.    Issue of duplicate certificates.




                                                 Page 5 of 401
                    TRANSFER OF SHARES AND OTHER SECURITIES

SECTIONS.

     74.    Transfer of shares and other securities.

     75.    Board not to refuse transfer of shares.

     76.    Restriction on transfer of shares by the members of a private company.

     77.    Notice of refusal to transfer.

     78.    Transfer to successor-in-interest.

     79.    Transfer to nominee of a deceased member.

     80.    Appeal against refusal for registration of transfer.

                            COMMISSION, DISCOUNT AND PREMIUM

     81.    Application of premium received on issue of shares.

     82.    Power to issue shares at a discount.

     83.    Further issue of capital.

     83A.   Employees’ stock options.

                                        INVITATION OF DEPOSITS

     84.    Prohibition on acceptance of deposits from public.

     85.    Power of company to alter its share capital.

     86.    Prohibition of purchase by company or giving of loans by it for purchase of its shares.

     87.    Subsidiary company not to hold shares in its holding company.

     88.    Power of a company to purchase its own shares.

                                 REDUCTION OF SHARE CAPITAL

     89.    Reduction of share capital.

     90.    Objection by creditors and settlement of list of objecting creditors.

     91.    Power to dispense with consent of creditor on security being given for his debt.




                                                   Page 6 of 401
SECTIONS.

     92.    Order confirming reduction.

     93.    Registration of order of reduction.

     94.    Liability of members in respect of reduced shares.

     95.    Penalty on concealment of name of creditor.

     96.    Publication of reasons for reduction.

     97.    Increase and reduction of share capital in case of a company limited by guarantee having
            a share capital.

                         UNLIMITED LIABILITY OF DIRECTORS

     98.    Limited company may have directors with unlimited liability.

     99.    Special resolution of limited company making liability of directors unlimited.

                                              PART VI

                   REGISTRATION OF MORTGAGES, CHARGES, ETC.

     100.   Requirement to register a mortgage or charge.

     101.   Particulars in case of series of debentures entitling holders pari passu.

     102.   Register of charges to be kept by registrar.

     103.   Index to register of mortgages and charges.

     104.   Endorsement of certificate of registration on debenture or certificate of debenture stock.

     105.   Duty of company and right of interested party as regards registration.

     106.   Modification in the particulars of mortgage or charge.

     107.   Copy of instrument creating mortgage or charge to be kept at registered office.

     108.   Rectification of register of mortgages.

     109.   Company to report satisfaction of charge.




                                              Page 7 of 401
SECTIONS.

     110.   Power of registrar to make entries of satisfaction and release in absence of intimation
            from company.

     111.   Punishment for contravention.

     112.   Company’s register of mortgages and charges.

                                RECEIVERS AND MANAGERS

     113.   Registration of appointment of receiver or manager.

     114.   Filing of accounts of receiver or manager.

     115.   Disqualification for appointment as receiver or manager.

     116.   Application to Court.

     117.   Power of Court to fix remuneration of receiver or manager.

                                             PART VII

                         MANAGEMENT AND ADMINISTRATION

     118.   Members of a company.

                           REGISTER AND INDEX OF MEMBERS

     119.   Register of members.

     120.   Index of members.

     121.   Trust not to be entered on register.

     122.   Register of debenture-holders.

     123.   Index of debenture-holders.

     123A. Record of ultimate beneficial owner.

     124.   Rights to inspect and require copies.

     125.   Power to close register.




                                              Page 8 of 401
SECTIONS.

     126.   Power of Court to rectify register.

     127.   Punishment for fraudulent entries in and omission from register.

     128.   Notice to registrar of rectification of register.

     129.   Register to be evidence.

     130.   Annual return.

                               MEETINGS AND PROCEEDINGS

     131.   Statutory meeting of company.

     132.   Annual general meeting.

     133.   Calling of extra-ordinary general meeting.

     134.   Provisions as to meetings and votes.

     135.   Quorum of general meeting.

     136.   Power of the Court to declare the proceedings of a general meeting invalid.

     137.   Proxies.

     138.   Representation of body corporate or corporation at meetings.

     139.   Representation of Federal Government at meetings of companies.

     140.   Notice of resolution.

     141.   Voting to be by show of hands in first instance.

     142.   Declaration by chairman on a show of hands.

     143.   Demand for poll.

     144.   Poll through secret ballot.

     145.   Time of taking poll.

     146.   Resolutions passed at adjourned meeting.




                                               Page 9 of 401
SECTIONS.

     147.   Power of Commission to call meetings.

     148.   Punishment for default in complying with provisions of section 147.

     149.   Passing of resolution by the members through circulation.

     150.   Filing of resolution.

     151.   Records of resolutions and meetings.

     152.   Inspection of records of resolutions and meetings.

                    APPOINTMENT AND REMOVAL OF DIRECTORS

     153.   Ineligibility of certain persons to become director.

     154.   Minimum number of directors of a company.

     155.   Number of directorships.

     156.   Compliance with the Code of Corporate Governance.

     157.   First directors and their term.

     158.   Retirement of first and subsequent directors.

     159.   Procedure for election of directors.

     160.   Powers of the Court to declare election of directors invalid.

     161.   Term of office of directors.

     162.   Fresh election of directors.

     163.   Removal of directors.

     164.   Nominee directors.

     165.   Certain provisions not to apply to directors representing special interests.

     166.   Manner of selection of independent directors and maintenance of databank of
            independent directors.




                                              Page 10 of 401
SECTIONS.

     167.   Consent to act as director to be filed with company.

     168.   Validity of acts of directors.

     169.   Penalties.

     170.   Restriction on director’s remuneration.

     171.   Vacation of office by the directors.

             DISQUALIFICATION OF DIRECTORS BY THE COMMISSION

     172.   Disqualification orders.

     173.   Personal liability for company’s debts where person acts while disqualified.

     174.   Prohibition on assignment of office by directors.

     175.   Penalty for unqualified person acting as director.

     176.   Proceedings of the board.

     177.   Ineligibility of bankrupt to act as director.

     178.   Records of resolutions and meetings of board.

     179.   Passing of resolution by the directors through circulation.

     180.   Liabilities of directors and officers.

     181.   Protection to independent and non-executive directors.

     182.   Loans to directors: requirement of members’ approval.

     183.   Powers of board.

     184.   Prohibition regarding making of political contributions.

     185.   Prohibition regarding distribution of gifts.

                                        CHIEF EXECUTIVE

     186.   Appointment of first chief executive.




                                              Page 11 of 401
SECTIONS.

     187.   Appointment of subsequent chief executive.

     188.   Terms of appointment of chief executive.

     189.   Restriction on appointment of chief executive.

     190.   Removal of chief executive.

     191.   Chief executive not to engage in business competing with company’s business.

     192.   Chairman in a listed company.

     193.   Penalty.

     194.   Public company required to have secretary.

     195.   Listed company to have share registrar.

     196.   Bar on appointment of sole purchase, sales agents.

                   REGISTER OF DIRECTORS AND OTHER OFFICERS

     197.   Register of directors, officers.

     198.   Rights to inspect.

MISCELLANEOUS PROVISIONS REGARDING INVESTMENTS, CONTRACTS OFFICERS
            AND SHAREHOLDINGS, TRADING AND INTERESTS

     199.   Investments in associated companies and undertaking.

     200.   Investments of company to be held in its own name.

     201.   Method of contracting.

     202.   Execution of bills of exchange, promissory notes and deeds.

     203.   Company to have official seal for use abroad.

     204.   Duties of directors.

     205.   Disclosure of interest by director.




                                               Page 12 of 401
SECTIONS.

     206.   Interest of officers.

     207.   Interested director not to participate or vote in proceedings of board.

     208.   Related party transactions.

     209.   Register of contracts or arrangements in which directors are interested.

     210.   Contract of employment with directors.

     211.   Restriction on non-cash transactions involving directors.

     212.   Declaring a director to be lacking fiduciary behavior.

     213.   Disclosure to members of directors’ interest in contract appointing chief executive or
            secretary.

     214.   Contracts by agents of company in which company is undisclosed principal.

     215.   Liability for undesired activities of the shareholders.

     216.   Company deemed to be a public interest company in certain circumstances.

     217.   Securities and deposits.

     218.   Employees’ provident funds, contributory retirement funds and securities.

     219.   Penalty for contravention of section 217 or 218.

                                    ACCOUNTS OF COMPANIES

     220.   Books of account, to be kept by company.

     221.   Inspection of books of account by the Commission.

     222.   Default in compliance with provisions of section 221.

     223.   Financial Statements.

     224.   Classification of Companies.

     225.   Contents of Financial Statements.




                                              Page 13 of 401
SECTIONS.

     226.   Duty to prepare directors’ report and statement of compliance.

     227.   Contents of directors’ report and statement of compliance.

     228.   Consolidated financial statements.

     229.   Financial year of holding company and subsidiary

     230.   Rights of holding company’s representatives and members.

     231.   Financial Statements of modaraba company to include modaraba accounts.

     232.   Approval and authentication of Financial Statements.

     233.   Copy of Financial Statements to be forwarded to the registrar.

     234.   Filing of unaudited financial statements. (Omitted).

     235.   Right of member of a company to copies of the Financial Statements and the auditor’s
            report.

     236.   Penalty for improper issue, circulation or publication of Financial Statements.

     237.   Quarterly financial statements of listed companies.

     238.   Power of Commission to require submission of additional statements of accounts and
            reports.

     239.   Rights of debenture-holders to obtain copies of financial statements.

            DIVIDENDS AND MANNER AND TIME OF PAYMENT THEREOF

     240.   Certain restrictions on declaration of dividend.

     241.   Dividend to be paid only out of profits.

     242.   Dividend not to be paid except to registered shareholders.

     243.   Directors not to withhold declared dividend.

     244.   Unclaimed shares, modaraba certificates and dividend to vest with the Federal
            Government.




                                             Page 14 of 401
SECTIONS.

     245.   Establishment of Investor Education and Awareness Fund.

                                               AUDIT

     246.   Appointment, removal and fee of auditors.

     247.   Qualification and disqualification of auditors.

                             RIGHTS AND DUTIES OF AUDITOR

     248.   Auditors’ right to information.

     249.   Duties of auditor.

     250.   Audit of cost accounts.

     251.   Signature of auditor’s report.

     252.   Penalty for non-compliance with provisions by companies.

     253.   Penalty for non-compliance with provisions by auditors.

                POWER OF REGISTRAR TO CALL FOR INFORMATION

     254.   Power of registrar to call for information or explanation.

     255.   Seizure of documents by registrar, inspector or investigation officer.

                        INVESTIGATION AND RELATED MATTERS

     256.   Investigation into affairs of company.

     257.   Investigation of company’s affairs in other cases.

     258.   Serious Fraud Investigation.

     259.   Inspector to be a Court for certain purposes.

     260.   Power of inspectors to carry investigation into affairs of associated companies.

     261.   Duty of officers to assist the inspector.

     262.   Inspector’s report.




                                              Page 15 of 401
SECTIONS.

     263.   Prosecution.

     264.   Power of Commission to initiate action against management.

     265.   Effect of Court’s order.

     266.   No compensation to be payable for annulment or modification of contract.

     267.   No right to compensation for loss of office.

                      POWERS OF COURT HEARING APPLICATON

     268.   Application for winding up of company or an order under section 286.

     269.   Proceedings for recovery of damages or property.

     270.   Expenses of investigation.

     271.   Inspector’s report to be evidence.

     272.   Imposition of restrictions on shares and debentures and prohibition of transfer of shares
            or debentures in certain cases.

     273.   Saving for legal advisers and bankers.

     274.   Enquiries and investigation not to be affected by winding up.g

     275.   Application of sections 254 to 274 to liquidators and foreign companies.

                                            PART VIII

      MEDIATION, ARBITRATION, ARRANGEMENTS AND RECONSTRUCTION

     276.   Mediation and Conciliation Panel.

     277.   Resolution of disputes through mediation.

     278.   Power for companies to refer matter to arbitration.

     279.   Compromise with creditors and members.

     280.   Power of Commission to enforce compromises and arrangements.

     281.   Information as to compromises or arrangements with creditors and members.



                                             Page 16 of 401
SECTIONS.

     282.   Powers of Commission to facilitate reconstruction or amalgamation of companies.

     283.   Notice to be given to registrar for applications under section 279 and 282.

     284.   Amalgamation of wholly owned subsidiaries in holding company.

     285.   Power to acquire shares of members dissenting from scheme or contract.

                                              PART IX

               PREVENTION OF OPPRESSION AND MIS-MANAGEMENT

     286.   Application to Court.

     287.   Powers of Court under section 286.

     288.   Interim order.

     289.   Claim for damages inadmissible.

     290.   Application of certain sections to proceedings under this Part.

     291.   Management by Administrator.

     292.   Rehabilitation of sick public sector companies.

                                              PART X

                                           WINDING UP

                                          PRELIMINARY

     293.   Modes of winding up.

     294.   Liability as contributories of present and past members.

     295.   Liability of directors whose liability is unlimited.

     296.   Liability of Contributory having fully paid share.

     297.   Nature of liability of contributory.

     298.   Contributories in case of death of member.




                                              Page 17 of 401
SECTIONS.

     299.   Contributory in case of insolvency of member.

     300.   Contributories in case of winding up of a body corporate which is a member.

                                   WINDING UP BY COURT

     301.   Circumstances in which a company may be wound up by Court.

     302.   Company when deemed unable to pay its debts.

     303.   Transfer of proceedings to other Courts.

                                PETITION FOR WINDING UP

     304.   Provisions as to applications for winding up.

     305.   Right to present winding up petition where company is being wound up voluntarily or
            subject to Court’s supervision.

     306.   Commencement of winding up by Court.

                      POWERS OF COURT HEARING APPLICATION

     307.   Court may grant injunction.

     308.   Powers of Court on hearing petition.

     309.   Copy of winding up order to be filed with registrar.

     310.   Suits stayed on winding up order.

     311.   Court may require expeditious disposal of suits.

     312.   Effect of winding up order.

     313.   Power of Court to stay winding up.

     314.   Court may ascertain wishes of creditors or contributories.

                                  OFFICIAL LIQUIDATORS

     315.   Appointment of official liquidator.

     316.   Removal of official liquidator.



                                              Page 18 of 401
SECTIONS.

     317.   Remuneration of official liquidator.

     318.   Style and title of official liquidator.

     319.   General provisions as to liquidators.

     320.   Statement of affairs to be made to official liquidator.

     321.   Report by official liquidator.

     322.   Court directions on report of official liquidator.

     323.   Settlement of list of contributories and application of assets.

     324.   Custody of company’s properties.

     325.   Power to require delivery of property.

     326.   Power to summon persons suspected of having property of company.

     327.   Power to order public examination of promoters, directors.

     328.   Power to arrest absconding contributory.

     329.   Power to order payment of debts by contributory.

     330.   Power of Court to make calls.

     331.   Power to order payment into bank.

     332.   Regulation of account with Court.

     333.   Order on contributory conclusive evidence.

     334.   Power to exclude creditors not proving in time.

     335.   Adjustment of rights of contributories.

     336.   Power to order costs.

     337.   Powers and duties of official liquidator.

     338.   Liquidator to keep books containing proceedings of meetings.

     339.   Liquidator’s account.




                                                  Page 19 of 401
SECTIONS.

     340.   Exercise and control of liquidator’s powers.

     341.   Distribution by official liquidator.

     342.   Dissolution of company.

     343.   Saving of other proceedings.

                                 ENFORCEMENT OF ORDERS

     344.   Power to enforce orders.

     345.   Order made by any Court to be enforced by other Courts.

     346.   Mode of Dealing with Orders to be enforced by other Courts.

     347.   Circumstances in which company may be wound up voluntarily.

     348.   Commencement of voluntary winding up.

     349.   Effect of voluntary winding up on status of company.

     350.   Notice of resolution to wind up voluntarily.

     351.   Declaration of solvency in case of proposal to wind up voluntarily.

     352.   Distinction between members and creditors voluntary winding up.

     353.   Appointment of liquidator.

     354.   Power to fill vacancy in office of liquidator.

     355.   Notice by liquidator of his appointment.

     356.   Power of liquidator to accept shares as consideration for sale of property of company.

     357.   Duty of liquidator where company turns out to be insolvent.

     358.   Duty of liquidator to call general meetings.

     359.   Final meeting and dissolution.

     360.   Alternative provisions as to annual and final meetings in case of insolvency.




                                              Page 20 of 401
      PROVISIONS APPLICABLE TO CREDITORS’ VOLUNTARY WINDING UP

SECTIONS.

     361.    Provisions applicable to creditors’ voluntary winding up.

     362.    Meeting of creditors.

     363.    Appointment of liquidator.

     364.    Fixing of liquidator’s remuneration.

     365.    Cessation of boards’ powers.

     366.    Power to fill vacancy in office of liquidator.

     367.    Application of section 356 to a creditors voluntary winding up.

     368.    Duty of liquidator to call meeting of company and of creditors.

     369.    Final meeting and dissolution.

            PROVISIONS APPLICABLE TO EVERY VOLUNTARY WINDING UP

     370.    Distribution of property of company.

     371.    Application of sections 320 and 321 to voluntary winding up.

     372.    Powers and duties of liquidator in voluntary winding up.

     373.    Power of Court to appoint and remove liquidator in voluntary winding up.

     374.    Notice by liquidator of his appointment.

     375.    Arrangement when binding on company and creditors.

     376.    Power to apply to Court to have questions determined or powers exercised.

     377.    Application of liquidator to Court for public examination of promoters, directors.

     378.    Costs of voluntary winding up.

     379.    Saving for right of creditors and contributories.



                                              Page 21 of 401
SECTIONS.

     380.   Power of Court to adopt proceedings of voluntary winding up.

                  WINDING UP SUBJECT TO SUPERVISION OF COURT

     381.   Power to order winding up subject to supervision.

     382.   Effect of petition for winding up subject to supervision.

     383.   Court may have regard to the wishes of creditors and contributories.

     384.   Power to replace liquidator.

     385.   Effects of supervision order.

     386.   Appointment of voluntary liquidator as official liquidator in certain cases.

     387.   Status of companies being wound up.

                             PROOF AND RANKING OF CLAIMS

     388.   Debts of all description to be proved.

     389.   Application of insolvency rules in winding up of insolvent companies.

     390.   Preferential payments.

     391.   Avoidance of transfers.

     392.   Disclaimer of onerous property.

     EFFECT OF WINDING UP ON ANTECEDENT AND OTHER TRANSACTIONS

     393.   Fraudulent preference.

     394.   Liabilities and rights of certain fraudulently preferred persons.

     395.   Avoidance of certain attachments, executions.

     396.   Effect of floating charge.

            OFFENCES ANTECEDENT TO OR IN COURSE OF WINDING UP

     397.   Power of Court to assess damages against delinquent directors.




                                              Page 22 of 401
SECTIONS.

     398.   Liability for fraudulent conduct of business.

     399.   Liability under sections 397 and 398 to extend to partners or directors in firm or body
            corporate.

     400.   Penalty for fraud by officers of companies which have gone into liquidation.

     401.   Liability where proper accounts not kept.

     402.   Penalty for falsification of books.

     403.   Prosecution of delinquent directors.

     404.   Penalty for false evidence.

     405.   Penal Provisions.

                  SUPPLEMENTARY PROVISIONS AS TO WINDING UP

     406.   Liquidator to exercise certain powers subject to sanction.

     407.   Meetings to ascertain wishes of creditors or contributories.

     408.   Documents of company to be evidence.

     409.   Summary disposal of certain suits by liquidators.

     410.   Limitation.

     411.   Court fees.

     412.   Inspection of documents.

     413.   Disposal of books and papers of company.

     414.   Power of Court to declare dissolution of company void.

     415.   Information as to pending liquidations.

     416.   Payments by liquidator into bank.

     417.   Unclaimed dividends and undistributed assets to be paid to the account maintained under
            section 244.




                                             Page 23 of 401
SECTIONS.

     418.   Books of accounts and other proceedings to be kept by liquidators.

     419.   Application of provisions relating to audit.

     420.   Enforcement of duty of liquidator to make return.

     421.   Notification that a company is in liquidation.

     422.   Court or person before whom affidavit may be sworn.

     423.   Power to make rules.

     424.   Inactive Company.

     425.   Registrar may strike defunct company off register.

     426.   Easy exit of a defunct company.

                                              PART XI

                     WINDING UP OF UNREGISTERED COMPANIES

     427.   Meaning of “unregistered company”.

     428.   Winding up of unregistered companies.

     429.   Contributories in winding up of unregistered companies.

     430.   Power to stay or restrain proceedings.

     431.   Suits stayed on winding up order.

     432.   Directions as to property in certain cases.

     433.   Provisions of this part cumulative.

                                              PART XII

                    COMPANIES ESTABLISHED OUTSIDE PAKISTAN

   PROVISIONS AS TO ESTABLISHMENT OF PLACES OF BUSINESS IN PAKISTAN

     434.   Application of this Part to foreign companies.




                                              Page 24 of 401
SECTIONS.

     435.   Documents to be delivered to registrar by foreign companies.

     436.   Return to be delivered to registrar by foreign companies whose documents altered.

     437.   Accounts of foreign companies.

     438.   Certain obligations of foreign companies.

     439.   Power of the Commission to require information from foreign companies.

     440.   Service on foreign company.

     441.   Company’s failure to comply with this part not to affect its liability under contracts.

     442.   Provisions relating to names, inquiries to apply to foreign companies.

     443.   Intimation of ceasing to have place of business to be given.

     444.   Penalties.

     445.   Interpretation of provisions of this Part.

                                           PROSPECTUS

     446.   Issue of prospectus.

     447.   Restriction on canvassing for sale of securities.

     448.   Registration of charges.

     449.   Notice of appointment of receiver.

     450.   Notice of liquidation.

                                             PART XIII

                                             GENERAL

     451.   Certification of Shariah compliant companies and Shariah compliant securities.

     452.   Companies’ Global Register of Beneficial Ownership.

     453.   Prevention of offences relating to fraud, money laundering and terrorist financing.




                                              Page 25 of 401
SECTIONS.

     454.   Free Zone Company.

     455.   Filing of documents through intermediaries.

     456.   Acceptance of advances by real estate companies engaged in real estate projects.

     457.   Agriculture Promotion Companies.

     458.   Power to give exemptions by the Federal Government.

     458A. Measures for greater ease of doing business.

     459.   Quota for persons with disabilities in the public interest companies.

     460.   Valuation by registered valuers.

     461.   Security clearance of shareholder and director.

                            REGISTRATION OFFICES AND FEES

     462.   Registration offices.

     463.   Production of documents kept by registrar.

     464.   Registrar not to accept defective documents.

     465.   Special return to rectify the data.

     466.   Jurisdiction in the disputes relating to shareholding and directorship.

     467.   Approval of transfer of shares by the agents licenced by the Commission.

     468.   Acceptance of documents presented after prescribed time.

     469.   Fees.

     470.   Power to specify fees chargeable by companies.

     471.   Filing of documents electronically.

     472.   Destruction of physical record.

     473.   Supply of documents, information, notices to the members electronically.




                                               Page 26 of 401
SECTIONS.

     474.   Enforcing compliance with provisions of Act.

     475.   Power of Court trying offences under Act to direct compliance with the provisions.

                             LEGAL PROCEEDINGS, OFFENCES

     476.   Offences to be cognizable.

     477.   Complaint to the court by the Commission, registrar, member or creditor in case of
            certain offences.

     478.   Penalty to be imposed by the Commission.

     479.   Adjudication of offences and standard scale of penalty.

     480.   Appeal against order passed by officer of the Commission.

     481.   Appeal before the Appellate Bench.

     482.   Adjudication of offences involving imprisonment.

     483.   Powers of the Commission in relation to enquiries and proceedings.

     484.   Procedure for trial of a corporate body.

     485.   Recovery of penalty.

     486.   Prosecution of offences by the Commission.

     487.   Appeal against acquittal.

     488.   Payment of compensation in cases of frivolous or vexatious prosecution.

     489.   Application of fines or penalties.

     490.   Production and inspection of books where offence suspected.

     491.   Power to require limited company to give security for costs.

     492.   Power of Court to grant relief in certain cases.

     493.   Enforcement of orders of Court.




                                              Page 27 of 401
SECTIONS.

     494.   Enforcement of orders of Court by other courts.

     495.   Protection of acts done in good faith.

     496.   Penalty for false statement, falsification, forgery, fraud, deception.

     497.   Penalty for wrongful withholding of property.

     498.   Liability of directors for allotment of shares for inadequate consideration.

     499.   Punishment for non-compliance of directive of Court.

     500.   Penalty for carrying on ultra vires business.

     501.   Penalty for improper use of word “Limited”.

     502.   Penalty where no specific penalty is provided.

     503.   Power to accord approval subject to conditions.

     504.   Delegation of powers.

     505.   Application of Act to companies governed by special enactments.

                     SCHEDULES, TABLES, FORMS AND GENERAL RULES

     506.   Forms.

     507.   Power to alter schedules.

     508.   Power of the Federal Government to make rules.

     509.   Repeal and savings.

     510.   Power to issue directives, circulars, guidelines.

     511.   Power of the Commission to permit use of Urdu words of abbreviations.

     512.   Power to make regulations.

     513.   Validation of laws.

     514.   Former registration offices and registers continued.




                                              Page 28 of 401
SECTIONS.

     515.   Removal of difficulty.




                                      FIRST SCHEDULE


                                     SECOND SCHEDULE


                                      THIRD SCHEDULE


                                     FOURTH SCHEDULE


                                      FIFTH SCHEDULE


                                      SIXTH SCHEDULE


                                     SEVENTH SCHEDULE


                                     EIGHTH SCHEDULE




                                         Page 29 of 401
                              THE COMPANIES ACT, 2017
                                         ACT NO. XIX OF 2017

                                                                                         [30th May, 2017]

                                                   AN
                                                  ACT
       to reform and re-enact the law relating to companies and for matters connected therewith

       WHEREAS it is expedient to reform company law with the objective of facilitating corporatization
 and promoting development of corporate sector, encouraging use of technology and electronic means
 in conduct of business and regulation thereof, regulating corporate entities for protecting interests of
 shareholders, creditors, other stakeholders and general public, inculcating principles of good governance
 and safeguarding minority interests in corporate entities and providing an alternate mechanism for
 expeditious resolution of corporate disputes and matters arising out of or connected therewith;

 It is hereby enacted as follows:‒

                                                 PART I

                                            PRELIMINARY

       1.      Short title, extent and commencement.—(1) This Act may be called the Companies
Act, 2017.

       (2)     It extends to the whole of Pakistan.

        (3)     This Act shall come into force at once, except section 456 which shall come into force on
such date as the Federal Government or an authority or person authorized by it may, by notification in the
official Gazette, appoint.

       2.      Definitions.—(1) In this Act, unless there is anything repugnant in the subject or
context,—

       (1)     “advocate” shall have the same meaning as assigned to it in section 2 of the Legal
               Practitioners and Bar Councils Act, 1973 (XXXV of 1973);

       (2)     “alter” or “alteration” includes making of additions or omissions without substituting or
               destroying main scheme of the document;

       (3)     “articles” mean the articles of association of a company framed in accordance with the
               company law or this Act;




                                                Page 30 of 401
(4)   “associated companies” and “associated undertakings” mean any two or more
      companies or undertakings, or a company and an undertaking, interconnected with
      each other in the following manner, namely:—
      (a)    if a person who is owner or a partner or director of a company or undertaking, or
             who, directly or indirectly, holds or controls shares carrying not less than twenty
             percent of the voting power in such company or undertaking, is also the owner or
             partner or director of another company or undertaking, or directly or indirectly,
             holds or controls shares carrying not less than twenty percent of the voting power
             in that company or undertaking; or

      (b)     if the companies or undertakings are under common management or control or
              one is the subsidiary of another; or

      (c)     if the undertaking is a modaraba managed by the company;

      and a person who is the owner of or a partner or director in a company or undertaking or,
      who so holds or controls share carrying not less than ten percent of the voting power in a
      company or undertaking, shall be deemed to be an “associated person” of every such other
      person and of the person who is the owner of or a partner or director in such other company
      or undertaking, or who so holds or controls such shares in such company or undertaking:

      Provided that—

      (i)     shares shall be deemed to be owned, held or controlled by a person if they are
               owned, held or controlled by that person or by the spouse or minor children of the
               person;

      (ii)    directorship of a person or persons by virtue of nomination by concerned Minister-
              in-Charge of the Federal Government or as the case may be, a Provincial
              Government or a financial institution directly or indirectly owned or controlled by
              such Government or National Investment Trust; or

      (iii)   directorship of a person appointed as an “independent director”; or

      (iv)    shares owned by the National Investment Trust or a financial institution directly
              or indirectly owned or controlled by the Federal Government or a Provincial
              Government; or shares registered in the name of a central depository, where such
              shares are not beneficially owned by the central depository;

      shall not be taken into account for determining the status of a company, undertaking or
      person as an associated company, associated undertaking or associated person;

(5)   “authorised capital” or “nominal capital” means such capital as is authorised by the
      memorandum of a company to be the maximum amount of share capital of the company;




                                       Page 31 of 401
(6)   “banking company” means a banking company as defined in clause (c) of section 5 of
      the Banking Companies Ordinance, 1962 (LVII of 1962);

(7)   “beneficial ownership of shareholders or officer of a company” means ownership of
      securities beneficially owned, held or controlled by any officer or substantial
      shareholder directly or indirectly, either by—

      (a)    him or her;

      (b)    the wife or husband of an officer of a company, not being herself or himself an
             officer of the company;

      (c)    the minor son or daughter of an officer where “son” includes step-son and
             “daughter” includes step-daughter; and “minor” means a person under the age of
             eighteen years;

      (d)    in case of a company, where such officer or substantial shareholder is a
             shareholder, but to the extent of his proportionate shareholding in the company:

              Provided that “control” in relation to securities means the power to exercise a
      controlling influence over the voting power attached thereto:

             Provided further that in case the substantial shareholder is a non-natural person,
      only those securities will be treated beneficially owned by it, which are held in its name.

              Explanation.—For the purpose of this Act “substantial shareholder”, in
      relation to a company, means a person who has an interest in shares of a company-

      (a)    the nominal value of which is equal to or more than ten per cent of the issued share
             capital of the company; or

      (b)    which enables the person to exercise or control the exercise of ten per cent or
             more of the voting power at a general meeting of the company;

(8)   “board”, in relation to a company, means board of directors of the company;

(9)   “body corporate” or “corporation” includes—

      (a)    a company incorporated under this Act or company law; or

      (b)    a company incorporated outside Pakistan, or

      (c)    a statutory body declared as body corporate in the relevant statute, but does not
             include—




                                       Page 32 of 401
              (i)     a co-operative society registered under any law relating to cooperative
                      societies; or

              (ii)    any other entity, not being a company as defined in this Act or any other
                      law for the time being which the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the
                      Federal Government may, by notification, specify in this behalf;

(10)   “book and paper” and “book or paper” includes books of account, cost accounting
       records, deeds, vouchers, writings, documents, minutes and registers maintained on paper
       or in electronic form;

(11)   “books of account” include records maintained in respect of—

       (a)    all sums of money received and expended by a company and matters in relation
              to which the receipts and expenditure take place;

       (b)    all sales and purchases of goods and services by the company;

       (c)    all assets and liabilities of the company; and

       (d)    items of cost in respect of production, processing, manufacturing or mining
              activities;

(12)   “central depository” shall have the same meaning as assigned to it under the Securities
       Act, 2015 (III of 2015);

(13)   “chartered accountant” shall have the same meaning as assigned to it under the Chartered
       Accountants Ordinance, 1961 (X of 1961);

(14)   “chief executive”, in relation to a company means an individual who, subject to control
       and directions of the board, is entrusted with whole, or substantially whole, of the powers
       of management of affairs of the company and includes a director or any other person
       occupying the position of a chief executive, by whatever name called, and whether under
       a contract of service or otherwise;

(15)   “chief financial officer” means an individual appointed to perform such functions and
       duties as are customarily performed by a chief financial officer;

(16)   “Commission” shall have the same meaning as assigned to it under the Securities and
       Exchange Commission of Pakistan Act, 1997 (XLII of 1997);

(17)   “company” means a company formed and registered under this Act or the company law;

(18)   “company law” means the repealed Companies Act, 1913 (VII of 1913), Companies
       Ordinance, 1984(XLVII of 1984), Companies Ordinance, 2016 (VI of 2016) and also
       includes this Act unless the context provides otherwise;




                                        Page 33 of 401
(19)   “company limited by guarantee” means a company having the liability of its members
       limited by the memorandum to such amount as the members may respectively thereby
       undertake to contribute to the assets of the company in the event of its being wound up;

(20)   “company limited by shares” means a company; having the liability of its members
       limited by the memorandum to the extent of amount, if any, remaining unpaid on the
       shares respectively held by them;

(21)   “company secretary” means any individual appointed to perform secretarial and other
       duties customarily performed by a company secretary and declared as such, having such
       qualifications and experience, as may be specified;

(22)   “cost and management accountant” shall have the same meaning as assigned to it under
       the Cost and Management Accountants Act, 1966 (XIV of 1966);

(23)   “Court” means a Company Bench of a High Court having jurisdiction under this Act;

(24)   “debenture” includes debenture stock, bonds, term finance certificate or any other
       instrument of a company evidencing a debt, whether constituting a mortgage or charge
       on the assets of the company or not;

(25)   “director” includes any person occupying the position of a director, by whatever name
       called;

(26)   “document” includes any information or data recorded in any legible form or through
       use of modern electronic devices or techniques whatsoever, including books and papers,
       returns, requisitions, notices, certificates, deeds, forms, registers, prospectus,
       communications, financial statements or statement of accounts or records maintained by
       financial institutions in respect of its customers;

(27)   “e-service” means any service or means provided by the Commission for the lodging or
       filing of electronic documents;

(28)   “electronic document” includes documents in any electronic form and scanned images of
       physical documents;

(29)   “employees’ stock option” means the option given to the directors, officers or employees
       of a company or of its holding company or subsidiary company or companies, if any,
       which gives such directors, officers or employees, the right to purchase or to subscribe
       for shares of the company at a price to be determined in the manner as may be specified;

(30)   “expert” includes an engineer, a valuer, an actuary, a chartered accountant or a cost and
       management accountant and any other person who has the power or authority to issue a
       certificate in pursuance of any law for the time being in force or any other person notified
       as such by the Commission;




                                        Page 34 of 401
(31)   “financial institution” includes—

       (a)    any company whether incorporated within or outside Pakistan which transacts the
              business of banking or any associated or ancillary business in Pakistan through its
              branches within or outside Pakistan and includes a government savings bank, but
              excludes the State Bank of Pakistan;

       (b)    a modaraba or modaraba management company, leasing company, investment
              bank, venture capital company, financing company, asset management company
              and credit or investment institution, corporation or company; and

       (c)    any company authorised by law to carry on any similar business, as the
              concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government may by notification in
              the official Gazette, specify;

(32)   “financial period” in relation to a company or any other body corporate, means the period
       (other than financial year) in respect of which any financial statements thereof are required
       to be made pursuant to this Act;

(33)   “financial statements” in relation to a company, includes—

       (a)    a statement of financial position as at the end of the period;

       (b)    a statement of profit or loss and other comprehensive income or in the case of a
              company carrying on any activity not for profit, an income and expenditure
              statement for the period;
       (c)    a statement of changes in equity for the period;

       (d)    a statement of cash flows for the period;

       (e)    notes, comprising a summary of significant accounting policies and other
              explanatory information;

       (f)    comparative information in respect of the preceding period; and

       (g)    any other statement as may be prescribed;

(34)   “financial year” in relation to a company or any other body corporate, means the period
       in respect of which any financial statement of the company or the body corporate, as the
       case may be, laid before it in general meeting, is made up, whether that period is a year or
       not;

(35)   “foreign company” means any company or body corporate incorporated outside Pakistan,
       which—




                                        Page 35 of 401
       (a)    has a place of business or liaison office in Pakistan whether by itself or through an
              agent, physically or through electronic mode; or

       (b)    conducts any business activity in Pakistan in any other manner as may be specified;

(36)   “Government” includes Federal Government or, as the case may be, Provincial
       governments unless otherwise expressly provided in this Act;

(37)   “holding company”, means a company which is another company’s holding company if,
       but only if, that other company is its subsidiary;

(38) “listed company” means a public company, body corporate or any other entity whose
      securities are listed on securities exchange;

(39) “listed securities” means securities listed on the securities exchange;

(40)   “memorandum” means the memorandum of association of a company as originally
       framed or as altered from time to time in pursuance of company law or of this Act;

(41)   “modaraba” and “modaraba company” shall have the same meaning as assigned to
       it in the Modaraba Companies and Modaraba (Floatation and Control) Ordinance, 1980
       (XXXI of 1980);

(42)   “mortgage or charge” means an interest or lien created on the property or assets of
       a company or any of its undertakings or both as security;

(43)   “net worth” means the amount by which total assets exceed total liabilities;

(44)   “notification” means a notification published in the official Gazette and the expression
       “notify” shall be construed accordingly;

(45)   “officer” includes any director, chief executive, chief financial officer,           company
       secretary or other authorised officer of a company;

(46)   “ordinary resolution” means a resolution passed by a simple majority of such members
       of the company entitled to vote as are present in person or by proxy or exercise the option
       to vote through postal ballot, as provided in the articles or as may be specified, at a general
       meeting;

(47)   “postal ballot” means voting by post or through any electronic mode:

               Provided that voting through postal ballot shall be subject to the provision in
       the articles of association of a company, save as otherwise provided in this Act;

(48)   “prescribed” means prescribed by rules made by the Federal Government under this
       Act;




                                         Page 36 of 401
(49)   “private company” means a company which, by its articles-

       (a)          restricts the right to transfer its shares 1[, save as otherwise provided under this
                    Act];
       (b)          limits the number of its members to fifty not including persons who are in
                    the employment of the company; and

       (c)          prohibits any invitation to the public to subscribe for the shares, if any,
                    or debentures or redeemable capital of the company:

                          Provided that, where two or more persons hold one or more shares in a
                    company jointly, they shall, for the purposes of this definition, be treated as a single
                    member;

(50)   “promoter” means a person—

       (a)          who is named as a subscriber to the memorandum of association of a company;
                    or

       (b)          who has been named as such in a prospectus; or

       (c)          who has control over affairs of the company, directly or indirectly whether as
                    a shareholder, director or otherwise; or

       (d)          in accordance with whose advice, directions or instructions the board of the
                    company is accustomed to act:

       Provided that—

       (i)          nothing in sub-clause (d) shall apply to a person who is acting merely in a
                    professional capacity; and

       (ii)         nothing contained in sub-clause (d) shall apply to the Commission, registrar or any
                    authorised officer by virtue of enforcement or regulation of the provisions of this
                    Act or any rules, regulations, instructions, directions, orders thereof;

(51)   “prospectus” shall have the same meaning as assigned to it under the Securities Act, 2015
       (III of 2015);

(52)   “public company” means a company which is not a private company;

(53)   “public interest company” means a company which falls under the criteria as laid down
       in the Third Schedule to this Act or deemed to be such company under section 216;

       1
           Ins. by Act XXXVII of 2021, s.2




                                              Page 37 of 401
(54)   “public sector company” means a company, whether public or private, which is directly
       or indirectly controlled, beneficially owned or not less than fifty-one percent of the
       voting securities or voting power of which are held by the Government or any agency of
       the Government or a statutory body, or in respect of which the Government or any agency
       of the Government or a statutory body, has otherwise power to elect, nominate or appoint
       majority of its directors and includes a public sector association not for profit, licenced
       under section 42:

               Provided that nomination of directors by the Commission on the board of the
       securities exchange or any other entity or operation of any other law shall not make it a
       public sector company;

(55)   “redeemable capital” includes sukuk and other forms of finances obtained on the basis of
       participation term certificate (PTC), musharika certificate, term finance certificate (TFC)
       or any other security or obligation not based on interest, representing an instrument or a
       certificate of specified denomination, called the face value or nominal value, evidencing
       investment of the holder in the capital of the company other than share capital, on terms
       and conditions of the agreement for the issue of such instrument or certificate or such other
       certificate or instrument as the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government
       may, by notification in the official Gazette, specify for the purpose;

               Explanation.― “sukuk” represents redeemable investment in certificates of equal
       nominal value representing undivided shares in ownership of tangible assets of a particular
       project or specific investment activity, usufruct and services;

(56)   “register of companies” means the register of companies maintained by the registrar
       on paper or in any electronic form under this Act;

(57)   “registrar” means registrar, an additional registrar, an additional joint registrar, a joint
       registrar, a deputy registrar, an assistant registrar or such other officer as may be
       designated by the Commission, performing duties and functions under this Act;

(58)   “regulations” means the regulations made by the Commission under this Act;

(59)   “rules” means rules made by the Federal Government under this Act;

(60)   “scheduled bank” shall have the same meaning as assigned to it under the State Bank
       of Pakistan Act, 1956 (XXXIII of 1956);

(61)   “securities” include the securities as provided in sub-clauses (a) to (i) of clause (lii) of
       section 2 of the Securities Act, 2015 (III of 2015) whether listed or not;

(62)   “securities exchange” means a public company licenced by the Commission as a
       securities exchange under the Securities Act, 2015 (III of 2015);

(63)   “share” means a share in the share capital of a company;




                                        Page 38 of 401
(64)         “Shariah compliant company” means a company which is conducting its business
             according to the principles of Shariah;

(65)         “single member company” means a company which has only one member;

(66)         “special resolution” means a resolution which has been passed by a majority of not less
             than three-fourths of such members of the company entitled to vote as are present in person
             or by proxy or vote through postal ballot at a general meeting of which not less than twenty-
             one days’ notice specifying the intention to propose the resolution as a special resolution
             has been duly given:

                     Provided that if all the members entitled to attend and vote at any such meeting so
             agree, a resolution may be proposed and passed as a special resolution at a meeting
             of which less than twenty-one days notice has been given;

(67)         “specified” means specified through regulations made under this Act;
1
    [(67A) “startup company” means a company that—

             (a) is in existence for not more than ten years from the date of its incorporation or such
             other period or periods as may be specified;

             (b) has a turnover for any of the financial years since incorporation that is not greater than
             five hundred million rupees or such other amount or amounts as may be specified;

             (c) is working towards the innovation, development or improvement of products or
             processes or services or is a scalable business model with a high potential of employment
             generation or wealth creation or for such other purposes as may be specified; or

             (d) such other companies or classes of companies as may be notified by the Commission:

                   Provided that a company formed by the splitting up or reconstruction of an existing
             company shall not be considered as a startup company;]

(68)         “subsidiary company” or “subsidiary”, in relation to any other company (that is to say
             the holding company), means a company in which the holding company__

             (a)       controls the composition of the board; or

             (b)      exercises or controls more than one-half of its voting securities either by itself or
                       together with one or more of its subsidiary companies:

                               Provided that such class or classes of holding companies shall not have
                       layers of subsidiaries beyond such numbers, as may be notified,

1
    Ins. by Act XXXVII of 2021, s.2




                                                Page 39 of 401
                      Explanation.−For the purposes of this clause__

                      (i)     a company shall be deemed to be a subsidiary company of the holding company
                                 even if the control referred to in sub-clause (a) or sub-clause (b) is of
                                 another subsidiary company of the holding company;

                      (ii)      the composition of a company’s board shall be deemed to be controlled by
                                another company if that other company by exercise of power exercisable
                                by it at its discretion can appoint or remove all or a majority of the
                                directors;

                      (iii)     the expression “company” includes any body corporate;

                      (iv)      “layer” in relation to a holding company means its subsidiary or
                                subsidiaries;

       (69)   “Table” means Table in a Schedule to this Act;

       (70)   “turnover” means the aggregate value of sale, supply or distribution of goods
              or on account of services rendered, or both, net of discounts, if any, held by the company
              during a financial year;

       (71)   “unlimited company” means a company not having any limit on the liability of its
              members;

       (72)   “valuer” means a valuer registered with the Commission;

       (73)   “voting right” means the right of a member of a company to vote on any matter in a meeting
              of the company either present in person or through video-link or by proxy or by means of
              postal ballot:

                       Provided that attending of meeting through video-link shall be subject to such
              facility arranged by the company and in the manner as may be specified, save as otherwise
              provided in this Act; and

       (74)   “wholly owned subsidiary” a company shall be deemed to be a wholly owned subsidiary
              of another company or the statutory body if all its shares are owned by that other company
              or the statutory body.

       (2)     The words and expressions used and not defined in this Act but defined in the Securities
Act, 2015 (III of 2015) or the Securities and Exchange Commission of Pakistan Act, 1997(XLII of
1997) or the Central Depositories Act, 1997 (XIX of 1997) shall have the meanings respectively assigned
to them in those Acts.

      3.     Application of Act to non-trading companies with purely provincial objects.—(1)
The powers conferred by this Act on the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government or the




                                                 Page 40 of 401
Commission, in relation to companies which are not trading corporations and the objects of which are
confined to a single Province, may be exercised by the Minister-in-Charge of the Provincial Government:

       Provided that where the licence is issued by the Provincial Government or, as the case may be, its
concerned Minister-in-Charge, in exercise of the powers conferred by this section, the company shall
mention this fact in all its documents.

        (2)    A non-trading corporation formed under sub-section (1) extending its operational activities
beyond the territorial limits of its respective province shall be liable to a penalty of level 3 on the standard
scale and be wound up on the application by the Commission.

       4.      Act to override.—Save as otherwise expressly provided herein—

               (a)     the provisions of this Act shall have effect notwithstanding anything contained in
                       any other law or the memorandum or articles of a company or in any contract or
                       agreement executed by it or in any resolution passed by the company in general
                       meeting or by its directors, whether the same be registered, executed or passed, as
                       the case may be, before or after the coming into force of the said provisions; and

               (b)     any provision contained in the memorandum, articles, contract, agreement,
                       arrangement or resolution aforesaid shall, to the extent to which it is repugnant to
                       the aforesaid provisions of this Act, become, or be, void, as the case may be.

                                                   PART II

                                      JURISDICTION OF COURT

        5.      Jurisdiction of the Court and creation of Benches.—(1) The Court having
jurisdiction under this Act shall be the High Court having jurisdiction in the place at which the registered
office of the company is situate.

        (2)    Notwithstanding anything contained in any other law no civil court as provided in the Code
of Civil Procedure, 1908 (Act V of 1908) or any other court shall have jurisdiction to entertain any suit
or proceeding in respect of any matter which the Court is empowered to determine by or under this Act.

       (3)    For the purposes of jurisdiction to wind up companies, the expression “registered office”
means the place which has longest been the registered office of the company during the one hundred
and eighty days immediately preceding the presentation of the petition for winding up.

        (4)     There shall be, in each High Court, one or more benches on permanent basis, each to be
known as the Company Bench, to be constituted by the Chief Justice of the High Court to exercise the
jurisdiction vested in the High Court under this Act:

       Provided that Benches constituted under the Companies Ordinance, 1984 (XLVII of 1984), shall
continue to function accordingly unless otherwise notified by the respective Chief Justice of the High
Court:




                                                  Page 41 of 401
       Provided further that provisions of section 6 shall be effective from the date of notification by the
Chief Justice of the respective High Court within one hundred and eighty days from the date of the
commencement of this Act.

        (5)    There shall be a Registrar to be known as “Registrar of the Company Bench” duly
notified by the Chief Justice of the respective High Court who shall be assisted by such other officers as
may be assigned by the Chief Justice of the respective High Court.

         (6)    The Registrar of the Company Bench shall perform all the functions assigned to it under
this Act including all ministerial and administrative business of the Company Bench such as the receipt
of petitions, applications, written replies, issuance of notices, service of summons and such other functions
or duties as may be prescribed under section 423.

        (7)     The Chief Justice of the respective High Court, if deemed appropriate, may also
establish a secretariat in each Company Bench of the respective High Court in such form and manner to
provide secretarial support and to perform such functions as may be prescribed under section 423.

        6.      Procedure of the Court and appeal.—(1) Notwithstanding anything contained in
any other law for the time being in force all written submissions to the Court under this Act shall be
filed with the Registrar of the Company Bench.

       (2)          For the purposes of this Act, written submissions shall, inter alia, include-

                    (a)       a petition or application setting out a concise statement of facts, grounds and the
                              relief claimed;

                    (b)       a written reply with particulars of set off, if any;

                    (c)       an affidavit of facts by the petitioner or applicant, or respondent, as the case may
                              be, including affidavits, if required, of other persons in support of the case, duly
                              attested by the oath commissioner, or as may be provided under the rules;

                    (d)       any other relevant documents in possession of the petitioner or applicant or
                              respondent, as the case may be;

                    (e)       any application for discovery of documents 1[or any category or classes of
                              documents] or interim injunction, if required;

                    (f)       a list of any case law along with a summary of the same on which the petitioner or
                              applicant is placing reliance;

                    (g)       address for effecting service, mobile number, email and fax or any other mode
                              notified by the Court; and

                    (h)       any other document as may be required by the Registrar of the Company Bench.
       1
           Ins. by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.3.




                                                        Page 42 of 401
        (3)    Where any petition or application is filed under any provision of this Act, summons may
be issued by the Registrar of the Company Bench along with a copy of the petition or application and the
documents annexed therewith and the same shall be served on the respondent through the bailiff or
process- server of the Court, through registered post, acknowledgement due, by courier and by publication
in one English language and one Urdu language daily newspaper and, in addition, if so directed by the
Court through electronic modes, and the service duly effected through any one of the modes mentioned
under this sub-section shall be deemed to be valid service.

        Explanation.− “electronic modes” means service of summons on a party or other person by
electronic transmission through devices such as, facsimile, email, or in such other form or mode as may
be notified by the Court.

        (4)      The respondent shall file a written reply and particulars of set-off, if any, as set out in sub-
section (2) of this section with the concerned Registrar of the Company Bench within thirty days from the
date of first service through any of the modes as laid down in sub-section (3).

        (5)     Where the respondent fails to file the written reply within the time prescribed in sub-section
(4), a report shall be submitted by the Registrar of the Company Bench before the Court and the Court
may pass necessary orders to proceed exparte and announce the final order on the basis of the documents
available on record.

        (6)    The Registrar of the Company Bench, on completion of receipt of all written
submissions and after ensuring that all copies of such written submissions are duly supplied to the parties
as per procedure laid down by the Court, shall present the case file to the Court on a day fixed under
notice to the parties, within forty-five days of the first service of notices or such extended time as
may be granted by the Court.

       (7)     The Court after consulting the counsel of the parties shall fix a date and allocate time for
hearing of the case.

        (8)     No adjournment shall be granted once the Court has fixed a date of hearing under sub-
section (7) and it will be duty of the parties to ensure the presence of their respective counsel or in absence
of the counsel make alternate arrangements:

       Provided that only in exceptional circumstances beyond control of a party, the Court may grant
another opportunity of hearing subject to the payment of an amount of rupees ten thousand or such
higher amount as may be determined by the Court as costs to be paid to the Court.

        (9)    The Court shall treat affidavits, counter affidavits and other documents filed by the
parties to the proceedings as evidence and decide the matter on the basis of the documents and affidavits
placed before the Court, in a summary manner and pass final orders within the time stipulated in
sub-section (11).

        (10) In exceptional circumstances where the Court is of the view that any issue of facts requires
cross examination, the Court may order attendance of the relevant deponent or deponents for the purposes




                                                   Page 43 of 401
of cross examination by such opposing party or parties as the Court deems fit and for the purposes of this
section the affidavit filed by such deponent shall be considered as his examination-in-chief:

       Provided that—

               (i)     the Court may refer the matter to the Registrar of the Company Bench or any other
                       person for recording of cross examination of the deponent who shall complete
                       recording of cross examination within thirty days from the date of the order of the
                       Court, or such extended time as may be allowed by the Court which shall not be
                       more than fifteen days on payment of rupees ten thousand or such higher amount
                       as may be determined by the Court as costs payable to the Court and to submit a
                       report accordingly;

               (ii)    all questions and answers along with any objections raised by any party shall be
                       duly recorded in writing; and

               (iii)   the Registrar of the Company Bench shall have all the powers of the Civil Court
                       under the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (V of 1908) for the purposes of
                       execution of service and summoning of deponents and conducting cross
                       examination in accordance with the directions of the Court.

        (11) The petition presented before the Court shall be decided within a period of one hundred
and twenty days from the date of presentation of the case and for this purpose the Court may, if it is in
the interest of justice, conduct the proceedings on a day to day basis and if the Court deems fit it may
impose costs which may extend to one hundred thousand rupees per day or such higher amount as the
Court may determine against any party to the proceeding causing the delay.

       (12) The Court may, at any time, take notice of serious misstatements and material non-
disclosure of facts by any party to the proceedings and dismiss the petition or application or close the right
of defence of the respondent with costs of the proceedings and impose a fine which may extend to one
hundred thousand rupees whichever is higher and pass a final order.

        (13) Notwithstanding anything contained in this section, the Registrar of the Company Bench
shall place any application for interim relief including any interlocutory order before the Court for
adjudication immediately upon its filing.

        (14) Any person aggrieved by any judgment or final order of the Court passed in its original
jurisdiction under this Act may, within sixty days, file a petition for leave to appeal in the Supreme Court
of Pakistan:

       Provided that no appeal or petition shall lie against any interlocutory order of the Court.
         (15) Save as otherwise expressly provided under this Act, the provisions of the Qanun-e-
Shahadat (Order) 1984 (P.O. No. X of 1984) and the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (Act V of 1908)
shall not apply to the proceedings under this section except to such extent as the Court may determine in
its discretion.




                                                 Page 44 of 401
                                                        PART III

        POWERS AND FUNCTIONS OF THE SECURITIES AND EXCHANGE COMMISSION
                               OF PAKISTAN

      7.      Powers and functions of the Commission.—(1) The Commission shall exercise such
powers and perform such functions as are conferred on it by or under this Act.

       (2)     The powers and functions of the Commission under this Act shall be in addition to and
not in derogation to the powers and functions of the Commission under the Securities and Exchange
Commission of Pakistan Act, 1997 (XLII of 1997).

        8.     Reference by the Federal Government or Commission to the Court.—(1) Without
prejudice to the powers, jurisdiction and authority exercisable by the concerned Minister-in-Charge of
the Federal Government or any functionary thereof or the Commission under this Act, the concerned
Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government or the Commission, as the case may be, may make a
reference to the Court, on any question or matter which is considered to be of special significance
requiring orders, determination or action concerning affairs of a company or class of companies or any
action of any officer thereof.

      Explanation.—In this sub-section “officer” includes an auditor, liquidator or agent of the
company.

        (2) Where a reference is made to the Court under sub-section (1), the Court may make such order
as it may deem just and equitable under the circumstances.

                                                   PART IV

       INCORPORATION OF COMPANIES AND MATTERS INCIDENTAL THERETO

        9.      Obligation to register certain associations, partnerships as companies.—(1) No
association, partnership or entity consisting of more than twenty persons shall be formed for the purpose
of carrying on any business that has for its object the acquisition of gain by the association, partnership or
entity, or by the individual members thereof, unless it is registered as a company under this Act and any
violation of this section shall be an offence punishable under this section.

        (2)     A person guilty of an offence under this section shall be liable to a penalty not exceeding
of level 1 on the standard scale and also be personally liable for all the liabilities incurred in such business.

        (3)     Nothing in this section shall apply to—

                (a)     any society, body or association, other than a partnership, formed or incorporated
                        under any law for the time being in force in Pakistan; or

                (b)     a joint family carrying on joint family business; or




                                                   Page 45 of 401
              (c)     a partnership of two or more joint families where the total number of members of
                       such families, excluding the minor members, does not exceed twenty; or

              (d)      a partnership formed to carry on practice as lawyers, accountants or any other
                       profession where practice as a limited liability company is not permitted under the
                       relevant laws or regulations for such practice.

                    PROVISIONS WITH RESPECT TO NAMES OF COMPANIES

        10.   Prohibition of certain names.—(1) No company shall be registered by a name
which contains such word or expression, as may be notified by the Commission or in the opinion of the
registrar is—

              (a)      identical with or resemble or similar to the name of a company; or
              (b)      inappropriate; or
              (c)      undesirable; or
              (d)      deceptive; or
              (e)      designed to exploit or offend religious susceptibilities of the people; or
              (f)      any other ground as may be specified.

       (2) Except with prior approval in writing of the Commission, no company shall be registered
by a name which contains any word suggesting or calculated to suggest—

              (a)      the patronage of any past or present Pakistani or foreign head of state;

              (b)      any connection with the Federal Government or a Provincial Government or
                       any department or authority or statutory body of any such Government;

              (c)      any connection with any corporation set up by or under any Federal or Provincial
                       law;

              (d)      the patronage of, or any connection with, any foreign Government or any
                       international organisation;

              (e)      establishing a modaraba management company or to float a modaraba; or

              (f)      any other business requiring licence from the Commission.

        (3)    Whenever a question arises as to whether or not the name of a company is in violation of
the foregoing provisions of this section, decision of the Commission shall be final.




                                                 Page 46 of 401
       (4)    A person may make an application, in such form and manner and accompanied by such
fee as may be specified, to the registrar for reservation of a name set out in the application for a period
not exceeding sixty days.

         (5)     Where it is found that a name was reserved under sub-section (4), by furnishing false or
incorrect information, such reservation shall be cancelled and in case the company has been incorporated,
it shall be directed to change its name. The person making application under sub-section (4) shall be liable
to a penalty not exceeding level 1 on the standard scale.

      (6)      If the name applied for under sub-section (4) is refused by the registrar, the aggrieved person
may within thirty days of the order of refusal prefer an appeal to the Commission.

       (7)     An order of the Commission under sub-section (6) shall be final and shall not be called in
question before any court or other authority.

       11.     Rectification of name of a company.—(1) A company which, through inadvertence or
otherwise, is registered by a name in contravention of the provisions of section 10 or the name was
obtained by furnishing false or incorrect information—

               (a)     may, with approval of the registrar, change its name; and

               (b)     shall, if the registrar so directs, within thirty days of receipt of such direction,
                       change its name with approval of the registrar:

                       Provided that the registrar shall, before issuing a direction for change of the
               name, afford the company an opportunity to make representation against the proposed
               direction.

        (2)    If the company fails to report compliance with the direction issued under sub-section (1)
within the specified period, the registrar may enter on the register a new name for the company selected by
him, being a name under which the company may be registered under this Act and issue a certificate of
incorporation on change of name for the purpose of section 13.

       (3)     If a company makes default in complying with the direction issued by the registrar under
sub-section (1) or continue using previous name after the name has been changed by the registrar under
sub-section (2), shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

       12.     Change of name by a company.—A company may, by special resolution and with
approval of the registrar signified in writing, change its name:

        Provided that no approval under this section shall be required where the change in the name of a
company is only the addition thereto, or the omission therefrom, of the expression “(Private)” or “(SMC-
Private)” or “(Guarantee) Limited” or “Limited” or “Unlimited”, as the case may be, consequent upon the
conversion of the status of a company in accordance with the provisions of sections 46 to 49.




                                                 Page 47 of 401
        13.      Registration of change of name and effect thereof.—(1) Where a company changes its
name the registrar shall enter the new name on the register in place of the former name, and shall issue a
certificate of incorporation altered to meet the circumstances of the case and, on the issue of such a
certificate, the change of name shall be complete.

        (2)      Where a company changes its name it shall, for a period of ninety days from the date of
issue of a certificate by the registrar under sub-section (1), continue to mention its former name along with
its new name on the outside of every office or place in which its business is carried on and in every
document or notice referred to in section 22.

        (3)    The change of name shall not affect any rights or obligations of the company, or render
defective any legal proceedings by or against the company and any legal proceedings that might have
been continued or commenced against the company by its former name may be continued by or
commenced against the company by its new name.

       14.     Mode of forming a company.—(1) Any—

               (a)     three or more persons associated for any lawful purpose may, by subscribing their
                       names to a memorandum of association and complying with the requirements of
                       this Act in respect of registration, form a public company; or

               (b)     two or more persons so associated may in the like manner form a private company;
                       or
               (c)     one person may form a single member company by complying with the
                       requirements in respect of registration of a private company and such other
                       requirement as may be specified. The subscriber to the memorandum shall
                       nominate a person who in the event of death of the sole member shall be responsible
                       to—

                       (i)     transfer the shares to the legal heirs of the deceased subject to succession
                               to be determined under the Islamic law of inheritance and in case of a non-
                               Muslim members, as per their respective law; and

                       (ii)    manage the affairs of the company as a trustee, till such time the title of
                               shares are transferred:

                              Provided that where transfer by virtue of this sub-section is made to more
                       than one legal heir, the company shall cease to be a single member company and
                       comply with the provisions of section 47.

         (2)   A company formed under this section may be a company with or without limited liability,
that is to say—
                   (a)    a company limited by shares; or
                     (b)      a company limited by guarantee; or

                     (c)      an unlimited company.



                                                 Page 48 of 401
        15. Liability for carrying on business with less than three or, in the case of a private
company, two members.—If at any time the number of members of a company is reduced, in the case
of a private company other than a single member company, below two or in the case of any other
company, below three and the company carries on business for more than one hundred and eighty days
while the number is so reduced, every person who is a member of the company during the time that it
so carries on business after those one hundred and eighty days and is cognizant of the fact that it is
carrying on business with fewer than two members or three members, as the case may be, shall be severally
liable for payment of whole debts of the company contracted during that time and may be sued therefor
without joinder in the suit of any other member.


GENERAL PROVISIONS WITH RESPECT TO REGISTRATION OF MEMORANDUM AND
                             ARTICLES

        16.    Registration of memorandum and articles.—(1) There shall be filed with the registrar
an application on the specified form containing the following information and documents for incorporation
of a company, namely:—

               (a)     a declaration on the specified form, by an authorized intermediary or by a person
                       named in the articles as a director, of compliance with all or any of the requirements
                       of this Act and the rules and regulations made thereunder in respect of registration
                       and matters precedent or incidental thereto;
               (b)     memorandum of association of the proposed company signed by all subscribers,
                       duly witnessed and dated;

               (c)     there may, in the case of a company limited by shares and there shall, in the case of
                       a company limited by guarantee or an unlimited company, be the articles of
                       association signed by the subscribers duly witnessed and dated; and
               (d)     an address for correspondence till its registered office is established and notified.

       (2)     Where the registrar is of the opinion that any document or information filed with
him in connection with the incorporation of the company contains any matter contrary to law or does
not otherwise comply with the requirements of law or is not complete owing to any defect, error or
omission or is not properly authenticated, the registrar may either require the company to file a revised
document or remove the defects or deficiencies within the specified period.

       (3)     Where the applicant fails under sub-section (2) to remove the deficiencies conveyed within
the specified period, the registrar may refuse registration of the company.

        (4)    If the registrar is satisfied that all the requirements of this Act and the rules or regulations
made thereunder have been complied with, he shall register the memorandum and other documents
delivered to him.




                                                  Page 49 of 401
       (5)    On registration of the memorandum of a company, the registrar shall issue a certificate that
the company is incorporated.

       (6)          The certificate of incorporation shall state—

                    (a)       the name and registration number of the company;

                    (b)       the date of its incorporation;

                    (c)       whether it is a private or a public company;

                    (d)       whether it is a limited or unlimited company; and

                    (e)       if it is limited, whether it is limited by shares or limited by guarantee.

        (7)     The certificate under sub-section (5) shall be signed by the registrar or authenticated by
the registrar’s official seal.

       (8)     The certificate under sub-section (5) shall be conclusive evidence that the requirements of
this Act as to registration have been complied with and that the company is duly registered under this
Act.

        (9)   If registration of the memorandum is refused, the subscribers of the memorandum or any
one of them authorised by them in writing may, within thirty days of the order of refusal, prefer an appeal
to the Commission.

       (10) An order of the Commission under sub-section (9) shall be final and shall not be called in
question before any court or other authority.

        17.     Effect of memorandum and articles.—(1) The memorandum and articles shall, when
registered, bind the company and the members thereof to the same extent as if they respectively had
been signed by each member and contained a covenant on the part of each member, his heirs and legal
representatives, to observe and be bound by all the provisions of the memorandum and of the articles,
subject to the provisions of this Act.
       1
        [(2) All moneys payable by a subscriber in pursuance of his undertaking in the memorandum
of association against the shares subscribed shall be a debt due from him and be payable in such time,
manner and condition as may be notified by the Commission.]

       1
           [(3)*              *                     *                    *          *   *             *]

        (4)     Any violation of this section 1[direction given by the registrar] shall be an offence liable
to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.
       1
           Subs. Omitted and Ins. by Act No.XXXVII of 2021, s.4.




                                                                   Page 50 of 401
       18.     Effect of registration.—The registration of the company has the following effects, as
from the date of incorporation—

                 (a)        the subscribers to the memorandum, together with such other persons as may
                            from time to time become members of the company, are a body corporate by
                            the name stated in the certificate of incorporation;

                 (b)        the body corporate is capable of exercising all the functions of an incorporated
                            1
                              [company and having perpetual succession];

                 (c)        the status and registered office of the company are as stated in, or in connection
                            with, the application for registration;

                 (d)        in case of a company having share capital, the subscribers to the memorandum
                            become holders of the initial shares; and

                 (e)        the persons named in the articles of association as proposed directors, are deemed
                            to have been appointed to that office.

                     COMMENCEMENT OF BUSINESS BY A PUBLIC COMPANY

         19.     Commencement of business by a public company.—(1) A public company shall not
start its operations or exercise any borrowing powers unless—

                 (a)        shares held subject to payment of the whole amount thereof in cash have been
                            allotted to an amount not less in the whole than the minimum subscription and the
                            money has been received by the company;

                 (b)        every director of the company has paid to the company full amount on each of the
                            shares taken or contracted to be taken by him and for which he is liable to pay in
                            cash;

                 (c)        no money is or may become liable to be repaid to applicants for any shares which
                            have been offered for public subscription;

                 (d)        there has been filed with the registrar a duly verified declaration by the chief
                            executive or one of the directors and the secretary in the specified form that the
                            aforesaid conditions have been complied with; and

                 (e)        in the case of a company which has not issued a prospectus inviting the public to
                            subscribe for its shares, there has been filed with the registrar a statement in lieu
                            of prospectus as per the Second Schedule annexed to this Act.



       1 Subs. by Act XXXVII of 2021, s.5.




                                                     Page 51 of 401
               Explanation.— “minimum subscription” means the amount, if any, fixed by the
       memorandum or articles of association as minimum subscription upon which the directors may
       proceed to allotment or if no amount is so fixed and specified, the whole amount of the share
       capital other than that issued or agreed to be issued as paid up otherwise than in cash.

       (2)     The registrar shall, on filing of a duly verified declaration in accordance with the
provisions of sub-section (l) and after making such enquiries as he may deem fit to satisfy himself that all
the requirements of this Act have been complied with in respect of the commencement of business and
matters precedent and incidental thereto, accept and register all the relevant documents.

       (3)     The acceptance and registration of documents under sub-section (2) shall be a conclusive
evidence that the company is entitled to start its operations and exercise any borrowing powers.

       (4)     Nothing in this section shall apply—

               (a)     to a company converted from private to a public;

               (b)     to a company limited by guarantee and not having a share capital.

       20.     Consequences of non-compliance of section 19.—(1) If any company starts its business
operations or exercises borrowing powers in contravention of section 19, every officer or other person who
is responsible for contravention shall without prejudice to other liabilities be liable to a penalty not
exceeding level 2 on the standard scale.

         (2)    Any contract made by a company before the date at which it is entitled to commence
business shall be provisional only and shall not be binding on the company until that date and on that date
it shall become binding.

                     REGISTERED OFFICE AND PUBLICATION OF NAME

        21.     Registered office of company.—(1) A company shall have a registered office to which all
communications and notices shall be addressed and within a period of thirty days of its incorporation,
notify to the registrar in the specified manner.

        (2)    Notice of any change in situation of the registered office shall be given to the registrar in a
specified form within a period of fifteen days after the date of change:

       Provided that the change of registered office of a company from—

               (a)     one city in a Province to another; or

               (b)     a city to another in any part of Pakistan not forming part of a Province;

shall require approval of general meeting through special resolution.




                                                 Page 52 of 401
        (3)     If a company fails to comply with the requirements of sub-section (1) or (2), the company
and its every officer who is responsible for such non- compliance shall be liable to a penalty not exceeding
of level 1 on the standard scale.

       22.          Publication of name by a company.—Every company shall—

                    (a)        display in a conspicuous position, in letters easily legible in English or Urdu
                               characters its name and incorporation number outside the registered office and
                               every office or the place in which its business is carried on;

                    (b)        display a certified copy of certificate of incorporation at every place of business of
                               the company;

                    (c)        get its name, address of its registered office, telephone number, fax number, e-mail
                               and website addresses, if any, printed on letter-head and all its documents, notices
                               and other official publications; and

                    (d)        have its name mentioned in legible English or Urdu characters, in all bills of
                               exchange, promissory notes, endorsements, cheques and orders for money or goods
                               purporting to be signed by or on behalf of the company and in all bills of parcels,
                               invoices, receipts and letters of credit of the company.
       1
           [23. *              *                      *         *            *               *               *]

        24.   Penalties for non-publication of name.—(l) If a company does not display its name in
the manner provided for by this Act, it shall be liable to a penalty not exceeding level 1 on the standard
scale and every officer of the company who authorises or permits the default shall be liable to the like
penalty.

        (2)     If any officer of a limited company issues or authorises the issue of any bill-head, letter
paper, document, notice or other official publication of the company, or signs or authorises to be signed
on behalf of the company any bill of exchange, promissory note, endorsement, cheque or order for money
or goods, or issues or authorises to be issued any bill of parcels, invoice, receipt or letter of credit of the
company, wherein its name is not mentioned in the manner aforesaid, he shall be liable to a penalty
not exceeding of level 1 on the standard scale and shall further be personally liable to the holder of any
such bill of exchange, promissory note or order for money or goods, for the amount thereof unless the
same is duly paid by the company.

         25.   Publication of authorised as well as paid-up capital.—(1) Where any notice,
advertisement or other official publication of a company contains a statement of amount of authorised
capital of the company, such notice, advertisement or other official publication shall also contain a
statement in an equally prominent position and in equally conspicuous characters of amount of the paid up
capital.

       1
           Omitted. by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.6.




                                                          Page 53 of 401
        (2)     Any company which makes default in complying with the requirements of sub-section (1)
and every officer of the company who is party to the default shall be liable to a penalty not exceeding of
level 1 on the standard scale.

        26.    Business and objects of a company.—(1) A company may carry on or undertake any
lawful business or activity and do any act or enter into any transaction being incidental and ancillary
thereto which is necessary in attaining its business activities:

       Provided that—

               (i)    the principal line of business of the company shall be mentioned in the
                      memorandum of association of the company which shall always commensurate
                      with name of the company; and

               (ii)   any change in the principal line of business shall be reported to the registrar within
                      thirty days from the date of change, on the form as may be specified and registrar
                      may give direction of change of name if it is in violation of this section.

              Explanation.— “principal line of business” means the business in which substantial
       assets are held or likely to be held or substantial revenue is earned or likely to be earned by
       a company, whichever is higher.

       (2)     A company shall not engage in a business which is—

               (a)    prohibited by any law for the time being in force in Pakistan; or

               (b)    restricted by any law, rules or regulations, unless necessary licence, registration,
                      permission or approval has been obtained or compliance with any other condition
                      has been made:

               Provided nothing in sub-section (1) shall be applicable to the extent of such companies.

                      MEMORANDUM AND ARTICLES OF ASSOCIATION

       27.     Memorandum of company limited by shares.—In the case of a company limited by
shares__

       (A)     the memorandum shall state—

               (i)    the name of the company with the word “Limited” as last word of the name in the
                      case of a public limited company, the parenthesis and words “(Private) Limited” as
                      last words of the name in the case of a private limited company, and the parenthesis
                      and words “(SMC-Private) Limited” as last words of the name in the case of a
                      single member company;




                                                Page 54 of 401
            (ii)    the Province or the part of Pakistan not forming part of a Province, as the case may
                    be, in which the registered office of the company is to be situate;

            (iii)   principal line of business: Provided that—

                    (a)    the existing companies shall continue with their existing memorandum of
                           association and the object stated at serial number 1 of the object clause
                           shall be treated as the principal line of business;

                    (b)    if the object stated at serial number 1 of the object clause is not the principal
                            line of business of the company, it shall be required to intimate to the
                            registrar their principal line of business within such time from
                            commencement of this Act and in the form as may be specified. A revised
                            copy of the memorandum of association indicating therein its principal
                            business at serial number 1 of the object clause shall also be furnished to the
                            registrar; and

                    (c)    the existing companies or the companies to be formed to carry on or engage
                           in any business which is subject to a licence or registration, permission or
                           approval shall mention the businesses as required under the respective law
                           and the rules and regulations made thereunder;

            (iv)    an undertaking as may be specified;

            (v)     that the liability of the members is limited; and

            (vi)    the amount of share capital with which the company proposes to be registered and
                    the division thereof into shares of a fixed amount;

      (B)   no subscriber of the memorandum shall take less than one share; and

      (C)   each subscriber of the memorandum shall write opposite to his name the number of shares
            he agrees to take.

        28. Memorandum of company limited by guarantee.—(1) In the case of a company
limited by guarantee the memorandum shall state—

            (a)     the name of the company with the parenthesis and words “(Guarantee)
                    Limited” as last words of its name;

            (b)     the Province or the part of Pakistan not forming part of a Province, as the case
                    may be, in which the registered office of the company is to be situate;

            (c)     principal line of business:

            Provided that—




                                              Page 55 of 401
                      (i)     the existing companies shall continue with their existing
                              memorandum of association and the object stated at serial number 1 of the
                              object clause shall be treated as the principal line of business;

                      (ii)    if the object stated at serial number 1 of the object clause is not the principal
                              line of business of the company, it shall be required to intimate to the
                              registrar their principal line of business within such time from the
                              commencement of this Act and in the form as may be specified. A revised
                              copy of the memorandum of association indicating therein its principal
                              business at serial number 1 of the object clause shall also be furnished to
                              the registrar; and

                      (iii)   the existing companies or the companies to be formed to carry on or engage
                              in any business which is subject to a licence or registration, permission or
                              approval shall mention the businesses as required under the respective law;

              (d)     an undertaking as may be specified;

              (e)     that the liability of the members is limited; and

              (f)     such amount as may be required, not exceeding a specified amount that each
                      member undertakes to contribute to the assets of the company in the event of its
                      being wound up while he is a member or within one year afterwards for payment
                      of the debts and liabilities of the company contracted before he ceases to be a
                      member and of the costs, charges and expenses of winding up and for adjustment of
                      rights of the contributories among themselves.

        (2)    If the company has a share capital, the memorandum shall also state the amount of share
capital with which the company proposes to be registered and the division thereof into shares of a fixed
amount and the number of shares taken by each subscriber.

     29.    Memorandum of unlimited company.—In the case of an unlimited company the
memorandum shall state—

              (a)     the name of the company with the word “Unlimited” as last words of its name;

              (b)     the Province or the part of Pakistan not forming part of a Province, as the case may
                      be, in which registered office of the company is to be situate;

              (c)     principal line of business:
                              Provided that—
                      (i)     the existing companies shall continue with their existing memorandum
                              of association and the object stated at serial number 1 of the object clause
                              shall be treated as the principal line of business;




                                                Page 56 of 401
                            (ii)       if the object stated at serial number 1 of the object clause is not the principal
                                       line of business of the company, it shall be required to intimate to the
                                       registrar their principal line of business within such time from the
                                       commencement of this Act and in the form as may be specified. A revised
                                       copy of the memorandum of association indicating therein its principal
                                       business at serial number 1 of the object clause shall also be furnished to
                                       the registrar; and

                            (iii)      the existing companies or the companies to be formed to carry on or engage
                                       in any business which is subject to a licence or registration, permission or
                                       approval shall mention the businesses as required under the respective law;
                                       and

                 (d)        an undertaking as may be specified;

                 (e)        that the liability of the members is unlimited.

        (2)   If the company has a share capital, the memorandum shall also state the amount of share
capital with which the company proposes to be registered and the number of shares taken by each
subscriber.

        30.     Borrowing powers to be part of memorandum.—Notwithstanding anything contained
in this Act or in any other law for the time being in force or the memorandum and articles, the
memorandum and articles of a company shall be deemed to include and always to have included the power
to enter into any arrangement for obtaining loans, advances, finances or credit, as defined in the Banking
Companies Ordinance, 1962 (LVII of 1962) and to issue other securities not based on interest for raising
resources from a scheduled bank, a financial institution or general public.

       31.       Memorandum to be printed, signed and dated.—The memorandum shall be—

                 (a)        printed in the manner generally acceptable;

                 (b)        divided into paragraphs numbered consecutively;

                 (c)        signed by each subscriber, who shall add his present name in full, his occupation
                            1
                              [, nationality,] usual residential address and such other particulars as may be
                            specified, in the presence of a witness who shall attest the signature and shall
                            likewise add his particulars; and

                 (d)        dated.

       32.     Alteration of memorandum.—(1) Subject to the provisions of this Act, a company may
by special resolution alter the provisions of its memorandum so as to—

                 (a)        change the place of its registered office from.—
       1 Subs. by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.7.




                                                         Page 57 of 401
                       (i)     one Province to another Province or Islamabad Capital Territory
                               and vice versa; or

                       (ii)    one Province or Islamabad Capital Territory to a part of Pakistan not
                               forming part of a Province and vice versa; or

               (b)     change its principal line of business; or

               (c)     adopt any business activity or any change therein which is subject to
                       licence, registration, permission or approval under any law.

     (2)    The alteration shall not take effect until and except in so far as it is confirmed by the
Commission on petition:

       Provided that an alteration so as to change its principal line of business shall not require
confirmation by the Commission.

       (3)   A copy of the order confirming the alteration duly certified by an authorised officer of the
Commission shall be forwarded to the company and to the registrar within seven days from the date of the
order.

        (4)     A copy of the memorandum of association as altered pursuant to the order under this section
shall within thirty days from the date of the order be filed by the company with the registrar, who shall
register the same and issue a certificate which shall be conclusive evidence that all the requirements of
this Act with respect to the alteration and the confirmation thereof have been complied with and
thenceforth the memorandum so filed shall be the memorandum of the company:

        Provided that the Commission may by order, at any time on an application by the company, on
sufficient cause shown extend the time for the filing of memorandum with the registrar under this section
for such period as it thinks proper.

       (5)     Where the alteration involves a transfer of registered office from the jurisdiction of one
company registration office to another, physical record of the company shall be transferred to the registrar
concerned of the company registration office in whose jurisdiction the registered office of the company
has been shifted.

        (6)    Where the alteration involves change in principal line of business, the company shall file
the amended memorandum of association with the registrar within thirty days, which shall be recorded
for the purposes of this Act.

         33.    Powers of Commission when confirming alteration.—The Commission may make an
order confirming the alteration on such terms and conditions as it thinks fit and make such order as to costs
as it thinks proper.

        34.    Exercise of discretion by Commission.—The Commission shall in exercising its
discretion under sections 32 and 33 have regard to the rights and interests of the members of the company




                                                 Page 58 of 401
or of any class of them, as well as to the rights and interests of the creditors and may, if it thinks fit, give
such directions and make such orders as it may think expedient for facilitating or carrying into effect any
such arrangement.

        35.     Effect of alteration in memorandum or articles.—Notwithstanding anything contained
in the memorandum or articles of a company, no member of the company shall be bound by an alteration
made in the memorandum or articles after the date on which he became a member if and so far as the
alteration requires him to take or subscribe for more shares than the number held by him at the date on
which the alteration is made or in any way increases his liability as at that date to contribute to the share
capital of or otherwise to pay money to the company:

       Provided that this section shall not apply in any case where the member agrees in writing either
before or after the alteration is made to be bound thereby.

                                     ARTICLES OF ASSOCIATION

        36.      Registration of articles.—(1) There may, in the case of company limited by shares and
there shall, in the case of a company limited by guarantee or an unlimited company, be registered with
the memorandum, articles of association signed by the subscribers to the memorandum and setting out
regulations for the company.

        (2)    Articles of association of a company limited by shares may adopt all or any of the
regulations contained in Table A in the First Schedule to this Act.

        (3)    In the case of an unlimited company or a company limited by guarantee, the articles, if the
company has a share capital, shall state the amount of share capital with which the company proposes to
be registered.

        (4)    In the case of an unlimited company or a company limited by guarantee, if the company
has no share capital, the articles shall state the number of members with which the company proposes to
be registered.

        (5)      In the case of a company limited by shares and registered after the commencement of this
Act, if articles are not registered, or, if articles are registered, in so far as the articles do not exclude or
modify the regulations in Table A in the First Schedule to this Act, those regulations shall, so far as
applicable, be the regulations of the company in the same manner and to the same extent as if they were
contained in duly registered articles.

        (6)     The articles of every company shall be explicit and without ambiguity and, without
prejudice to the generality of the foregoing, shall list and enumerate the voting and other rights attached
to the different classes of shares and other securities, if any, issued or to be issued by it.

       (7)     If a company contravenes the provisions of its articles of association, the company and
every officer of the company shall be liable to a penalty not exceeding of level 1 on the standard scale.

       37.     Articles to be printed, signed and dated.—The articles shall be—




                                                  Page 59 of 401
                       (a)       printed in the manner generally acceptable;

                       (b)       divided into paragraphs numbered consecutively;

                       (c)       signed by each subscriber, who shall add his present name in full, his occupation
                                 1
                                   [, nationality, ] usual residential address and such other particulars as may be
                                 specified, in the presence of a witness who shall attest the signature and shall
                                 likewise add his particulars; and

                       (d)       dated.

       38.      Alteration of articles.—(1) Subject to the provisions of this Act and to the conditions
contained in its memorandum, a company may, by special resolution, alter its articles and any alteration
so made shall be as valid as if originally contained in the articles and be subject in like manner to alteration
by special resolution:

        Provided that, where such alteration affects the substantive rights or liabilities of members or of a
class of members, it shall be carried out only if a majority of at least three-fourths of the members or of the
class of members affected by such alteration, as the case may be, exercise the option through vote
personally or through proxy vote for such alteration.

       (2)     A copy of the articles of association as altered shall, within thirty days from the date of
passing of the resolution, be filed by the company with the registrar and he shall register the same and
thenceforth the articles so filed shall be the articles of the company.

       39.    Copies of memorandum and articles to be given to members.— (1) Each company shall
send to every member, at his request and within fourteen days thereof, on payment of such sum, as the
company may fix, a copy of the memorandum and the articles, if any.

        (2)     If a company makes default in complying with the requirements of sub-section (1), it shall
be liable to a penalty not exceeding of level 1 on the standard scale.

        40.     Alteration of memorandum or articles to be noted in every copy.—(1) Where an
alteration is made in the memorandum or articles of a company, every copy of the memorandum or articles
issued after the date of the alteration shall conform to the memorandum or articles as so altered.

        (2)     If, where any such alteration has been made, the company at any time after the date of the
alteration issues any copies of the memorandum or articles which do not conform to the memorandum or
articles as so altered it shall be liable to a penalty not exceeding of level 1 on the standard scale for each
copy so issued and every officer of the company who is in default shall be liable to the like penalty.

             41.       Form of memorandum and articles.—The form of—

                       (a)       memorandum of association of a company limited by shares;
____________________________________________________________________________
1
    Subs. by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.8




                                                         Page 60 of 401
               (b)    memorandum and articles of association of a company limited by guarantee and
                      not having a share capital;

               (c)    memorandum and articles of association of a company limited by guarantee and
                      having a share capital; and

               (d)    memorandum and articles of association of an unlimited company having a
                      share capital,

shall be respectively in accordance with the forms set out in Tables B, C, D and E in the First Schedule or
as near thereto as circumstances admit.

       42. Licencing of associations with charitable and not for profit objects.—(1) Where it is
proved to the satisfaction of the Commission that an association is to be formed as a limited company—

               (a)    for promoting commerce, art, science, religion, health, education, research, sports,
                      protection of environment, social welfare, charity or any other useful object;

               (b)    such company—

                      (i)     intends to apply the company’s profits and other income in promoting its
                              objects; and

                      (ii)    prohibits the payment of dividends to the company’s members; and

               (c)    such company’s objects and activities are not and shall not, at any time, be against
                      the laws, public order, security, sovereignty and national interests of Pakistan,

the Commission may, by licence for a period to be specified, permit the association to be registered as a
public limited company, without addition of the word “Limited” or the expression”(Guarantee) Limited”,
to its name.

        (2)     A licence under sub-section (1) may be granted on such conditions and subject to such
regulations as the Commission thinks fit and those conditions shall be inserted in and deemed part of the
memorandum and articles, or in one of those documents.

        (3)   Memorandum and articles of association of a company, licenced under this section, shall
be in accordance with the form set out in Table F in the First Schedule or as near thereto as circumstances
admit and approved by the Commission.

        (4)      The association on registration under this section shall enjoy all the privileges and be
subject to all the obligations of a limited company.

        (5)     The Commission may at any time by order in writing, revoke a licence granted under sub-
section (1), with such directions as it may deem fit, on being satisfied that—




                                                Page 61 of 401
              (a)     the company or its management has failed to comply with any of the terms
                      or conditions subject to which a licence is granted; or

              (b)     any of the requirements specified in sub-section (1) or any regulations made under
                      this section are not met or complied with; or

              (c)     affairs of the company are conducted in a manner prejudicial to public interest; or

              (d)     the company has made a default in filing with the registrar its financial statements
                      or annual returns for immediately preceding two consecutive financial years; or

              (e)     the company has acted against the interest, sovereignty and integrity of
                      Pakistan, the security of the State and friendly relations with foreign States; or

              (f)     the number of members is reduced, below three; or

              (g)     the company is—

                      (i)     conceived or brought forth for, or is or has been carrying on, unlawful
                              or fraudulent activities; or

                      (ii)    run and managed by persons who fail to maintain proper and true accounts
                              or they commit fraud, misfeasance or malfeasance in relation to the
                              company; or

                      (iii)   run and managed by persons who are involved in terrorist financing or
                              money laundering; or

                      (iv)    managed by persons who refuse to act according to the requirements of
                              the memorandum or articles or the provisions of this Act or failed to carry
                              out the directions or decisions of the Commission or the registrar given
                              in exercise of the powers conferred by this Act; or

                      (v)     not carrying on its business or is not in operation for one year; or

              (h)     it is just and equitable that the licence should be revoked:

               Provided that before a licence is so revoked, the Commission shall give to the company a
       notice, in writing of its intention to do so, and shall afford the company an opportunity to be heard.

        (6)     Notwithstanding anything contained in this Act or any other law, no association shall be
registered as a company with the objects as mentioned in clause (a) and the conditions provided in clause
(b) of sub-section (1) without a licence granted in pursuance of this section.




                                                Page 62 of 401
        43.   Effect of revocation of licence.— (1) On revocation of licence of a company under section
42, by the Commission—

               (a)     the company shall stop all its activities except the recovery of money owed to
                       it, if any;

               (b)     the company shall not solicit or receive donations from any source; and

               (c)     all the assets of the company after satisfaction of all debts and liabilities shall, in
                       the manner as may be specified, be transferred to another company licenced under
                       section 42, preferably having similar or identical objects to those of the company,
                       within ninety days from the revocation of the licence or such extended period as
                       may be allowed by the Commission:

               Provided that a reasonable amount to meet the expenses of voluntary winding up or
       making an application to the registrar for striking the name of the company off the register in terms
       of sub-section (3), may be retained by the company.

       (2)    After compliance of the requirements mentioned in sub-section (1), the board of the
company shall file within fifteen days from the date of such compliance, a report to the registrar
containing such information and supported with such documents as may be specified.

       (3)     Within thirty days of acceptance of the report by the registrar, submitted by the company
under sub-section (2), the board shall initiate necessary proceedings for winding up of the company
voluntarily or where it has no assets and liabilities make an application to the registrar for striking the
name of the company off the register.

        (4)    If the company fails to comply with any of the requirements of this section within the period
specified or such extended period as may be allowed by the Commission, the Commission may, without
prejudice to any other action under the law, appoint an administrator to manage affairs of the company
subject to such terms and conditions as may be specified in the order and initiate necessary proceedings
for winding up of the company.

      (5)      The provisions of section 291, except those of sub-section (1) thereof, shall apply mutatis
mutandis to the administrator appointed under this section.

        (6)     Where any assets of the company are transferred, in consequence of revocation of licence,
to another company licenced under section 42, the members and officers of the first mentioned company
or any of their family members shall not be eligible to hold any office in the later company for a period
of five years from the date of transfer of such assets.

       (7)    Where the licence of a company has been revoked before the commencement of this Act
and such company is not in the process of winding up, this section shall apply as if the licence was revoked
immediately after the commencement of this Act.

      44.    Penalty.—If a company licenced under section 42 or any of its officers makes default in
complying with any of the requirements of sections 42 and 43 or the rules or regulations or the terms or



                                                 Page 63 of 401
conditions to which the licence is subject or any directions contained in a revocation order, it shall without
prejudice to any other action be punishable by a penalty not exceeding of level 2 on the standard scale.

       45.    Provision as to companies limited by guarantee.—(1) A company limited by
guarantee may have share capital.

       (2)      In the case of a company limited by guarantee and not having a share capital, every
provision in the memorandum or articles or in any resolution of the company purporting to give any
person a right to participate in the divisible profits of the company otherwise than as a member shall be
void.

        (3)     For the purpose of the provisions of this Act relating to the memorandum of a company
limited by guarantee and of sub-section (2), every provision in the memorandum or articles, or in any
resolution, of a company limited by guarantee purporting to divide the undertaking of the company into
shares or interests shall be treated as a provision for a share capital, notwithstanding that the nominal
amount or number of the shares or interests is not mentioned thereby.

 CONVERSION OF A COMPANY OF ANY CLASS INTO A COMPANY OF OTHER CLASS
                       AND RELATED MATTERS

        46.      Conversion of public company into private company and vice-versa.—(1) A public
company may be converted into a private company with the prior approval of the Commission in
writing by passing a special resolution in this behalf by the public company amending its memorandum
and articles of association in such a manner that they include the provisions relating to a private company
in the articles and complying with all the requirements as may be specified:

        Provided that in case of conversion of a listed company into a private company, the Commission
shall give notice of every application made to it, to the securities exchange and shall take into consideration
the representation if any, made to it by the securities exchange.

       (2)     On an application for change in status of a company under sub-section (1), if the
Commission is satisfied that the company is entitled to be so converted, such conversion shall be allowed
by an order in writing.

        (3)    A copy of the order, confirming the conversion under sub-section (2), duly certified by an
authorised officer of the Commission shall be forwarded to the company and to the registrar within seven
days from the date of the order.

        (4)    A copy of the memorandum and articles of association as altered pursuant to the order under
sub-section (2) shall, within fifteen days from the date of the order, be filed by the company with the
registrar and he shall register the same and thenceforth the memorandum and articles so filed shall be the
memorandum and articles of the newly converted company.

        (5)     If a company, being a private company, alters its articles in such a manner that they no
longer include the provisions which, under sub-section (1) of section 2, are required to be included in the
articles of a company in order to constitute it a private company, the company shall—




                                                  Page 64 of 401
               (a)     as on the date of the alteration, cease to be a private company; and

               (b)     file with the registrar a copy of the memorandum and articles of association as altered
                       along with the special resolution.

        (6)     If default is made in complying with the provisions of any of the preceding sub-sections,
the company and every officer of the company who is in default shall be liable to a penalty not exceeding
of level 2 on the standard scale.

        47.     Conversion of status of private company into a single-member company and vice-
versa.—(1) A private company may be converted into a single-member company with prior approval
of the Commission in writing by passing a special resolution in this behalf by the private company
amending its memorandum and articles of association, in such a manner that they include the provisions
relating to a single-member company in the articles and complying with all the requirements as may be
specified.

       (2)     On an application for change in status of a company under sub-section (1), if the
Commission is satisfied that the company is entitled to be so converted, such conversion shall be allowed
by an order in writing.

        (3)    A copy of the order, confirming the conversion under sub-section (2), duly certified by an
authorised officer of the Commission shall be forwarded to the company and to the registrar within seven
days from the date of the order.

        (4)    A copy of the memorandum and articles of association as altered pursuant to the order
under sub-section (2) shall, within fifteen days from the date of the order, be filed by the company with the
registrar and he shall register the same and thenceforth the memorandum and articles so filed shall be the
memorandum and articles of the newly converted company.

        (5)      If a company, being a single member company, alters its articles in such a manner that
they no longer include the provisions which are required to be included in the articles of a company in order
to constitute it a single member company, the company shall—

               (a)     as on the date of the alteration, cease to be a single member company; and

               (b)     file with the registrar a copy of the memorandum and articles of association as altered
                       along with the special resolution.

        (6)     If default is made in complying with the provisions of any of the preceding sub-sections,
the company, and every officer of the company who is in default, shall be liable to a penalty not exceeding
of level 2 on the standard scale.

       48.    Conversion of status of unlimited company as limited company and vice-versa.—(1)
An unlimited company may be converted into a limited company with prior approval of the Commission
in writing by passing a special resolution in this behalf by the unlimited company amending its




                                                 Page 65 of 401
memorandum and articles of association in such a manner that they include the provisions relating to a
company limited by shares in the articles and complying with all the requirements as may be specified.

       (2)     On an application for change in status of a company under sub-section (1), if the
Commission is satisfied that the company is entitled to be so converted, such conversion shall be allowed
by an order in writing.

        (3)    A copy of the order, confirming the conversion under sub-section (2) duly certified by an
authorised officer of the Commission shall be forwarded to the company and to the registrar within seven
days from the date of the order.

      (4)     If a company, being a limited company, alters its memorandum and articles in such a
manner that they include the provisions which constitute it as a company having unlimited liability of its
members, the company shall—

               (a)     as on the date of the alteration, cease to be a limited company; and

               (b)     file with the registrar a copy of the memorandum and articles of association as
                       altered along with the special resolution.

        (5)     If default is made in complying with the provisions of any of the preceding sub-sections,
the company and every officer of the company who is in default shall be liable to a penalty not exceeding of
level 2 on the standard scale.

         49.    Conversion of a company limited by guarantee to a company limited by shares and
vice-versa.—(1) A company limited by guarantee may be converted into a company limited by shares
with prior approval of the Commission in writing by passing a special resolution in this behalf by the
company limited by guarantee amending its memorandum and articles of association in such a manner that
they include the provisions relating to a company limited by shares in the articles and complying with
all the requirements as may be specified.

       (2)     On an application for change in status of a company under sub-section (1), if the
Commission is satisfied that the company is entitled to be so converted, such conversion shall be allowed
by an order in writing.

        (3)    A copy of the order, confirming the conversion under sub-section (2) duly certified by an
authorised officer of the Commission shall be forwarded to the company and to the registrar within seven
days from the date of the order.

        (4)    A copy of the memorandum and articles of association as altered pursuant to the order under
sub-section (2) shall within fifteen days from the date of the order be filed by the company with the
registrar and he shall register the same and thenceforth the memorandum and articles so filed shall be the
memorandum and articles of the newly converted company.

        (5)     If a company, being limited by shares, alters its memorandum and articles in such a manner
that they include the provisions which constitute it a company limited by guarantee, the company shall—




                                                Page 66 of 401
               (a)     as on the date of the alteration, cease to be a company limited by shares; and

               (b)     file with the registrar a copy of the memorandum and articles of association as
                       altered along with the special resolution.

        (6)     If default is made in complying with the provisions of any of the preceding sub-sections,
the company and every officer of the company who is in default shall be liable to a penalty not exceeding of
level 2 on the standard scale.

        50.     Issue of certificate and effects of conversion.—(1) The registrar upon registration of the
memorandum and articles of association as altered by the company upon conversion under sections 46 to
49, shall issue a certificate to that effect.

       (2)     The conversion of status of a company under sections 46 to 49 shall not affect—

               (a)     any debts, liabilities, obligations or contracts incurred or entered into, by or on
                       behalf of the company before conversion and such debts, liabilities, obligations and
                       contracts may be enforced in the manner as if such registration had not been done;
                       and

               (b)     any rights or obligations of the company or render defective any legal proceedings
                       by or against the company and any legal proceedings that might have been
                       continued or commenced against the company before conversion may be continued
                       or commenced upon its conversion.

        51.     Power of unlimited company to provide for reserve share capital on conversion of
status to a limited company.—An unlimited company having a share capital may, by its resolution for
registration as a limited company in pursuance of this Act, increase the nominal amount of its share capital
by increasing the nominal amount of each of its shares, subject to the condition that no part of the amount
by which its capital is so increased shall be capable of being called up except in the event and for the
purpose of the company being wound up.

        52.     Consequence of default in complying with conditions constituting a company a
private company.—Where the articles of a company include the provisions which, under sub-section (1)
of section 2, are required to be included in the articles of a company in order to constitute it as a private
company, but default is made in complying with any of those provisions, the company shall cease to be
entitled to the privileges and exemptions conferred on private companies by or under this Act and this
Act shall apply to the company as if it were not a private company:

        Provided that the Commission, on being satisfied that the failure to comply with the conditions
was accidental or due to inadvertence or to some other sufficient cause or that on other ground it is just
and equitable to grant relief, may, on the application of the company or any other person interested and
on such terms and conditions as seem to the Commission just and expedient, make order that the company
be relieved from such consequences as aforesaid.




                                                 Page 67 of 401
                      SERVICE AND AUTHENTICATION OF DOCUMENTS

        53.     Service of documents on a company.—A document or information may be served on the
company or any of its officers at the registered office of the company against an acknowledgement or by
post or courier service or through electronic means or in any other manner as may be specified.

        54.    Service of documents on Commission or the registrar.—A document or information may
be served on the Commission or the registrar against an acknowledgement or by post or courier service
or through electronic means or in any other manner as may be specified.

        55.     Service of notice on a member.—(1) A document or information may be served on a
member at his registered address or, if he has no registered address in Pakistan, at the address supplied by
him to the company for the giving of notices to him against an acknowledgement or by post or courier
service or through electronic means or in any other manner as may be specified.

       (2)    Where a notice is sent by post, service of the notice shall be deemed to be effected by
properly addressing, prepaying and posting a letter containing the notice and, unless the contrary is
proved, to have been effected at the time at which the letter will be delivered in the ordinary course of
post.

        (3)     A notice may be given by the company to the joint-holders of a share by giving the notice
to the joint-holder named first in the register in respect of the share.

        (4)      A notice may, in the manner provided under sub-section (1), be given by the company to the
person entitled to a share in consequence of death or insolvency of a member addressed to him by name
or by the title or representatives of the deceased or assignees of the insolvent or by any like description,
at the address supplied for the purpose by the person claiming to be so entitled.

        56.    Authentication of documents and proceedings.—Save as expressly provided in this
Act, a document or proceeding requiring authentication by a company may be signed either by an
officer or a representative authorized by the board.

                                                  PART V

      PROSPECTUS, ALLOTMENT, ISSUE AND TRANSFER OF SHARES AND OTHER
                                SECURITIES


        57.     Prospectus.—(1) No prospectus shall be issued by or on behalf of a company unless on or
before the date of its publication, a copy thereof signed by every person who is named therein as a director
or proposed director of the company has been filed with the registrar.

         (2)    In case of any contravention of this section, the company and every person who is a party
to the issue, publication or circulation of the prospectus shall be liable to a penalty not exceeding of level
2 on the standard scale.




                                                 Page 68 of 401
        58.     Classes and kinds of share capital.—A company having share capital shall issue only
fully paid shares which may be of different kinds and classes as provided by its memorandum and articles:

      Provided that different rights and privileges in relation to the different kinds and classes of shares
may only be conferred in such manner as may be specified.

        59.     Variation of shareholders’ rights.—(1) The variation of the right of shareholders of any
class shall be effected only in the manner laid down in section 38.

         (2)    Not less than ten percent of the class of shareholders who are aggrieved by the variation of
their rights under sub-section (1) may, within thirty days of the date of the resolution varying their rights,
apply to the Court for an order cancelling the resolution:

        Provided that the Court shall not pass such an order unless it is shown to its satisfaction that some
facts which would have had a bearing on the decision of the shareholders were withheld by the company
in getting the aforesaid resolution passed or, having regard to all the circumstances of the case, that the
variation would unfairly prejudice the shareholders of the class represented by the applicant.

       (3)     An application under sub-section (2) may be made on behalf of the shareholders entitled
to make it by such one or more of their number as they may authorise in writing in this behalf.

        (4)     The company shall, within fifteen days of the service on the company of any order made
on any such application, forward a copy of the order to the registrar and, if default is made in complying
with this provision, the person making the default shall be guilty of an offence under this section and be
liable to a penalty not exceeding of level 1 on the standard scale.

      (5)    The expression “variation” under this section includes abrogation, revocation or
enhancement.

      SHARE CAPITAL AND NATURE, NUMBERING AND CERTIFICATE OF SHARES

        60.    Numbering of shares.—Every share in a company having a share capital shall be
distinguished by its distinctive number:

       Provided that nothing in this section shall apply to a share held by a person whose name is entered
as holder of beneficial interest in such share in the records of a central depository system.
       1
        [60A. Prohibition on issuance of bearer shares or bearer share warrants, etc.−(1)
Notwithstanding anything contained in the National Investment (Unit) Trust Ordinance, 1965 (VII of
1965) or any other law for the time being in force, no company shall allot, issue, sell, transfer or assign
any bearer shares, bearer share warrants or any other equity or debt security of a bearer nature, by whatever
name called, and any allotment, issue, sale, transfer, assignment or other disposition of any such bearer
shares or bearer share warrants or any other equity or debt security of a bearer nature, shall be void.

       1
           Ins. by Act No. XXVII of 2020. s.2.




                                                 Page 69 of 401
       Explanation. —For the purpose of this section the term “bearer shares or bearer share warrants”
means a negotiable instrument that accords ownership or control in a company to the person who possess
such instrument and includes any other equity or debt security of a bearer nature.

       (2)      All existing bearer shares or bearer share warrants, if any, shall either be registered or
cancelled, in such manner and within such period, as may be specified.

         (3)    Any contravention or default in complying with the requirements of this section shall be
liable in case of,–
                  (a)       a director or officer of the company or any other person, to a penalty which may
                            extend to one million rupees; and
                 (b)        the company, to a penalty which may extend to ten million rupees.]

      61.    Nature of shares or other securities. —The shares or other securities of any member in
a company shall be movable property transferable in the manner provided by the articles of the company.

        62.    Shares certificate to be evidence.—(1) A certificate, if issued in physical form under
1
 [signature of authorized officer of the company as may be specified] or issued in book-entry form,
specifying the shares held by any person or shares held in central depository system shall be prima facie
evidence of the title of the person to such shares.

        (2)     Notwithstanding anything contained in the articles of a company, the manner of issue of a
certificate of shares, the form of such certificate and other matters shall be such as may be specified.


                                 SPECIAL PROVISIONS AS TO DEBENTURES

        63.     Issue of debentures.—(1) A company may issue different kinds of debentures having
different classes, rights and privileges as may be specified.

        (2)     The rights, privileges and the procedure, for securing the issue of debentures, the form of
debenture trust deed, the procedure for the debenture holders to inspect the trust deed and to obtain a copy
thereof shall be such as may be specified.

        64.     Payment of certain debts out of assets subject to floating charge in priority to claims
under the charge.—(1) Where either a receiver is appointed on behalf of the holders of any debentures
of a company secured by a floating charge, or possession is taken by or on behalf of these debenture holders
of any property comprised in or subject to the charge, then, if the company is not at the time in course of
being wound up, the debts which in every winding up are under the provisions of Part- X relating to
preferential payments to be paid in priority to all other debts, shall be paid forthwith out of any assets
coming to the hands of the receiver or other person taking possession as aforesaid in priority to any claim
for principal or interest in respect of the debentures.


       1 Subs. by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.9.




                                                     Page 70 of 401
        (2)    The periods of time mentioned in the said provisions of Part-X shall be reckoned from the
date of the appointment of the receiver or of possession being taken as aforesaid, as the case may be.

         (3)    Any payments made under sub-section (1) shall be recouped, as far as may be, out of the
assets of the company available for payment of general creditors.

        65.    Powers and liabilities of trustee.__(1) The trustee nominated or appointed under the trust-
deed for securing an issue of debentures shall, if so empowered by such deed, have the right to sue for
all redemption monies and interest in the following cases, namely__

               (a)     where the issuer of the debentures as mortgagor binds himself to repay the
                       debenture loan or pay the accrued interest thereon, or both to repay the loan and
                       pay the interest thereon, in the manner provided on the due date;

               (b)     where by any cause other than the wrongful act or default of the issuer the
                       mortgaged property is wholly or partially destroyed or the security is rendered
                       insufficient within the meaning of section 66 of the Transfer of Property Act, 1882
                       (Act IV of 1882), and the trustee has given the issuer a reasonable opportunity of
                       providing further security adequate to render the whole security sufficient and the
                       issuer has failed to do so;

               (c)     where the trustee is deprived of the whole or part of the security by or in
                       consequence of any wrongful act or default on the part of the issuer; and

               (d)     where the trustee is entitled to take possession of the mortgaged property and the
                       issuer fails to deliver the same to him or to secure the possession thereof without
                       disturbance by the issuer or any person claiming under a title superior to that of
                       the issuer.

         (2)     Where a suit is brought under clause (a) or clause (b) of sub-section (1) the Court may at
its discretion stay the suit and all proceedings therein notwithstanding any contract to the contrary, until
the trustee has exhausted all his available remedies against the mortgaged property or what remains of
it unless the trustee abandons his security and, if necessary, retransfers the mortgaged property.

         (3)    Notwithstanding anything contained in sub-sections (1) and (2) or any other law for the
time being in force, the trustee or any person acting on his behalf shall, if so authorised by the trust-deed,
sell or concur in selling, without intervention of the Court, the mortgaged property or any part thereof in
default of payment according to re-payment schedule of any redemption amount or in the payment of any
accrued interest on the due date by the issuer.

       Explanation.—“Issuer” for the purpose of this section, shall mean the company issuing
debentures and securing the same by mortgage of its properties or assets, or both its properties and assets,
and appointing a trustee under a trust- deed.

       (4)     Subject to the provisions of this section, any provision contained in a trust-deed for
securing an issue of debentures, or in any contract with the holders of debentures secured by a trust-deed,




                                                  Page 71 of 401
shall be void in so far as it would have the effect of exempting a trustee thereof from, or indemnifying
him against, liability for breach of trust, where he fails to show the degree of care and diligence required
of him as trustee, having regard to the provisions of the trust- deed conferring on him any power, authority
or discretion.

       (5)     Sub-section (4) shall not invalidate-

               (a)     any release otherwise validly given in respect of any act or omission by a
                       trustee before the giving of the release; or

               (b)     any provision enabling such a release to be given—


                       (i)     on the agreement thereto of a majority of not less than three- fourths in value
                               of the debenture-holders present and voting in person or, where proxies
                               are permitted, by proxy, at a meeting summoned for the purpose; and

                       (ii)    either with respect to specific acts or omissions or on the trustee dying
                               or ceasing to act.

       (6)     Sub-section (4) shall not operate-

               (a)     to invalidate any provision in force immediately before the commencement of this
                       Act, so long as any person then entitled to the benefit of that provision or
                       afterwards given the benefit thereof under sub-section (7) remains as trustee of the
                       deed in question; or

               (b)     to deprive any person of any exemption or right to be indemnified in respect of any
                       act or omission by him while any such provision was in force.

        (7)     While any trustee of a trust-deed remains entitled to the benefit or provision saved by sub-
section (6), the benefits of that provision may be given either—

               (a)     to all trustees of the deed, present and future; or

               (b)     to any named trustees or proposed trustees thereof;

by a resolution passed by a majority of not less than three-fourths in value of the debenture-holders present
in person or, where proxies are permitted, by proxy, at a meeting called for the purpose in accordance
with the provisions of the deed or, if the deed makes no provisions for calling meetings, at a meeting called
for the purpose in any manner approved by the Court.

       66.     Issue of securities and redeemable capital not based on interest.— (1) A company may
by public offer or, upon terms and conditions contained in an agreement in writing, issue to one or more
scheduled banks, financial institutions or such other persons as are notified for the purpose by the
Commission either severally, jointly or through their syndicate, any instrument in the nature of



                                                 Page 72 of 401
redeemable capital in any or several forms in consideration of funds, moneys or accommodations
received or to be received by the company, whether in cash or in specie or against any promise, guarantee,
undertaking or indemnity issued to or in favour of or for the benefit of the company.

       (2)     In particular and without prejudice to the generality of the forgoing provisions, the
agreement referred to in sub-section (1) for redeemable capital may provide for, adopt or include, in
addition to others, all or any of the following matters, namely-

               (a)     mode and basis of repayment by the company of the amount invested in
                       redeemable capital within a certain period of time;

               (b)     arrangement for sharing of profit and loss;

               (c)     creation of a special reserve called the “participation reserves” by the company in
                       the manner provided in the agreement for the issue of participatory redeemable
                       capital in which all providers of such capital shall participate for interim and
                       final adjustment on the maturity date in accordance with the terms and conditions
                       of such agreements; and

               (d)     in case of net loss on participatory redeemable capital on the date of maturity, the
                       right of holders to convert the outstanding, balance of such capital or part thereof
                       as provided in the agreement into ordinary shares of the company at the break-up
                       price calculated in the specified manner.

        (3)     The terms and conditions for the issue of instruments or certificates of redeemable capital
and the rights of their holders shall not be challenged or questioned by the company or any of its
shareholders unless repugnant to any provision of this Act or any other law or the memorandum or
articles or any resolution of the general meeting or directors of the company or any other document.

        (4)    The provision of this Act relating to the creation, issue, increase or decrease of the capital
shall not apply to the redeemable capital.
                                             ALLOTMENT

       67.      Application for, and allotment of, shares and debentures.—(1) No application for
allotment of shares in and debentures of a company in pursuance of a prospectus shall be made for shares
or debentures of less than such nominal amount as the Commission may, from time to time, specify, either
generally or in a particular case.

        (2)     The Commission may specify the form of an application for subscription to shares in or
debentures of a company which may, among other matters, contain such declarations or verifications as
it may, in the public interest, deem necessary; and such form then shall form part of the prospectus.

       (3)     All certificates, statements and declarations made by the applicant shall be binding on
him.

       (4)     An application for shares in or debentures of a company which is made in pursuance of a
prospectus shall be irrevocable.



                                                 Page 73 of 401
        (5)     Whoever contravenes the provisions of sub-section (1) or sub-section (2), or makes an
incorrect statement, declaration or verification in the application for allotment of shares, shall be liable to
a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale.

        68.    Repayment of money received for shares not allotted.—(1) Where a company
issues any invitation to the public to subscribe for its shares or other securities, the company shall refund
the money in the case of the unaccepted or unsuccessful applications within the time as may be specified.

        (2)     If the refund required by sub-section (1) is not made within the time specified, the
directors of the company shall be jointly and severally liable to repay that money with surcharge at the
rate of two percent for every month or part thereof from the expiration of the fifteenth day and, in
addition, shall be liable to a penalty of level 3 on the standard scale.

       69.     Allotment of shares and other securities to be dealt in on securities exchange.—(1)
Where a prospectus, whether issued generally or not, states that application has been or will be made for
permission for the shares or other securities offered thereby to be dealt in on the securities exchange, any
allotment made on an application in pursuance of the prospectus shall, whenever made, be void if the
permission has not been applied for before the seventh day after the first issue of the prospectus or if the
permission has not been granted before the expiration of twenty-one days from the date of the closing of
the subscription lists or such longer period not exceeding forty-two days as may, within the said twenty-
one days, be notified to the applicants for permission by the securities exchange.

        (2)     Where the permission has not been applied for or has not been granted as aforesaid, the
company shall forthwith repay without surcharge all money received from applicants in pursuance of the
prospectus, and, if any such money is not repaid within eight days after the company becomes liable to
repay it, the directors of the company shall be jointly and severally liable to repay that money from the
expiration of the eighth day together with surcharge at the rate of two percent for every month or part
thereof from the expiration of the eighth day and in addition, shall be liable to a penalty of level 3 on the
standard scale.

        (3)    All moneys received as aforesaid shall be deposited and kept in a separate bank account
in a scheduled bank so long as the company may become liable to repay it under sub-section (2); and, if
default is made in complying with this sub-section, the company and every officer of the company who
authorizes or permits the default shall be liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale.

       (4)      For the purposes of this section, permission shall not be deemed to be refused if it is
intimated that the application for it, though not at present granted, will be given further consideration.

       (5)     This section shall have effect—

               (a)     in relation to any shares or securities agreed to be taken by a person underwriting
                       an offer thereof by a prospectus as if he had applied therefor in pursuance of the
                       prospectus; and

               (b)     in relation to a prospectus offering shares for sale with the following modifications,
                       that is to say—




                                                  Page 74 of 401
                    (i)     reference to sale shall be substituted for reference to allotment;

                    (ii)    the person by whom the offer is made and not the company, shall be
                            liable under sub-section (2) to repay the money received from applicant, and
                            reference to the company’s liability under that sub-section shall be
                            construed accordingly; and
                    (iii)   for the reference in sub-section (3) to the company and every officer of
                            the company there shall be substituted a reference to any person by or
                            through whom the offer is made and who authorises or permits the default.

        70.    Return as to allotments.—(1) Whenever a company having a share capital makes
any allotment of its shares, the company shall, within forty- five days thereafter-

             (a)    file with the registrar a return of the allotment, stating the number and nominal
                    amount of the shares comprised in the allotment and such particulars as may be
                    specified, of each allottee, and the amount paid on each share; and

             (b)    in the case of shares allotted as paid up in cash, submit along with the return of
                    allotment, a report from its auditor to the effect that the amount of consideration
                    has been received in full by the company and shares have been issued to each
                    allottee:

              Provided that in case, the appointment of auditor is not mandatory by a company, the
      report for the purpose shall be obtained from a practicing chartered accountant or a cost and
      management accountant;

             (c)    in the case of shares allotted as paid up otherwise than in cash, submit along with
                    the return of allotment, a copy of the document evidencing the transfer of non-
                    cash asset to the company, or a copy of the contract for technical and other services,
                    intellectual property or other consideration, along with copy of the valuation report
                    (verified in the specified manner) for registration in respect of which that
                    allotment was made;

             (d)    file with the registrar—

                    (i)     in the case of bonus shares, a return stating the number and nominal
                            amount of such shares comprised in the allotment and the particulars of
                            allottees together with a copy of the resolution authorising the issue of such
                            shares;

                    (ii)    in the case of issue of shares at a discount, a copy of the resolution
                            passed by the company authorising such issue and where the maximum
                            rate of discount exceeds ten per cent, a copy of the order of the
                            Commission permitting the issue at the higher percentage.




                                               Page 75 of 401
        Explanation.— Shares shall not be deemed to have been paid for in cash except to the extent that
the company shall actually have received cash therefor at the time of, or subsequent to, the agreement
to issue the shares, and where shares are issued to a person who has sold or agreed to sell property or
rendered or agreed to render services to the company, or to persons nominated by him, the amount of
any payment made for the property or services shall be deducted from the amount of any cash payment
made for the shares and only the balance, if any, shall be treated as having been paid in cash for such
shares, notwithstanding any bill of exchange or cheques or other securities for money.

        (2)     If the registrar is satisfied that in the circumstances of any particular case the period of
forty five days specified in sub-sections (1) for compliance with the requirements of this section is
inadequate, he may extend that period as he thinks fit, and, if he does so, the provisions of sub-sections
(1) shall have effect in that particular case as if for the said period of forty five days the extended period
allowed by the registrar were substituted.

        (3)  No return of allotment shall be required to be filed for the shares taken by the subscribers
to the memorandum on the formation of the company.

       (4)      Any violation of this section shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the
standard scale.

      (5)     This section shall apply mutatis mutandis to shares which are allotted or issued or deemed
to have been issued to a scheduled bank or a financial institution in pursuance of any obligation of a
company to issue shares to such scheduled bank or financial institution:

        Provided that where default is made by a company in filing a return of allotment in respect of the
shares referred to in this sub-section, the scheduled bank or the financial institution to whom shares have
been allotted or issued or deemed to have been issued may file a return of allotment in respect of such
shares with the registrar together with such documents as may be specified by the Commission in this
behalf, and such return of allotment shall be deemed to have been filed by the company itself and the
scheduled bank the financial institution shall be entitled to recover from the company the amount of any
fee properly paid by it to the registrar in respect of the return.

                    CERTIFICATE OF SHARES AND OTHER SECURITIES

       71.     Limitation of time for issue of certificates.—(1) Every company shall issue certificates
of shares or other securities within thirty days after the allotment of any of its shares or other securities
and ensure delivery of the certificates to the person entitled thereto at his registered address.

       (2)      Any violation of this section shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the
standard scale.

        72.     Issuance of shares in book-entry form. —(1) After the commencement of this Act from
a date notified by the Commission, a company having share capital, shall have shares in book-entry form
only.




                                                  Page 76 of 401
       (2)    Every existing company shall be required to replace its physical shares with book- entry
form in a manner as may be specified and from the date notified by the Commission, within a period not
exceeding four years from the commencement of this Act:

       Provided that the Commission may notify different dates for different classes of companies:

       Provided further that the Commission may, if it deems appropriate, extend the period for
another two years besides the period stated herein.

      (3)     Nothing contained in this section shall apply to the shares of such companies or class of
companies as may be notified by the Commission.

        73.     Issue of duplicate certificates.—(1) A duplicate of a certificate of shares, or other
securities, shall be issued by the company within thirty days from the date of application if the original-

               (a)     is proved to have been lost or destroyed, or

               (b)     having been defaced or mutilated or torn is surrendered to the company.

        (2)    The company, after making such inquiry as to the loss, destruction, defacement or
mutilation of the original, as it may deem fit to make, shall, subject to such terms and conditions, if any,
as it may consider necessary, issue the duplicate:

       Provided that the company may charge fee and the actual expenses incurred on such inquiry.

        (3)     If the company for any reasonable cause is unable to issue duplicate certificate, it
shall notify this fact, along with the reasons within twenty days from the date of the application, to the
applicant.

       (4)      Any violation of this section shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the
standard scale.

       (5)    If a company with intent to defraud, issues a duplicate certificate thereof, the company shall
be punishable with fine which may extend to one hundred thousand rupees and every officer of the
company who is in default shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term which may extend to one
hundred and eighty days, or with fine which may extend to fifty thousand rupees, or with both.

                       TRANSFER OF SHARES AND OTHER SECURITIES

        74.     Transfer of shares and other securities.—(1) An application for registration of transfer
of shares and other transferable securities along with proper instrument of transfer duly stamped and
executed by the transferor and the transferee may be made to the company either by the transferor or the
transferee, and subject to the provisions of this section, the company shall within fifteen days after the
application for the registration of the transfer of any such securities, complete the process and—

               (a)     ensure delivery of the certificates to the transferee at his registered address; and




                                                 Page 77 of 401
               (b)     enter in its register of members the name of the transferee:

        Provided that in case of conversion of physical shares and other transferable securities into book-
entry form, the company shall, within ten days after an application is made for the registration of the
transfer of any shares or other securities to a central depository, register such transfer in the name of the
central depository:

       Provided further that nothing in this section shall apply to any transfer of shares or other securities
pursuant to a transaction executed on the securities exchange.

        (2)     Where a transfer deed is lost, destroyed or mutilated before its lodgment, the company
may on an application made by the transferee and bearing the stamp required by an instrument of transfer,
register the transfer of shares or other securities if the transferee proves to the satisfaction of the board
that the transfer deed duly executed has been lost, destroyed or mutilated:

       Provided that before registering the transfer of shares or other securities, the company may demand
such indemnity as it may think fit.

       (3)    All references to the shares or other securities in this section, shall in case of a company
not having share capital, be deemed to be references to interest of the members in the company.

        (4)     Every company shall maintain at its registered office a register of transfers of shares and
other securities and such register shall be open to inspection by the members and supply of copy
thereof in the manner stated in section 124.

       (5)      Nothing in sub-section (1) shall prevent a company from registering as shareholder or
other securities holder a person to whom the right to any share or security of the company has been
transmitted by operation of law.

       (6)      Any violation of this section shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 2 on the
standard scale.

       75.      Board not to refuse transfer of shares.—The board shall not refuse to transfer any shares
or securities unless the transfer deed is, for any reason, defective or invalid:

        Provided that the company shall within fifteen days or, where the transferee is a central
depository, within five days from the date on which the instrument of transfer was lodged with it notify
the defect or invalidity to the transferee who shall, after the removal of such defect or invalidity, be
entitled to re-lodge the transfer deed with the company:

        Provided further that the provisions of this section shall, in relation to a private company, be
subject to such limitations and restrictions as may have been imposed by the articles of such company.

       76.    Restriction on transfer of shares by the members of a private company.—(1)
Notwithstanding anything contained in section 75, a member of a private company desirous of selling
any shares held by him, shall intimate to the board of his intention through a notice.



                                                  Page 78 of 401
        (2)     On receipt of such notice, the board shall, within a period of ten days, offer those shares
for sale to the members in proportion to their existing shareholding:

       Provided that a private company may transfer or sell its shares in accordance with its articles of
association and agreement among the shareholders, if any, entered into prior to the commencement of
this Act:

        Provided further that any such agreement will be valid only if it is filed with the registrar within
ninety days of the commencement of this Act.

       (3)     The letter of offer for sale specifying the number of shares to which the member is entitled,
price per share and specifying the time limit, within which the offer, if not accepted, be deemed as
declined, shall be dispatched to the members through registered post or courier or through electronic
mode.

        (4)    If the whole or any part of the shares offered is declined or is not taken, the board may
offer such shares to the other members in proportion to their shareholding.

        (5)    If all the members decline to accept the offer or if any shares are left over, the shares may
be sold to any other person as determined by the member, who initiated the offer.

        (6)   For the purpose of this section, the mechanism to determine the price of shares shall be
such, as may be specified.

        77.    Notice of refusal to transfer.—(1) If a company refuses to register a transfer of any
shares or other securities, the company shall, within fifteen days after the date on which the instrument
of transfer was lodged with the company, send to the transferee notice of the refusal indicating reasons
for such refusal:

      Provided that failure of the company to give notice of refusal after the expiry of the period
mentioned in this section or section 75, shall be deemed refusal of transfer.

       (2)      Any violation of this section shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 2 on the
standard scale.

        78.     Transfer to successor-in-interest.—The shares or other securities of a deceased member
shall be transferred on application duly supported by succession certificate or by lawful award, as the
case may be, in favour of the successors to the extent of their interests and their names shall be
entered in the register of members.

        79.      Transfer to nominee of a deceased member.—(1) Notwithstanding anything contained
in any other law for the time being in force or in any disposition by a member of a company of his
interest represented by the shares held by him as a member of the company, a person may on acquiring
interest in a company as member, represented by shares, at any time after acquisition of such interest
deposit with the company a nomination conferring on a person the right to protect the interest of the
legal heirs in the shares of the deceased in the event of his death, as a trustee and to facilitate the transfer



                                                   Page 79 of 401
of shares to the legal heirs of the deceased subject to succession to be determined under the Islamic law
of inheritance and in case of a non-Muslim members, as per their respective law.

        (2)     The person nominated under this section shall, after the death of the member, be deemed
as a member of company till the shares are transferred to the legal heirs and if the deceased was a director
of the company, not being a listed company, the nominee shall also act as director of the company to
protect the interest of the legal heirs.

        (3)   The person to be nominated under this section shall not be a person other than the relatives
of the member, namely, a spouse, father, mother, brother, sister and son or daughter.

        (4)    The nomination as aforesaid, shall in no way prejudice the right of the member making the
nomination to transfer, dispose of or otherwise deal in the shares owned by him during his lifetime and,
shall have effect in respect of the shares owned by the said member on the day of his death.

        80.    Appeal against refusal for registration of transfer.—(1) The transferor or transferee, or
the person who gives intimation of the transmission by operation of law, as the case may be, aggrieved
by the refusal of transfer under section 75 to 79 may appeal to the Commission within a period of sixty
days of the date of refusal.

       (2)     The Commission shall, provide opportunity of hearing to the parties concerned and may,
by an order in writing, direct that the transfer or transmission should be registered by the company and
the company shall give effect to the decision within fifteen days of the receipt of the order.

        (3)     The Commission may, in its aforesaid order, give such incidental and consequential
directions as to the payment of costs or otherwise as it deems fit.

        (4)     If default is made in giving effect to the order of the Commission within the period
specified in sub-section (2), every director and officer of the company shall be liable to a penalty of level
3 on the standard scale.

                            COMMISSION, DISCOUNT AND PREMIUM

        81.   Application of premium received on issue of shares. —(1) If a company issues shares
at a premium, whether for cash or otherwise, a sum equal to the aggregate amount or the value of the
premiums on those shares must be transferred to an account, called “the share premium account”.

       (2)      Where, on issuing shares, a company has transferred a sum to the share premium account,
it may use that sum to write off—

               (a)     the preliminary expenses of the company;

               (b)     the expenses of, or the commission paid or discount allowed on, any issue of shares
                       of the company; and
               (c)     in providing for the premium payable on the redemption of any redeemable
                       preference shares of the company.




                                                 Page 80 of 401
     (3)       The company may also use the share premium account to issue bonus shares to its
members.

       82.      Power to issue shares at a discount.—(l) Subject to the provisions of this section, it shall
be lawful for a company to issue shares in the company at a discount:

       Provided that—

               (a)     the issue of shares at a discount must be authorised by special resolution passed in
                       the general meeting of the company;

               (b)     the resolution must specify the number of shares to be issued, rate of discount,
                       not exceeding the limits permissible under this section and price per share
                       proposed to be issued;

               (c)     in case of listed companies discount shall only be allowed if the market price is
                       lower than the par value of the shares for a continuous period of past ninety trading
                       days immediately preceding the date of announcement by the board; and

               (d)     the issue of shares at discount must be sanctioned by the Commission:

                                Provided further that approval of the Commission shall not be required by
                       a listed company for issuing shares at a discount if the discounted price is not less
                       than ninety percent of the par value;

               (e)     no such resolution for issuance of shares at discount shall be sanctioned by the
                       Commission if the offer price per share, specified in the resolution, is less than-

                       (i)     in case of listed companies, ninety percent of volume weighted average
                               daily closing price of shares for ninety days prior to the announcement of
                               discount issue; or

                       (ii)    in case of other than listed companies, the breakup value per share based on
                               assets (revalued not later than 3 years) or per share value based on
                               discounted cash flow:

                                       Provided that the calculation arrived at, for the purpose of sub-
                               clause (i) or (ii) of clause (e) above, shall be certified by the statutory
                               auditor;

               (f)     directors and sponsors of listed companies shall be required to subscribe their
                       portion of proposed issue at volume weighted average daily closing price of shares
                       for ninety days prior to the announcement of discount issue;

               (g)     not less than three years have elapsed since the date on which the company was
                       entitled to commence business;



                                                 Page 81 of 401
                 (h)        the share at a discount must be issued within sixty days after the date on which the
                            issue is sanctioned by the Commission or within such extended time as the
                            Commission may allow.

        (2)      Where a company has passed a special resolution authorising the issue of shares at a
discount, it shall apply to the Commission where applicable, for an order sanctioning the issue. The
Commission on such application may, if, having regard to all the circumstances of the case, thinks proper
so to do, make an order sanctioning the issue of shares at discount subject to such terms and conditions
as it deems fit.

       (3)       Issue of shares at a discount shall not be deemed to be reduction of capital.

        (4)    Every prospectus relating to the issue of shares, and every statement of financial
position issued by the company subsequent to the issue of shares, shall contain particulars of the discount
allowed on the issue of the shares.

       (5)      Any violation of this section shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 3 on the
standard scale.

      83.    Further issue of capital.—(1) Where the directors decide to increase share capital of the
company by issue of 1[further shares], such shares shall be offered:

                 (a)        to persons who, at the date of the offer, are members of the company in
                            proportion to the existing shares held by 1[such members through] sending a
                            letter of offer subject to the following conditions, namely—

                            (i)        the shares so offered shall be strictly in proportion to the shares already
                                       held in respective kinds and classes;

                            (ii)       the letter of offer shall state the number of shares offered and limiting a
                                       time not being less than fifteen days and not exceeding thirty days from
                                       the date of the offer within which the offer, if not accepted, shall be deemed
                                       to have been declined;

                            (iii)      in the case of a listed company any member, not interested to subscribe,
                                       may exercise the right to renounce the shares offered to him in favour of
                                       any other person, before the date of expiry stated in the letter of offer; and

                            (iv)       if the whole or any part of the shares offered under this section is
                                       declined or is not subscribed, the directors may allot such shares in such
                                       manner as they may deem fit within a period of thirty days from the close
                                       of the offer as provided under sub-clause (ii) above or within such extended
                                       time not exceeding thirty day with the approval of the Commission 1[;]
                                       1
                                         [*    *        *      *      *       *        *]
       1 Subs. Ins. and Omitted by Act XXXVII of 2021, s.10.




                                                               Page 82 of 401
                    1
                        [(b)     in case of public company and subject to approval of the Commission, to any
                                 person on the basis of a special resolution either for cash or for consideration other
                                 than cash:

                                         Provided that the value of any non-cash asset, net worth of undertaking,
                                 service, benefit or intellectual property shall be determined by a valuer]
                        1
                            [(c) in case of a private company and subject to its articles and special resolution, to
                                 any person, either for cash or for consideration other than cash on such conditions
                                 and requirements as may be notified.]

        (2)           The letter of offer referred to in sub-clause (ii) of clause (a) of sub-section (1)1[
shall be] duly signed by at least two directors 1[and] dispatched through registered post or courier or
through electronic mode to all the existing members, ensuring that it reaches the members before the
commencement of period for the acceptance of offer.
       1
        [(3) The letter of offer, referred to in sub-section (2), shall be accompanied by a circular duly
signed by all directors or an officer of the company authorised by them in this behalf on such form as
may be specified containing material information about the affairs of the company, latest statement of
the accounts and the necessity for issue of further capital:

                Provided that a copy of such circular shall also be filed with the registrar simultaneously
       at the time it is dispatched to the shareholders.]

          (4)    Notwithstanding anything contained in this section, where 1[any loan or finances have]
been obtained from any Government by a public sector company, and if that Government considers it
necessary in the public interest so to do, it may, by order, direct that such loan or 1[finances or] any part
thereof shall be converted into shares in that company, on such terms and conditions as appear to the
Government to be just and reasonable in the circumstances of the case even if the terms of such loan
1
  [ or finances ] do not include the option for such conversion.

         (5)     In determining the terms and conditions of conversion under sub-section (4), the
Government shall have due regard to the financial position of the public sector company, the terms of the
rate of interest 1[or profit] payable thereon and such other matters as it may consider necessary.

       (6)     Notwithstanding anything contained in this Act or any other law for the time being in force
or the memorandum and articles, where the authorised capital of a company is fully subscribed, or
the un-subscribed capital is insufficient, the same shall be deemed to have been increased to the extent
necessary for issue of shares to the Government, a scheduled bank or financial institution in pursuance
of any obligation of the company to issue shares to such scheduled bank or financial institution.

         (7)     In case shares are allotted in terms of sub-section (6), the company shall be required to
file the notice of increase in share capital along with the fee prescribed for such increase with the registrar
within the period prescribed under this Act:
           1 Subs. Added and Ins. by Act No.XXXVII of 2021, s.10.




                                                                    Page 83 of 401
         Provided that where default is made by a company in complying with the requirement of filing a
notice of increase in the authorised capital under this Act as well as the fee to be deposited on the
authorised capital as deemed to have been increased, the Government, scheduled bank or the financial
institution to whom shares have been issued may file notice of such increase with the registrar and such
notice shall be deemed to have been filed by the company itself and the Government, scheduled bank or
financial institution shall be entitled to recover from the company the amount of any fee paid by it to the
registrar in respect of such increase.

       (8)      Any violation of this section shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 2 on the
standard scale.
       1
         [83A. Employees’ stock options.— Notwithstanding anything contained in section 83 or any
other provision of this Act, a company may, under the authority of special resolution, issue shares in
accordance with its articles under employees’ stock option in accordance with such procedure and subject
to such conditions as may be specified.]

                                                INVITATION OF DEPOSITS

     84.   Prohibition on acceptance of deposits from public.—(1) On and after the
commencement of this Act, no company shall invite, accept or renew deposits from the public:

      Provided that nothing in this sub-section shall apply to a banking company and such other
company or class of companies or such deposits as the Commission may, notify in this behalf.

        Explanation.—For the purposes of this section, “deposit” means any deposit of money with, and
includes any amount borrowed by, a company, but shall not include a loan raised by issue of debentures
or a loan obtained from a banking company or financial institution or an advance against sale of goods
or provision of services in the ordinary course of business.

        (2)     Where a company accepts or invites, or allows or causes any other person to accept or
invite on its behalf, any deposit, the company shall be punishable—

                 (a)        where such contravention relates to the acceptance of any deposit, with penalty
                            which shall not be less than the amount of the deposit so accepted; and

                 (b)        where such contravention relates to the invitation for any deposit, shall be liable
                            to a penalty of level 3 on the standard scale.

        (3)      In addition to the fine on the company under sub-section (2), every officer of the company
which is in default shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term which may extend to two years and
shall also be liable to fine which may extend to five million rupees.

        85.     Power of company to alter its share capital.—(1) A company having share capital may,
if so authorised by its articles, alter the conditions of its memorandum through a special resolution, so as
to__
       1 Ins. by Act No.XXXVII of 2021, s.11.




                                                       Page 84 of 401
                       (a)       increase its authorised capital by such amount as it thinks expedient;

                       (b)       consolidate and divide the whole or any part of its share capital into shares of larger
                                 amount than its existing shares;

                       (c)       sub-divide its shares, or any of them, into shares of smaller amount than is fixed by
                                 the memorandum;


                       (d)       cancel shares which, at the date of the passing of the resolution in that behalf, have
                                 not been taken or agreed to be taken by any person, and diminish the amount of
                                 its share capital by the amount of the share so cancelled:

                                         Provided that, in the event of consolidation or sub-division of shares, the
                                 rights attaching to the new shares shall be strictly proportional to the rights
                                 attached to the previous shares so consolidated or sub-divided:

                                         Provided further that, where any shares issued are of a class which is the
                                 same as that of shares previously issued, the rights attaching to the new shares shall
                                 be the same as those attached to the shares previously held.

        (2)   The new shares issued by a company shall rank pari passu with the existing shares of the
class to which the new shares belong in all matters, including the right to such bonus or right issue
and dividend as may be declared by the company subsequent to the date of issue of such new shares.

       (3)     A cancellation of shares in pursuance of sub-section (1) shall not be deemed to be a
reduction of share capital within the meaning of this Act.

       (4)     The company shall file with the registrar notice of the exercise of any power referred to in
sub-section (1) within fifteen days from the exercise thereof.

       (5)      Any violation of this section shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the
standard scale.

          86.          Prohibition of purchase by company or giving of loans by it for purchase of its
shares.
          1
              [        *           *          *          *   *        *       *]

        (2)     No public company or a private company being subsidiary of a public company shall give
financial assistance whether directly or indirectly for the purpose of, or in connection with, a purchase or
subscription made or to be made, by any person of any shares in the company or in its holding company.

          (3)          Nothing in sub-section (2) shall apply to—
          1
              Omitted by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.12.




                                                             Page 85 of 401
                 (a)       the lending of money by a banking company in the ordinary course of its business;

                 (b)       the provision by a company of money in accordance with any scheme approved by
                           company through special resolution and in accordance with such requirements as
                           may be specified, for the purchase of, or subscription for shares in the company or
                           its holding company, if the purchase of, or the subscription for, the shares held by a
                           trust for the benefit of the employees or such shares held by the employee of the
                           company;

                  (c)      the provision or securing an advance to any of its employees, including a chief
                           executive who, before his appointment as such, was not a director of the company,
                           but excluding all directors of the company, for purchase of shares of the company
                           or of its subsidiary or holding company.

       (4)      Any violation of this section shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the
standard scale.

        87.     Subsidiary company not to hold shares in its holding company.—(1) No company
shall, either by itself or through its nominees, hold any shares in its holding company and no holding
company shall allot or transfer its shares to any of its subsidiary companies and any such allotment or
transfer of shares of a company to its subsidiary company shall be void:

       Provided that a subsidiary shall not be barred—

                 (a)       from acting as a trustee unless its holding company is beneficially interested under
                           the trust; and

                 (b)       from d e a l i n g in shares of its holding company in the ordinary course of its
                           business, on behalf of its clients only subject to non- provision of any financial
                           assistance where such subsidiary carries on a bona fide business of brokerage:

                    Provided further that a subsidiary dealing in shares of its holding company in the
             ordinary course of its brokerage business, shall not exercise the voting rights attached to
             such shares:

                     Provided also that the provisions of this section shall not be applicable where such
             shares are held by a company by operation of law.

        (2) Any violation of this section shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 2 on the
 standard scale.

       88.     Power of a company to purchase its own shares.—(1) Notwithstanding anything
 contained in this Act or any other law, for the time being in force, or the memorandum and articles, a 1[*]
 company may, subject to the provisions of this section and the regulations specified in this behalf,
 purchase its own shares.
       1Omitted by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.13.




                                                     Page 86 of 401
         (2) The shares purchased by the company may, in accordance with the provisions of this
 section and the regulations, either be cancelled or held as treasury shares1[:]
        1
         [Provided that shares purchased by an unlisted public company or a private company shall be
 cancelled and not be held as treasury shares:

        Provided further that cancellation of shares under this section shall not be deemed to be a
 reduction of share capital within the meaning of section 89 and such shares shall be cancelled in such
 form and manner as may be specified.]

        (3) The shares held by the company as treasury shares shall, as long as they are so held, in
 addition to any other conditions as may be specified, be subject to the following conditions, namely—

                 (a)       the voting rights of these shares shall remain suspended; and

                 (b)       no cash dividend shall be paid and no other distribution, whether in cash or
                           otherwise of the company’s assets, including any distribution of assets to members
                           on a winding up shall be made to the company in respect of these shares:

       Provided that nothing in this sub-section shall prevent—

                 (a)       an allotment of shares as fully paid bonus shares in respect of the treasury
                           shares; and

                 (b)       the payment of any amount payable on the redemption of the treasury shares,
                           if they are redeemable.

        (4)     The board shall recommend to the members purchase of the shares. The decision of the
board shall clearly specify the number of shares proposed to be purchased, purpose of the purchase i.e.
cancellation or holding the shares as treasury shares, the purchase price, period within which the purchase
shall be made, source of funds, justification for the purchase and effect on the financial position of the
company.

       (5)       The purchase of shares shall be made only under authority of a special resolution.

       (6)       The purchase of shares shall be made within a period as specified in the regulations.

       (7)    The proposal of the board to purchase shares shall, on conclusion of the board’s
meeting, be communicated to the Commission and to the securities exchange on which shares of the
company are listed.

        (8)     The purchase of shares shall always be made in cash and shall be out of the
distributable profits or reserves specifically maintained for the purpose.

       1 Subs. and Added by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.13.




                                                            Page 87 of 401
       (9)    The purchase of shares shall be made 1[******] through the securities exchange as may
be specified.

            (10)       The company may dispose of the treasury shares in a manner as may be specified.

       (11) Where a purchase of shares has been made under this section, the company shall
maintain a register of shares so purchased and enter therein the following particulars, namely—

                       (a)       number of shares purchased;

                       (b)       consideration paid for the shares purchased;

                       (c)       mode of the purchase;

                       (d)       the date of cancellation or re-issuance of such shares;

                       (e)       number of bonus shares issued in respect of treasury shares; and

                       (f)       number and amount of treasury shares redeemed, if redeemable.

        (12) Any violation of this section shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 3 on the
standard scale and shall also be individually and severally liable for any or all losses or damages arising
out of such contravention.

                                               REDUCTION OF SHARE CAPITAL

       89.      Reduction of share capital.—Subject to confirmation by the Court a company limited
by shares, if so authorised by its articles, may by special resolution reduce its share capital in any way,
namely—

                       (a)       cancel any paid-up share capital which is lost or un-represented by available assets;

                       (b)       pay off any paid-up share capital which is in excess of the needs of the company.

        90.     Objection by creditors and settlement of list of objecting creditors.—(1) Where the
proposed reduction of share capital involves the payment to any shareholder of any paid-up share capital,
and in any other case if the Court so directs, every creditor of the company who is entitled to any debt
or claim, shall be entitled to object to the reduction.

        (2)     The Court shall settle a list of creditors so entitled to object, and for that purpose shall
ascertain, as far as possible without requiring an application from any creditor, the names of those
creditors and the nature and amount of their debts or claims, and may publish notices fixing a period
within which creditors not entered on the list are to claim to be so entered or are to be excluded from the
right of objecting to the reduction.
___________________________________________________________________________________
1
    Omitted by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.13




                                                           Page 88 of 401
       91.     Power to dispense with consent of creditor on security being given for his debt.—
Where a creditor entered on the list of creditors whose debt or claim is not discharged or determined does
not consent to the reduction, the Court may, if it thinks fit, dispense with the consent of that creditor, on
the company securing payment of his debt or claim by appropriating as the Court may direct, the
following amount, that is to say-

                (a)     if the company admits the full amount of his debt or claim, or, though not admitting
                        it, is willing to provide for it, then the full amount of the debt or claim; and

                (b)     if the company does not admit or is not willing to provide for the full amount of
                        the debt or claim, or if the amount is contingent or not ascertained, then an amount
                        fixed by the Court after the like inquiry, and adjudication as if the company were
                        being wound up by the Court.

       92.     Order confirming reduction.—If the Court is satisfied with respect to every creditor of
the company who under this Act is entitled to object to the reduction that either his consent to the
reduction has been obtained or his debt or claim has been discharged or has been determined or has been
secured, the Court may make an order confirming the reduction on such terms and conditions as it thinks
fit.

        93.     Registration of order of reduction.—(1) The registrar on the filing with him of a
certified copy of order of the Court confirming the reduction of the share capital of the company, shall
register the same.

       (2)     A resolution for reducing share capital as confirmed by an order of the Court registered
under sub-section (1) shall take effect on such registration and not before.

       (3)    The registrar shall certify under his hand the registration of the order and his certificate shall
be conclusive evidence that all the requirements of this Act with respect to reduction of share capital
have been complied with, and that the share capital of the company is such as is stated in the order.

        94.     Liability of members in respect of reduced shares.—(1) A member of the company,
past or present, shall not be liable in respect of any share to any call or contribution exceeding in amount
the difference, if any, between the amount paid, or, as the case may be, the received amount, if any,
which is to be deemed to have been paid, on the share and the amount of the share as fixed by the order:

        Provided that, if any creditor, entitled in respect of any debt or claim to object to the reduction
of share capital, is, by reason of his ignorance of the proceedings for reduction, or of their nature and
effect with respect to his claim not entered on the list of creditors, and, after the reduction, the company
is unable, within the meaning of the provisions of this Act with respect to winding up by the Court, to
pay the amount of his debt or claim, then—

                (a)     every person who was a member of the company at the date of the registration of
                        the order for reduction shall be liable to contribute for the payment of that debt, or
                        claim an amount not exceeding the amount which he would have been liable to
                        contribute if the company had commenced to be wound up on the day before that
                        registration; and



                                                   Page 89 of 401
               (b)     if the company is wound up, the Court on the application of any such creditor and
                       proof of his ignorance as aforesaid, may, if it thinks fit, settle accordingly a list of
                       persons so liable to contribute, and make and enforce calls and orders on the
                       contributories settled on the list as if they were ordinary contributories in a winding
                       up.

       (2)     Nothing in this section shall effect the rights of the contributories among themselves.

       95.     Penalty on concealment of name of creditor.—If any officer of the company conceals
the name of any creditor entitled to object to the reduction, or willfully misrepresents the nature or amount
of the debt or claim of any creditor, or if any officer of the company abets any such concealment or
misrepresentation as aforesaid, every such officer shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term
which may extend to one year, or with fine which may extend to five million rupees, or with both.

       96.     Publication of reasons for reduction.—In the case of reduction of share capital, the
Court may require the company to publish in the manner specified by the Court the reasons for
reduction, or such other information in regard thereto as the Court may think expedient with a view to
giving proper information to the public, and, if the Court thinks fit, the causes which led to the reduction.

       97.     Increase and reduction of share capital in case of a company limited by guarantee
having a share capital.—A company limited by guarantee may, if it has a share capital and is so
authorised by its articles, increase or reduce its share capital in the same manner and on the same
conditions subject to which a company limited by shares may increase or reduce its share capital under
the provisions of this Act.

                             UNLIMITED LIABILITY OF DIRECTORS

       98.    Limited company may have directors with unlimited liability.— (1) In a limited
company, the liability of the directors or of any director may, if so provided by the memorandum, be
unlimited.

        (2)     In a limited company in which the liability of any director is unlimited, the directors of
the company, if any, and the member who proposes a person for election or appointment to the office of
director, shall add to that proposal a statement that the liability of the person holding that office will be
unlimited and the promoters and officers of the company, or one of them shall, before that person accepts
the office or acts therein, give him notice in writing that his liability will be unlimited.

        (3)    Any violation of this section shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the
standard scale and shall also be liable for any damage which the person so elected or appointed may
sustain from the defaulsst, but the liability of the person elected or appointed shall not be affected by the
default.

        99.    Special resolution of limited company making liability of directors unlimited.—A
limited company, if so authorised by its articles, may, by special resolution, alter its memorandum so as
to render unlimited the liability of its directors or of any director:



                                                 Page 90 of 401
        Provided that an alteration of the memorandum making the liability of any of the directors
unlimited shall not apply, without his consent, to a director who was holding the office from before the
date of the alteration, until the expiry of the term for which he was holding office on that date.

                                               PART VI

                     REGISTRATION OF MORTGAGES, CHARGES, ETC.

       100. Requirement to register a mortgage or charge.—(1) A company that creates a
mortgage or charge to which this section applies must file the specified particulars of the mortgage or
charge, together with a copy of the instrument, if any, verified in the specified manner, by which the
mortgage or charge is created or evidenced, with the registrar for registration within a period of thirty
days beginning with the day after the date of its creation:

       Provided that—

               (a)    in the case of a mortgage or charge created out of Pakistan comprising solely
                      property situated outside Pakistan, thirty days after the date on which the
                      instrument or copy could, in due course of post, and if dispatched with due
                      diligence, have been received in Pakistan shall be substituted for thirty days after
                      the date of the creation of the mortgage or charge as the time within which the
                      particulars and instrument or copy are to be filed with the registrar; and

               (b)    in case the mortgage or charge is created in Pakistan but comprises property
                      outside Pakistan, a copy of the instrument creating or purporting to create the
                      mortgage or charge verified in the specified manner may be filed for registration
                      notwithstanding that further proceedings may be necessary to make the mortgage
                      or charge valid or effectual according to the law of the country in which the
                      property is situate:

               Provided further that any subsequent registration of a mortgage or charge shall not
       prejudice any right acquired in respect of any property before the mortgage or charge is actually
       registered.

       (2)     This section applies to the following charges—

               (a)    a mortgage or charge on any immovable property wherever situate, or any interest
                      therein; or

               (b)    a mortgage or charge for the purposes of securing any issue of debentures;

               (c)    a mortgage or charge on book debts of the company;

               (d)    a floating charge on the undertaking or property of the company, including stock-
                      in-trade; or




                                               Page 91 of 401
               (e)     a charge on a ship or aircraft, or any share in a ship or aircraft;

               (f)     a charge on goodwill or on any intellectual property;

               (g)     a mortgage or charge or pledge, on any movable property of the company;


               (h)     a mortgage or charge or other interest, based on agreement for the issue of any
                       instrument in the nature of redeemable capital; or

               (i)     a mortgage or charge or other interest, based on conditional sale agreement,
                       namely, lease financing, hire-purchase, sale and lease back, and retention of title,
                       for acquisition of machinery, equipment or other goods:

                              Provided that where a negotiable instrument has been given to secure
                       the payment of any book debts of a company, the deposit of the instrument for the
                       purpose of securing an advance to the company shall not for the purpose of this
                       sub-section be treated as a mortgage or charge on those book debts.

                              Explanation.—For the purposes of this Act “charge” includes mortgage
                       or pledge.

        (3)      The registrar shall, on registration of a mortgage or charge under sub-section (1) issue a
certificate of registration under his signatures or authenticated by his official seal in such form and in such
manner as may be specified.

       (4)     The provisions of this section relating to registration shall apply to a company acquiring
any property subject to a mortgage or charge.

        (5)     Notwithstanding anything contained in any other law for the time being in force, no
mortgage or charge created by a company shall be taken into account by the liquidator or any other creditor
unless it is duly registered under sub-section (1) and a certificate of registration of such charge is given
by the registrar under sub-section (3).

      (6)    Nothing in sub-section (5) shall prejudice any contract or obligation for repayment of the
money thereby secured.

        (7)    Where any mortgage or charge on any property or assets of a company or any of its
undertakings is registered under this section, any person acquiring such property, assets, undertakings or
part thereof or any share or interest therein shall be deemed to have notice of the mortgage or charge
from the date of such registration.

        101. Particulars in case of series of debentures entitling holders pari passu.—Where a
series of debentures containing, or giving by reference to any other instrument, any charge to the benefit
of which the debenture-holders of that series are entitled pari passu is created by a company, it shall be
sufficient for the purposes of section 100 if there are filed with the registrar within thirty days after the



                                                  Page 92 of 401
execution of the deed containing the charge or, if there is no such deed, after the execution of any
debentures of the series, the following particulars, namely—

               (a)     the total amount secured by the whole series;

               (b)     the dates of the resolutions authorising the issue of the series and the date of the
                       covering deed, if any, by which the security is created or defined;

               (c)     a general description of the property charged; and

               (d)     the names of the trustees, if any, for the debenture-holders;

together with a copy of the deed verified in the specified manner containing the charge:

        Provided that, where more than one issue is made of debentures in the series, there shall be filed
with the registrar for entry in the register particulars of the date and amount of each issue, but an omission
to do this shall not affect the validity of the debentures issued.

        102. Register of charges to be kept by registrar.—(1) The registrar shall, in respect of every
company, keep a register containing particulars of the charges registered under this Part in such form and
in such manner as may be specified.

      (2)     A register kept in pursuance of this section shall be open to inspection by a person on
payment of such fees as may be prescribed.

        103. Index to register of mortgages and charges.—The registrar shall keep a chronological
index, in the form, containing such particulars, as may be specified, of the mortgages or charges registered
with him under the company law.

       104. Endorsement of certificate of registration on debenture or certificate of debenture
stock.—The company shall cause a copy of every certificate of registration given under section 100 to
be endorsed on every debenture or certificate of debenture stock which is issued by the company and the
payment of which is secured by the mortgage or charge so registered:

       Provided that in case the certificate of debenture or debenture stock is issued in the book- entry
form, appropriate disclosure in pursuance of this section shall be made in the manner as may be specified:

        Provided further that nothing in this section shall be construed as requiring a company to
cause a certificate of registration of any mortgage or charge so given, to be endorsed on any debenture
or certificate of debenture stock which has been issued by the company before the mortgage or charge
was created.

        105. Duty of company and right of interested party as regards registration.—(1) It shall
be the duty of a company to file with the registrar for registration the specified particulars of every
mortgage or charge created by the company and of the issue of debentures of a series, requiring
registration under section 100, but registration of any such mortgage or charge may be effected on the
application of any person interested therein.



                                                  Page 93 of 401
       (2)     Where the registration is affected on the application of some person other than the
company, that person shall be entitled to recover from the company the amount of any fees properly paid
by him to the registrar on the registration.

        106. Modification in the particulars of mortgage or charge.— Whenever the terms or
conditions or extent or operation of any mortgage or charge registered under this Part are modified, it shall
be the duty of the company to send to the registrar the particulars of such modification together with a
copy of the instrument evidencing such modification verified in the specified manner, and the provisions
of this Part as to registration of mortgage or charge shall apply to such modification of the mortgage or
charge as aforesaid.

        107. Copy of instrument creating mortgage or charge to be kept at registered office.—
Every company shall cause a copy of every instrument creating any mortgage or charge requiring
registration under this Part and of every instrument evidencing modification of the terms or conditions
thereof, to be kept at the registered office of the company.

       108.    Rectification of register of mortgages.—(1) The Commission on being satisfied that__

               (a)     the omission to file with the registrar the particulars of any mortgage or charge or
                       any modification therein within the time required by section 100 or 101, as the
                       case may be; or
               (b)     the omission or mis-statement of any particular with respect to any such mortgage
                       or charge;was accidental or due to inadvertence or to some other sufficient cause,
                       or is not of a nature to prejudice the position of creditors or shareholders of the
                       company, or that on other grounds it is just and equitable to grant relief, may, on
                       the application of the company or any person interested and, on such terms and
                       conditions as seem to the Commission just and expedient, order that the time for
                       filing the required particulars be extended, or, as the case may be, that the omission
                       or mis-statement be rectified, and may make such order as to the costs of the
                       application as it thinks fit.

       (2)     A copy of the order passed under this section duly certified by the Commission or its
authorised officer shall be forwarded to the concerned registrar within seven days from the date of the
order.

       (3)      Where the Commission extends the time for the registration of a mortgage or charge, the
order shall not prejudice any rights acquired in respect of the property concerned prior to the time when
the mortgage or charge is actually registered.

        109. Company to report satisfaction of charge.— (1) A company shall give intimation to the
registrar in the manner specified, of the payment or satisfaction, in full, of any mortgage or charge created
by it and registered under this Part, within a period of thirty days from the date of such payment or
satisfaction.




                                                 Page 94 of 401
        (2)    The registrar shall, on receipt of intimation under sub-section (1), cause a notice to be
sent to the holder of the mortgage or charge calling upon him to show cause within such time not
exceeding fourteen days, as may be specified in such notice, as to why payment or satisfaction in full shall
not be recorded as intimated to the registrar, and if no cause is shown, by such holder of the mortgage or
charge, the registrar shall accept the memorandum of satisfaction and make an entry in the register of
charges kept by him under section 102:

        Provided that the notice referred to in this sub-section shall not be required if a no objection
certificate on behalf of the holder of the mortgage or charge is furnished, along-with the intimation to be
submitted under sub-section (1).

       (3)    If any cause is shown, the registrar shall record a note to that effect in the register of
charges and shall inform the company.

        (4)     Nothing in this section shall be deemed to affect the powers of the registrar to make an
entry in the register of charges under section 102 or otherwise than on receipt of an intimation from the
company.

       (5)     If a company fails to file the particulars of satisfaction of mortgage or charge within the
period specified under this section, the required particulars may be submitted with the additional fee, as
may be specified and imposing the penalty as specified in this Part.

        110. Power of registrar to make entries of satisfaction and release in absence of
intimation from company.—The registrar may, on evidence being given to his satisfaction with respect
to any registered charge-

               (a)     that the debt for which the charge was given has been paid or satisfied in whole or
                       in part; or

               (b)     that part of the property or undertaking charged has been released from the charge
                       or has ceased to form part of the company’s property or undertaking;

enter in the register of charges a memorandum of satisfaction in whole or in part, or of the fact that part of
the property or undertaking has been released from the charge or has ceased to form part of the company’s
property or undertaking, as the case may be, and inform the parties concerned, notwithstanding the fact
that no intimation has been received by him from the company.

       111. Punishment for contravention. —Any violation of this Part shall be an offence liable to a
penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        112. Company’s register of mortgages and charges. —(1) Every company shall maintain a
register of mortgages and charges requiring registration under this Part, in such form and in such manner
as may be specified and any violation under this section shall be an offence punishable under this Act.

        (2)    The register of charges maintained under this section and the copies of instrument
creating any mortgage and charge or modification thereof, kept in pursuance of this part shall be open
to inspection of-



                                                  Page 95 of 401
                (a)     any member or creditor of the company without fee; and

                (b)     any other person on payment of such fee as may be fixed by the company for
                        each inspection.

        (3)     The refusal of inspection of the said copies or the register shall be an offence under this
section and any person guilty of an offence under this section shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on
the standard scale, and every officer of the company who knowingly authorises or permits the refusal
shall incur the like penalty, and in addition to the above penalty, the registrar may by order compel an
immediate inspection of the copies or register.

       (4)    If any officer of the company authorises or permits the omission of any entry required to be
made in pursuance of sub-section (1), shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

                                     RECEIVERS AND MANAGERS

        113. Registration of appointment of receiver or manager.—(1) Where in order to ensure
enforcement of security of a company’s property, a person obtains an order for the appointment of a
receiver or manager, or appoints such a receiver or manager under any powers contained in any
instrument, he shall within seven days of the order or of the appointment under the powers contained in
the instrument, file a notice of the fact with the registrar.

        (2)     Where a person appointed as a receiver or manager under this section ceases to act
as such, the person who had obtained the order or appointed such a receiver or manager pursuant to the
powers contained in any instrument shall on ceasing of the receiver or manager, give the registrar a
notice to that effect within seven days.

        (3)    The registrar shall enter the fact of which he is given notice under this section in the
register of mortgages and charges.

       (4)     Any violation of sub-sections (1) and (2) shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level
1 on the standard scale.

        114. Filing of accounts of receiver or manager.—(1) Every receiver of the property of a
company who has been appointed under the powers contained in any instrument, and who has taken
possession, shall within thirty days of expiry of every one hundred and eighty days while he remains
in possession, and also within thirty days on ceasing to act as receiver, file with the registrar an abstract
in the form specified of his receipts and payments during the period to which the abstract relates, and
shall also, within fifteen days of ceasing to act as receiver, file with the registrar notice to that effect, and
the registrar shall enter the notice in the register of mortgages and charges.

       (2)     Where a receiver of the property of a company has been appointed, every invoice, order
for goods, or business letter issued by or on behalf of the company or the receiver of the company, being
a document on or in which the name of the company appears, shall contain a statement that a receiver
has been appointed.




                                                   Page 96 of 401
        (3)     The provisions of sub-sections (1) and (2) shall apply to any person appointed to manage
the property of a company under any powers contained in an instrument in the same manner as they
apply to a receiver so appointed.

        (4)     Any contravention or default of this section by the receiver, or person appointed to
manage the property of the company referred to sub-section (3), shall be an offence liable to a penalty
of level 1 on the standard scale.

       115. Disqualification for appointment as receiver or manager.—The following shall not be
appointed as a receiver or manager of the company’s property, namely-

               (a)     a minor;

               (b)     a person who is of unsound mind and stands so declared by a competent court;

               (c)     a body corporate;

               (d)     a director of the company;

               (e)     an un-discharged insolvent unless he is granted leave by the court by which he
                       has been adjudged an insolvent; or

               (f)     a person disqualified by a Court from being concerned with or taking part in the
                       management of the company in any other way, unless he is granted leave by the
                       Court.

        116. Application to Court.—(l) A receiver or manager of the company’s property appointed
under the powers contained in any instrument may apply to the Court for directions in relation to any
particular matter arising in connection with the performance of his functions, and on any such application
the Court may give such direction, or may make such order declaring the rights of persons before the
Court, or otherwise, as the Court thinks just.

         (2)    A receiver or manager of the company’s property appointed as aforesaid shall, to the same
extent as if he had been appointed by order of a Court be personally liable on any contract entered into
by him in the performance of his functions, except in so far as the contract otherwise provides, and
entitled in respect of that liability to indemnity out of the assets; but nothing in this sub-section shall be
deemed to limit any right to indemnity which he would have apart from this sub-section, or to limit his
liability on contracts entered into without authority or to confer any right to indemnity in respect of that
liability.

       117. Power of Court to fix remuneration of receiver or manager.— (1) The Court may, on
an application made to it by the receiver or manager of the property, by order fix the amount to be paid
by way of remuneration to any person who, under the power contained in an instrument, has been
appointed as receiver or manager of the company’s property:

       Provided that the amount of remuneration shall not exceed such limits as may be specified.




                                                  Page 97 of 401
        (2) The power of the Court under sub-section (1) shall, where no previous order has been made
with respect thereto—

               (a)     extend to fixing the remuneration for any period before the making of the order or
                       the application therefore;

               (b)     be exercisable notwithstanding that the receiver or manager had died or ceased to
                       act before the making of the order or the application therefore; and

               (c)     where the receiver or manager has been paid or has retained for his remuneration
                       for any period before the making of the order any amount in excess of that so fixed
                       for that period, extend to requiring him or his representative to account for the
                       excess or such part thereof as may be specified in the order:

                               Provided that the power conferred by clause (c) shall not be exercised as
                       respects any period before the making of the application or the order unless in the
                       opinion of the Court there are special circumstances making it proper for the power
                       to be so exercised.

        (3) The Court may from time to time, on an application made either by the liquidator or by the
receiver or manager, or by the registrar, vary or amend an order made under sub-section (1) and issue
directions to the receiver respecting his duties and functions or any other matter as it may deem expedient:

       Provided that an order made under sub-section (1) shall not be varied so as to increase the amount
of remuneration payable to any person.

                                                PART VII

                            MANAGEMENT AND ADMINISTRATION

       118. Members of a company.—The subscribers to the memorandum of association are
deemed to have agreed to become members of the company and become members on its registration and
every other person-

               (a)     to whom is allotted, or who becomes the holder of any class or kind of shares; or

               (b)     in relation to a company not having a share capital, any person who has agreed
                       to become a member of the company;

and whose names are entered; in the register of members, are members of the company.




                                                 Page 98 of 401
                                        REGISTER AND INDEX OF MEMBERS

       119. Register of members.—(1) Every company shall keep a register of its members and any
contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an offence punishable
under this Act.

       (2)          There must be entered in the register such particulars of each member as may be specified.

        (3)    In the case of joint holders of shares or stock in a company, the company’s register of
members shall state the names of each joint holder. In other respects joint holders shall be regarded for
the purposes of this Part as a single member and the address of the person named first shall be entered in
the register;

        (4)    A person guilty of an offence under this section shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on
the standard scale.

        120. Index of members.—(1) Every company having more than fifty members shall keep an
index of the names of the members of the company, unless the register of members is in such a form as
to constitute in itself an index.

        (2)   The company shall make any necessary alteration in the index within fourteen days after
the date on which any alteration is made in the register of members.

       (3)     The index shall contain, in respect of each member, a sufficient indication to enable the
account of that member in the register to be readily found.

        (4)    A person guilty of an offence under this section shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on
the standard scale.

       121. Trust not to be entered on register.—No notice of any trust, expressed, implied or
constructive, shall be entered on the register of members of a company, or be receivable by the registrar.

       122. Register of debenture-holders.—(1) Every company shall keep a register of its
debenture-holders and any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall
be an offence punishable under this Act.

        (2)         There must be entered in the register such particulars of each debenture-holder as may be
specified.
                    1
       (3)              [*******]

        (4)    A person guilty of an offence under this section shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on
the standard scale.

       123. Index of debenture-holders.—(1) Every company having more than fifty debenture-
holders shall keep an index of the names of the debenture-holders of the company, unless the register
       1
           Omitted by Act No. XXVII of 2020. s.3




                                                    Page 99 of 401
of debenture-holders is in such a form as to constitute in itself an index and any contravention or default
in complying with requirement of this section shall be an offence punishable under this Act.

        (2)    The company shall make any necessary alteration in the index within fourteen days after
the date on which any alteration is made in the register of debenture-holders.

        (3)    The index shall contain, in respect of each debenture-holder, a sufficient indication to
enable the account of that debenture-holder in the register to be readily found.

        (4)    A person guilty of an offence under this section shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on
the standard scale.
             1
        [123A.         Record of ultimate beneficial owner.__(1) A company shall maintain
information of its ultimate beneficial owners in such form and manner, within such period and obtain
such declaration from its members as may be specified.

        Explanation-For the purpose of this section, the term “ultimate beneficial owner” means a natural
person who ultimately owns or controls a company, whether directly or indirectly, through at least twenty
five percent shares or voting rights or by exercising effective control in that company through such other
means, as may be specified.

         (2)     Every company shall, in such form and manner as may be specified, maintain a register
of its ultimate beneficial owners and shall timely record their accurate and updated particulars, including
any change therein, and provide a declaration to this effect to the registrar and where any government
is a member of a company such particulars of the relevant government shall be entered in the register of
ultimate beneficial owners in the specified manner.
        (3)             Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be liable
in case of,__
                        (a)           a director or officer of the company or any other person, to a penalty which
                                      may extend to one million rupees; and

                        (b)           the company, to a penalty which may extend to ten million rupees.]

       124. Rights to inspect and require copies.—(1) The registers and the index referred to in
sections 119, 120, 122 and 123 shall, be open to the inspection of members or debenture-holders
during business hours, subject to such reasonable restrictions, as the company may impose, so that not less
than two hours in each day be allowed.

        (2)    Inspection by any member or debenture-holder of the company shall be without charge,
and in the case of any other person on payment of such fee as may be fixed by the company for each
inspection.
        (3)    Any person may require a certified copy of register and index or any part thereof, on
payment of such fee as may be fixed by the company.
___________________________________________________________________________________
1
    Ins. by Act XXVII of 2020, s. 4




                                                              Page 100 of 401
       (4)    The certified copies requested under this section shall be issued within a period of seven
days, exclusive of the days on which the transfer book of the company is closed.

        (5)     A person seeking to exercise either of the rights conferred by this section must make a
request to the company to that effect.

       (6)     The request must contain the following information—

               (a)     in the case of an individual, his name and address;

               (b)     in the case of an organisation, its name and address and also of the authorised
                       person; and

               (c)     the purpose for which the information is to be used.

        (7)     Any refusal of inspection required under sub-section (1), or if any copy required under sub-
section (3) is not issued within the specified period shall be an offence and any person guilty of an offence
under this section shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale; and the registrar may by an
order compel an immediate inspection of the register and index or direct that copies required shall be
sent to the persons requiring them.

        125. Power to close register. — (1) A company may, on giving not less than seven days’
previous notice close its register of members, or the part of it relating to members holding shares of any
class, for any period or periods not exceeding in the whole thirty days in each year:

      Provided that the Commission may, on the application of the company extend the period
mentioned in sub-section (1), for a further period of fifteen days.

        (2)    In the case of listed company, notice for the purposes of sub-section (1), must be given by
advertisement in English and Urdu languages at least in one issue each of a daily newspaper of respective
language having wide circulation.
       (3)    The provision of this section shall also apply for the purpose of closure of register of
debenture-holders of a company.
       (4)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale.

       126.    Power of Court to rectify register.—(1) If—

               (a)     the name of any person is fraudulently or without sufficient cause entered in or
                       omitted from the register of members or register of debenture-holders of a
                       company; or

               (b)     default is made or unnecessary delay takes place in entering on the register
                       of members or register of debenture-holders the fact of the person having become
                       or ceased to be a member or debenture- holder;




                                                 Page 101 of 401
the person aggrieved, or any member or debenture-holder of the company, or the company, may apply
to the Court for rectification of the register.

        (2)      The Court may either refuse the application or may order rectification of the register on
payment by the company of any damages sustained by any party aggrieved, and may make such order
as to costs as it in its discretion thinks fit.

         (3)    On any application under sub-section (1) the Court may decide any question relating to
the title of any person who is a party to the application to have his name entered in or omitted from the
register, whether the question arises between members or debenture-holders or alleged members or
debenture-holders, or between members or alleged members, or debenture-holders or alleged debenture-
holders, on the one hand and the company on the other hand; and generally may decide any question which
it is necessary or expedient to decide for rectification of the register.

       (4)     Where the Court has passed an order under sub-section (3) that prima facie entry in or
omission from, the register of members or the register of debenture-holders the name or other particulars
of any person, was made fraudulently or without sufficient cause, the Court may send a reference for
adjudication of offence under section 127 to the court as provided under section 482.

         127. Punishment for fraudulent entries in and omission from register.—Anyone who
fraudulently or without sufficient cause enters in, or omits from the register of members or the register
of debenture-holders the name or other particulars of any person, shall be punishable with imprisonment
for a term which may extend to three years or with fine which may extend to one million rupees, or with
both.

         128. Notice to registrar of rectification of register.—When it makes an order for
rectification of the register of members in respect of a company which is required by this Act to file a
list of its members with the registrar, the Court shall cause a copy of the order to be forwarded to the
company and shall, by its order, direct the company to file notice of the rectification with the registrar
within fifteen days from the receipt of the order.

        129. Register to be evidence.—The registers referred to in sections 119 and 122 shall be prima
facie evidence of any matter which by this Act is directed or authorised to be inserted therein.

        130. Annual return.—(1) Every company having a share capital shall, once in each year,
prepare and file with the registrar an annual return containing the particulars in a specified form as on the
date of the annual general meeting or, where no such meeting is held or if held is not concluded, on the
last day of the calendar year.

        (2)    A company not having a share capital shall in each year prepare and file with the registrar
a return containing the particulars in a specified form as on the date of the annual general meeting or,
where no such meeting is held or if held is not concluded, on the last day of the calendar year.

        (3)      The return referred to in sub-section (1) or sub-section (2) shall be filed with the registrar
within thirty days from the date of the annual general meeting held in the year or, when no such meeting
is held or if held is not concluded, from the last day of the calendar year to which it relates:




                                                  Page 102 of 401
       Provided that, in the case of a listed company, the registrar may for special reasons extend the
period of filing of such return by a period not exceeding fifteen days.

       (4)    All the particulars required to be submitted under sub-section (1) and sub-section (2) shall
have been previously entered in one or more registers kept by the company for the purpose.

         (5)    Nothing in this section shall apply to a company, in case there is no change of particulars
in the last annual return filed with the registrar:

        Provided that a company, other than a single member company or a private company having paid
up capital of not more than three million rupees, shall inform the registrar in a specified manner that there
is no change of particulars in the last annual return filed with the registrar.

       (6)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable—

               (a)     in case of a listed company, to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale; and

               (b)     in case of any other company, to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

                                  MEETINGS AND PROCEEDINGS

       131. Statutory meeting of company.—(1) Every public company having a share capital shall,
within a period of one hundred and eighty days from the date at which the company is entitled to
commence business or within nine months from the date of its incorporation whichever is earlier, hold a
general meeting of the members of the company, to be called the “statutory meeting”:

        Provided that in case first annual general meeting of a company is decided to be held earlier, no
statutory meeting shall be required.

        (2)    The notice of a statutory meeting shall be sent to the members at least twenty-one days
before the date fixed for the meeting along-with a copy of statutory report.

       (3)     The statutory report shall state—

               (a)     the total number of shares allotted, distinguishing shares allotted other than in cash,
                       and stating the consideration for which they have been allotted;
               (b)     the total amount of cash received by the company in respect of all the shares
                       allotted;

               (c)     an abstract of the receipts of the company and of the payments made there out up
                       to a date within fifteen days of the date of the report, exhibiting under distinctive
                       headings the receipts of the company from shares and debentures and other
                       sources, the payments made there out, and particulars concerning the balance
                       remaining in hand, and an account or estimate of the preliminary expenses of the




                                                 Page 103 of 401
                       company showing separately any commission or discount paid or to be paid on the
                       issue or sale of shares or debentures;

               (d)     the names, addresses and occupations of the directors, chief executive, secretary,
                       auditors and legal advisers of the company and the changes, if any, which have
                       occurred since the date of the incorporation;

               (e)     the particulars of any contract the modification of which is to be submitted to the
                       meeting for its approval, together with the particulars of the modification or
                       proposed modification;

               (f)     the extent to which underwriting contracts, if any, have been carried out and the
                       extent to which such contracts have not been carried out, together with the reasons
                       for their not having been carried out; and

               (g)     the particulars of any commission or brokerage paid or to be paid in connection
                       with the issue or sale of shares to any director, chief executive, secretary or officer
                       or to a private company of which he is a director;

and certified by the chief executive and at least one director of the company, and in case of a listed
company also by the chief financial officer.

        (4)     The statutory report shall also contain a brief account of the state of the company’s affairs
since its incorporation and the business plan, including any change or proposed change affecting the
interest of shareholders and business prospects of the company.

        (5)     The statutory report shall, so far as it relates to the shares allotted by the company, the
cash received in respect of such shares and to the receipts and payments of the company, be accompanied
by a report of the auditors of the company as to the correctness of such allotment, receipt of cash, receipts
and payments.

       (6)     The directors shall cause a copy of the statutory report, along-with report of the auditors
as aforesaid, to be delivered to the registrar for registration forthwith after sending the report to the
members of the company.

       (7)     The directors shall cause a list showing the names, occupations, nationality and
addresses of the members of the company, and the number of shares held by them respectively, to be
produced at the commencement of the meeting and to remain open and accessible to any member of the
company during the continuance of the meeting.

        (8)    The members of the company present at the meeting shall be at liberty to discuss any
matter relating to the formation of the company or arising out of the statutory report, whether previous
notice has been given or not, but no resolution of which notice has not been given in accordance with the
articles may be passed.




                                                 Page 104 of 401
        (9)    The meeting may adjourn from time to time, and at any adjourned meeting any
resolution of which notice has been given in accordance with the articles, either before or after the original
meeting, may be passed, and an adjourned meeting shall have the same powers as an original meeting.

       (10) The provisions of this section shall not apply to a public company which converts itself
from a private company after one year of incorporation.

       (11) Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable—
               (a) in case of a listed company, to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale; and

               (b)     in case of any other company, to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        132. Annual general meeting.—(1) Every company, shall hold, an annual general meeting
within sixteen months from the date of its incorporation and thereafter once in every calendar year within
a period of one hundred and twenty days following the close of its financial year:

        Provided that, in the case of a listed company, the Commission, and, in any other case, the
registrar, may for any special reason extend the time within which any annual general meeting, shall be
held by a period not exceeding thirty days.

       (2)     An annual general meeting shall, in the case of a listed company, be held in the town in
which the registered office of the company is situate or in a nearest city:

        Provided that at least seven days prior to the date of meeting, on the demand of members residing
in a city who hold at least ten percent of the total paid up capital or such other percentage as may be
specified, a listed company must provide the facility of video-link to such members enabling them to
participate in its annual general meeting.

       (3)     The notice of an annual general meeting shall be sent to the members and every person
who is entitled to receive notice of general meetings at least twenty-one days before the date fixed for
the meeting:

       Provided that in case of a listed company, such notice shall be sent to the Commission, in
addition to its being dispatched in the normal course to members and the notice shall also be
published in English and Urdu languages at least in one issue each of a daily newspaper of
respective language having nationwide circulation.

       (4)     Nothing in this section shall apply to a single member company.

       (5)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable—

               (a)     in case of a listed company, to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale; and

               (b)     in case of any other company, to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.




                                                 Page 105 of 401
        133. Calling of extra-ordinary general meeting.—(1) All general meetings of a company,
other than the annual general meeting referred to in section 132 and the statutory meeting mentioned in
section 131, shall be called extra-ordinary general meetings.

       (2)    The board may at any time call an extra-ordinary general meeting of the company to
consider any matter which requires the approval of the company in a general meeting.

       (3)     The board shall, at the requisition made by the members—

               (a)     in case of a company having share capital, representing not less than one-tenth of
                       the total voting power as on the date of deposit of requisition; and

               (b)     in case of a company not having share capital, not less than one-tenth of the
                       total members;

forthwith proceed to call an extra-ordinary general meeting.

       (4)     The requisition shall state the objects of the meeting, be signed by the requisitionists and
deposited at the registered office of the company.

        (5)    If the board does not proceed within twenty-one days from the date of the requisition being
so deposited to cause a meeting to be called, the requisitionists, may themselves call the meeting, but in
either case any meeting so called shall be held within ninety days from the date of the deposit of the
requisition.

      (6)     Any meeting called under sub-section (5) by the requisitionists shall be called in the same
manner, as nearly as possible, as that in which meetings are to be called by board.

        (7)    Any reasonable expenses incurred by the requisitionists in calling a meeting under sub-
section (5) shall be re-imbursed to the requisitionists by the company and the sums so paid shall be
deducted from any fee or other remuneration payable to such of the directors who were in default in
calling the meeting.

       (8)     Notice of an extra-ordinary general meeting shall be served to the members in the manner
provided for in section 55:

        Provided that in case of a company other than listed, if all the members entitled to attend and vote
at any extraordinary general meeting so agree, a meeting may be held at a shorter notice.

       (9)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable—

               (a)     in case of a listed company, to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale; and

               (b)     in case of any other company, to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.




                                                Page 106 of 401
       134. Provisions as to meetings and votes.—(1) The following provisions shall apply to the
general meetings of a company or meetings of a class of members of the company, namely:

               (a)     notice of the meeting specifying the place and the day and hour of the meeting
                       alongwith a statement of the business to be transacted at the meeting shall be
                       given—

                       (i)     to every member or class of the members of the company as the case may
                               be;

                       (ii)    to every director;

                       (iii)   to any person who is entitled to a share in consequence of the death or
                               bankruptcy of a member, if the company has been notified of his
                               entitlement;

                       (iv)    to the auditors of the company;

                                       in the manner in which notices are required to be served by section
                               55, but the accidental omission to give notice to, or the non-receipt of
                               notice by, any member shall not invalidate the proceedings at any meeting;

               (b)     in case of a listed company, if certain members who hold ten percent of the total
                       paid up capital or such other percentage as may be specified, reside in a city, it
                       shall be mentioned in the notice that such members, may demand the company to
                       provide them the facility of video-link for attending the meeting.

       (2)     For the purposes of sub-section (1), in the case of an annual general meeting, all the
businesses to be transacted shall be deemed special, other than—

               (a)     the consideration of financial statements and the reports of the board and
                       auditors;

               (b)     the declaration of any dividend;

               (c)     the election and appointment of directors in place of those retiring; and

               (d)     the appointment of the auditors and fixation of their remuneration.

        (3)     Where any special business is to be transacted at a general meeting, there shall be
annexed to the notice of the meeting a statement setting out all material facts concerning such business,
including, in particular, the nature and extent of the interest, if any, therein of every director, whether
directly or indirectly, and, where any item of business consists of the according of an approval to any
document by the meeting, the time when and the place where the document may be inspected, shall be
specified in the statement.




                                                Page 107 of 401
       (4)     Members of a company may participate in the meeting personally, through video-link or
by proxy.

        (5)     The chairman of the board, if any, shall preside as chairman at every general meeting of
the company, but if there is no such chairman, or if at any meeting he is not present within fifteen minutes
after the time appointed for holding the meeting, or is unwilling to act as chairman, any one of the directors
present may be elected to be chairman, and if none of the directors is present or is unwilling to act as
chairman the members present shall choose one of their member to be the chairman.

       (6)     In the case of a company having a share capital, every member shall have votes
proportionate to the paid-up value of the shares or other securities carrying voting rights held by him
according to the entitlement of the class of such shares or securities, as the case may be:

       Provided that, at the time of voting, fractional votes shall not be taken into account.

        (7)    No member holding shares or other securities carrying voting rights shall be debarred from
casting his vote, nor shall anything contained in the articles have the effect of so debarring him.

        (8)     In the case of a company limited by guarantee and having no share capital, every member
thereof shall have one vote.

       (9)     On a poll, votes may be given either personally or through video-link or by proxy or
through postal ballot in a manner and subject to the conditions as may be specified.

        (10) Notwithstanding anything contained in this Act, the Commission shall have the power to
notify any business requiring the approval of the members shall only be transacted through postal ballot
for any company or class of companies.

        (11) All the requirements of this Act regarding calling of, holding and approval in general
meeting, board meeting and election of directors in case of a single member company, shall be deemed
complied with; if the decision is recorded in the relevant minutes book and signed by the sole member or
sole director as the case may be.

       (12) Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable—
               (a) in case of a listed company, to a penalty of level 3 on the standard scale; and

               (b)     in case of any other company, to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale.

       135.    Quorum of general meeting.—(1) The quorum of a general meeting shall be—

               (a)     in the case of a public listed company, unless the articles provide for a larger
                       number, not less than ten members present personally, or through video-link who
                       represent not less than twenty-five percent of the total voting power, either of their
                       own account or as proxies;




                                                 Page 108 of 401
               (b)    in the case of any other company having share capital, unless the articles provide
                      for a larger number, two members present personally, or through video-link who
                      represent not less than twenty-five percent of the total voting power, either of their
                      own account or as proxies;

               (c)    in the case of a company not having share capital, as provided in the articles:

                              Provided that, if within half an hour from the time appointed for the
                      meeting a quorum is not present, the meeting, if called upon the requisition of
                      members, shall be dissolved; in any other case, it shall stand adjourned to the same
                      day in the next week at the same time and place, and, if at the adjourned meeting
                      a quorum is not present within half an hour from the time appointed for the
                      meeting, the members present personally or through video-link being not less than
                      two shall be a quorum, unless the articles provide otherwise.

       (2)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable—

               (a)    in case of a listed company, to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale; and

               (b)    in case of any other company, to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        136. Power of the Court to declare the proceedings of a general meeting invalid.— The
Court may, on a petition, by members having not less than ten percent of the voting power in the company,
that the proceedings of a general meeting be declared invalid by reason of a material defect or omission
in the notice or irregularity in the proceedings of the meeting, which prevented members from using
effectively their rights, declare such proceedings or part thereof invalid and direct holding of a fresh
general meeting:

       Provided that the petition shall be made within thirty days of the impugned meeting.

       137. Proxies.—(1) A member of a company entitled to attend and vote at a meeting of the
company may appoint another person as his proxy to exercise all or any of his rights to attend, speak
and vote at a meeting:

       Provided that—

               (a)    unless the articles of a company otherwise provide, this sub-section shall not
                      apply in the case of a company not having a share capital;

               (b)    a member shall not be entitled to appoint more than one proxy to attend any
                      one meeting;




                                               Page 109 of 401
                    (c)       if any member appoints more than one proxy for any one meeting and more than
                              one instruments of proxy are deposited with the company, all such instruments of
                              proxy shall be rendered invalid; and

                    (d)       a proxy must be a member unless the articles of the company permit
                              appointment of a non-member as proxy.

       (2)    Subject to the provisions of sub-section (1), every notice of a meeting of a company shall
prominently set out the member’s right to appoint a proxy and the right of such proxy to attend, speak
and vote in the place of the member at the meeting and every such notice shall be accompanied by a
proxy form.

       (3)          The instrument appointing a proxy shall—

                    (a)       be in writing; and

                    (b)       be signed by the appointer or his attorney duly authorised in writing, or if the
                              appointer is a body corporate, 1[*****] be signed by an officer or an attorney duly
                              authorised by it.
       (4)    An instrument appointing a proxy, if in the form set out in Regulation 43 of Table A in
the First Schedule shall not be questioned on the ground that it fails to comply with any special
requirements specified for such instruments by the articles.

       (5)     The proxies must be lodged with the company not later than forty-eight hours before the
time for holding a meeting and any provision to the contrary in the company’s articles shall be void.

        (6)     In calculating the period mentioned in sub-section (5), no account shall be taken of any
part of the day that is not a working day.

       (7)    The members or their proxies shall be entitled to do any or all the following things in a
general meeting, namely—

                    (a)       subject to the provisions of section 143, demand a poll on any question; and
                    (b)       on a question before the meeting in which poll is demanded, to abstain from
                              voting or not to exercise their full voting rights;

and any provision to the contrary in the articles shall be void.

        (8)    Every member entitled to vote at a meeting of the company shall be entitled to inspect
during the business hours of the company all proxies lodged with the company.

        (9)   The provisions of this section shall apply mutatis mutandis to the meeting of a particular
class of members as they apply to a general meeting of all the members.
       1
           Omitted by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.14.




                                                      Page 110 of 401
       (10) Failure to issue notices in time or issuing notices with material defect or omission or any
other contravention of this section which has the effect of preventing participation or use of full rights
by a member or his proxy shall make the company and its every officer who is a party to the default or
contravention liable to—

                    (a)        a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale if the default relates to a listed company;
                               and

                    (b)        to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale if the default relates to any other
                               company.
         138. Representation of body corporate or corporation at meetings.— (1) A body
corporate or corporation (whether or not a company within the meaning of this Act) which is a member
of another company may, by resolution of its board or other governing body authorise an individual to
act as its representative at any meeting of that other company, and the individual so authorised shall be
entitled to exercise the same powers on behalf of the corporation which he represents.

        (2)    A body corporate or corporation (whether or not a company within the meaning of this
Act) which is a creditor of another company may, by resolution of its board or other governing body
authorise an individual to act as its representative at any meeting of the creditors of that other company
held in pursuance of this Act or any other meeting to which it is entitled to attend in pursuance of the
provisions contained in any instrument and the person so authorised shall be entitled to exercise the same
powers on behalf of the corporation which he represents.
        139. Representation of Federal Government at meetings of companies.—(1) The
concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government, or as the case may be, a Provincial
Government, as the case may be, if a member of a company, may appoint such individual as it thinks fit
to act as its representative at any meeting of the company or at any meeting of any class of members of
the company.

        (2)     An individual appointed to act as aforesaid shall, for the purpose of this Act, be deemed
to be a member of such a company and shall be entitled to exercise the same rights and powers, including
the right to appoint proxy, as the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government or as the case
may be, the Provincial Government, as the case may be, may exercise as a member of the company.

        140. Notice of resolution.—(1) The notice of a general meeting of a company shall state the
general nature of each business proposed to be considered and dealt with at a meeting, and in case of
special resolution, accompanied by the draft resolution.
       (2)     The members having not less than 1[five] percent voting power in the company may give
notice of a resolution and such resolution together with the supporting statement, if any, which they
propose to be considered at the meeting, shall be forwarded so as to reach the company—

                    (a)        in the case of a meeting requisitioned by the members, together with the
                               requisition for the meeting;

1Subs. by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.15.




                                                        Page 111 of 401
               (b)    in any other case, at least ten days before the meeting; and the company shall
                      forthwith circulate such resolution to all the members.

       (3)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable—

               (a)    in case of a listed company, to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale; and

               (b)    in case of any other company, to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        141. Voting to be by show of hands in first instance.—At any general meeting, a resolution
put to the vote of the meeting shall, unless a poll is demanded, be decided on a show of hands.

       142. Declaration by chairman on a show of hands.—(1) On a vote on a resolution at a
meeting on a show of hands, a declaration by the chairman that the resolution—

               (a)    has or has not been passed; or

               (b)    passed unanimously or by a particular majority;

is conclusive evidence of that fact without proof of the number or proportion of the votes recorded in
favour of or against the resolution.

       (2)    An entry in respect of such a declaration in minutes of the meeting recorded in
accordance with section 151 is also conclusive evidence of that fact without such proof.

        143. Demand for poll.—(1) Before or on the declaration of the result of the voting on any
resolution on a show of hands, a poll may be ordered to be taken by the chairman of the meeting of his
own motion, and shall be ordered to be taken by him on a demand made in that behalf by the members
present in person or through video-link or by proxy, where allowed, and having not less than one-tenth
of the total voting power.

      (2)      The demand for a poll may be withdrawn at any time by the members who made the
demand.

         144. Poll through secret ballot.—Notwithstanding anything contained in this Act, when a
poll is demanded on any resolution, it may be ordered to be taken by the chairman of the meeting by secret
ballot of his own motion, andshall be ordered to be taken by him on a demand made in that behalf by
the members present in person, through video-link or by proxy, where allowed, and having not less than
one-tenth of the total voting power.

       145. Time of taking poll.—(1) A poll demanded on the election of a chairman or on a question
of adjournment shall be taken forthwith and a poll demanded on any other question shall be taken at such
time, not more than fourteen days from the day on which it is demanded, as the chairman of the meeting
may direct.




                                               Page 112 of 401
       (2)   When a poll is taken, the chairman or his nominee and a representative of the members
demanding the poll shall scrutinize the votes given on the poll and the result shall be announced by the
chairman.

       (3)     Subject to the provisions of this Act, the chairman shall have power to regulate the manner
in which a poll shall be taken.

       (4)    The result of the poll shall be deemed to be the decision of the meeting on the resolution
on which the poll was taken.

       146. Resolutions passed at adjourned meeting.—Where a resolution is passed at an
adjourned meeting of—

               (a)     a company;

               (b)     the holders of any class of shares in a company;

               (c)     the board; or

               (d)     the creditors of a company;

the resolution shall, for all purposes, be treated as having been passed on the date on which it was in fact
passed, and shall not be deemed to have been passed on any earlier date.

        147. Power of Commission to call meetings.—(1) If default is made in holding the statutory
meeting, annual general meeting or any extraordinary general meeting in accordance with sections
131, 132 or 133, as the case may be, the Commission may, notwithstanding anything contained in this Act
or in the articles of the company, either of its own motion or on the application of any director or member
of the company, call, or direct the calling of, the said meeting of the company in such manner as the
Commission may think fit, and give such ancillary or consequential directions as the Commission thinks
expedient in relation to the calling, holding and conducting of the meeting and preparation of any
document required with respect to the meeting.

        Explanation.—The directions that may be given under sub-section (1) may include a direction
that one member of the company present in person or by proxy shall be deemed to constitute a meeting.

        (2)     Any meeting called, held and conducted in accordance with any such direction shall, for
all purposes, be deemed to be a meeting of the company duly called, held and conducted, and all expenses
incurred in connection thereto shall be paid by the company unless the Commission directs the same to
be recovered from any officer of the company which he is hereby authorised to do.

       148. Punishment for default in complying with provisions of section 147.—If any person
makes default in holding a meeting of the company in accordance with section 147 or in complying with
any directions of the Commission, shall be liable to a penalty of level 3 on the standard scale.




                                                Page 113 of 401
        149. Passing of resolution by the members through circulation.—(1) Except for the
businesses specified under sub-section (2) of section 134 to be conducted in the annual general meeting,
the members of a private company or a public unlisted company (having not more than fifty members),
may pass a resolution (ordinary or special) by circulation signed by all the members for the time being
entitled to receive notice of a meeting.

       (2)     Any resolution passed under sub-section (1), shall be as valid and effectual as if it had
been passed at a general meeting of the company duly convened and held.

        (3)     A resolution shall not be deemed to have been duly passed, unless the resolution has been
circulated, together with the necessary papers, if any, to all the members.

        (4)   A members’ agreement to a written resolution, passed by circulation, once signified, may
not be revoked.

      (5)     A resolution under sub-section (1) shall be noted at subsequent meeting of the members
and made part of the minutes of such meeting.

        150. Filing of resolution.—(1) Every special resolution passed by a company shall, within
fifteen days from the passing thereof, be filed with the registrar duly authenticated by a director or
secretary of the company.

        (2)    Where articles have been registered, a copy of every special resolution for the time being
in force shall be embodied in or annexed to every copy of the articles issued after the date of the
resolution.

      (3)     A copy of every special resolution shall be forwarded to any member at his request on
payment of such fee not exceeding the amount as the company may determine.

       (4)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

       151.    Records of resolutions and meetings.—(1) Every company shall keep records of—

               (a)    copies of all resolutions of members passed otherwise than at general
                      meetings; and

               (b)    minutes of all proceedings of general meetings along with the names of
                      participants, to be entered in properly maintained books;

       (2)     Minutes recorded in accordance with sub-section (1), if purporting to be authenticated by
the chairman of the meeting or by the chairman of the next meeting, shall be the evidence of the
proceedings at the meeting.




                                               Page 114 of 401
       (3)   Until the contrary is proved, every general meeting of the company in respect of the
proceedings whereof minutes have been so made shall be deemed to have been duly called, held and
conducted.

         (4)    The records must be kept at the registered office of the company from the date of the
resolution, meeting or decision simultaneously in physical and electronic form and it shall be preserved
for at least twenty years in physical form and permanently in electronic form.

       (5)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

       152. Inspection of records of resolutions and meetings.—(1) The books containing the
minutes of proceedings of the general meetings shall be open to inspection by members without charge
during business hours, subject to such reasonable restrictions as the company may by its articles or in
general meeting impose so that not less than two hours in each day be allowed for inspection.

       (2)     Any member shall at any time after seven days from the meeting be entitled to be
furnished, within seven days after he has made a request in that behalf to the company, with a certified
copy of the minutes of any general meeting at such charge not exceeding the amount as may be fixed
by the company.

        (3)     If any inspection required under sub-section (1) is refused, or if any copy required under
sub-section (2) is not furnished within the time specified therein, the person guilty of an offence shall be
liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale, and the registrar may direct immediate inspection or
supply of copy, as the case may be.

                       APPOINTMENT AND REMOVAL OF DIRECTORS

       153. Ineligibility of certain persons to become director.—A person shall not be eligible for
appointment as a director of a company, if he —

               (a)     is a minor;

               (b)     is of unsound mind;

               (c)     has applied to be adjudicated as an insolvent and his application is pending;

               (d)     is an undischarged insolvent;

               (e)     has been convicted by a court of law for an offence involving moral turpitude;

               (f)     has been debarred from holding such office under any provision of this Act;

               (g)     is lacking fiduciary behaviour and a declaration to this effect has been made by
                       the Court under section 212 at any time during the preceding five years;




                                                Page 115 of 401
               (h)    does not hold National Tax Number as per the provisions of Income Tax
                      Ordinance, 2001 (XLIX of 2001):

                              Provided that the Commission may grant exemption from the requirement
                      of this clause as may be notified.

               (i)    is not a member:

                              Provided that clause (i) shall not apply in the case of,—

                      (i)     a person representing a member which is not a natural person;
                      (ii)    a whole-time director who is an employee of the company;
                      (iii)   a chief executive; or
                      (iv)    a person representing a creditor or other special interests by virtue of
                              contractual arrangements;

               (j)    has been declared by a court of competent jurisdiction as defaulter in repayment
                      of loan to a financial institution;

               (k)    is engaged in the business of brokerage, or is a spouse of such person or is a
                      sponsor, director or officer of a corporate brokerage house:

                            Provided that clauses (j) and (k) shall be applicable only in case of listed
                      companies.

       154. Minimum number of directors of a company.—(1) Notwithstanding anything
contained in any other law for the time being in force,

               (a)    a single member company shall have at least one director;
               (b)    every other private company shall have not less than two directors;
               (c)    a public company other than a listed company shall have not less than three
                      directors; and
               (d)    a listed company shall have not less than seven directors:

                             Provided that public interest companies shall be required to have
                      female representation on their board as may be specified by the Commission.

       (2)     Only a natural person shall be a director.

       155. Number of directorships.—(1) No person shall, after the commencement of this Act,
hold office as a director, including as an alternate director at the same time in more than such number of
companies as may be specified:

       Provided that this limit shall not include the directorships in a listed subsidiary.



                                                Page 116 of 401
     (2)   A person holding the position of director in more than seven companies on the
commencement of this Act shall ensure the compliance of this section within one year of such
commencement.

        (3)     Any casual vacancy on the board of a listed company shall be filled up by the directors at
the earliest but not later than ninety days from the date, the vacancy occurred.

        156. Compliance with the Code of Corporate Governance.—The Commission may provide
for framework to ensure good corporate governance practices, compliance and matters incidental and
axillary for companies or class of companies in a manner as may be specified.

        157. First directors and their term.—(1) The number of directors and the names of the first
directors shall be determined by the subscribers of the memorandum and their particulars specified under
section 197 shall be submitted along with the documents for the incorporation of the company.

       (2)     The number of first directors may be increased by appointing additional directors by the
members in a general meeting. The first directors shall hold office until the election of directors in the first
annual general meeting of the company.

        158.    Retirement of first and subsequent directors.—(1) All directors of the company—

                (a)     on the date of first annual general meeting; or

                (b)     in case of subsequent directors on expiry of term of office of directors
                        mentioned in section 161,

shall stand retired from office and the directors so retiring shall continue to perform their functions until
their successors are elected.

        (2)     The directors so continuing to perform their functions shall take immediate steps to hold
the election of directors and in case of any impediment report such circumstances to the registrar within
forty-five days before the due date of the annual general meeting or extra ordinary general meeting, as the
case may be, in which elections are to be held:

       Provided that the holding of annual general meeting or extra ordinary general meeting, as the case
may be, shall not be delayed for more than ninety days from the due date of the meeting or such extended
time as may be allowed by the registrar, for reasons to be recorded, only in case of exceptional
circumstances beyond the control of the directors, or in compliance of any order of the court.

        (3)     The registrar, may on expiry of period as provided in sub-section (2), either—

                (a)     on its own motion; or

                (b)     on the representation of the members holding not less than one tenth of the total
                        voting powers in a company having share capital; or




                                                  Page 117 of 401
                 (c)    on the representation of the members holding not less than one tenth of the
                        total members of the company not having share capital of the company,

directs the company to hold annual general meeting or extra ordinary general meeting for the election
of directors on such date and time as may be specified in the order.


       (4)    Any officer of the company or any other person who fails to comply with the direction
given under sub-section (3) shall be guilty of an offence liable to a fine of level 2 on the standard scale.

        159. Procedure for election of directors.—(1) Subject to the provision of section 154, the
existing directors of a company shall fix the number of directors to be elected in the general meeting,
not later than thirty-five days before convening of such meeting and the number of directors so fixed
shall not be changed except with the prior approval of the general meeting in which election is to be held.

       (2)     The notice of the meeting at which directors are proposed to be elected shall among other
matters, expressly state—

                 (a)    the number of directors fixed under sub-section (1); and

                 (b)    the names of the retiring directors.

         (3)    Any member who seeks to contest an election to the office of director shall, whether he is
a retiring director or otherwise, file with the company, not later than fourteen days before the date of the
meeting at which elections are to be held, a notice of his intention to offer himself for election as a
director:

          Provided that any such person may, at any time before the holding of election, withdraw such
notice.

        (4)     All notices received by the company in pursuance of sub-section (3) shall be
transmitted to the members not later than seven days before the date of the meeting, in the same manner
as provided under this Act for sending of a notice of general meeting. In the case of a listed company such
notice shall be published in English and Urdu languages at least in one issue each of a daily newspaper
of respective language having wide circulation.

        (5)    The directors of a company having a share capital shall, unless the number of persons who
offer themselves to be elected is not more than the number of directors fixed under sub-section (1), be
elected by the members of the company in general meeting in the following manner, namely—

                 (a)    a member shall have such number of votes as is equal to the product of the number
                        of voting shares or securities held by him and the number of directors to be elected;

                 (b)    a member may give all his votes to a single candidate or divide them between
                        more than one of the candidates in such manner as he may choose; and



                                                 Page 118 of 401
                (c)     the candidate who gets the highest number of votes shall be declared elected
                        as director and then the candidate who gets the next highest number of votes shall
                        be so declared and so on until the total number of directors to be elected has been
                        so elected.

        (6)   The directors of a company limited by guarantee and not having share capital shall be
elected by members of the company in general meeting in the manner as provided in articles of association
of the company.

        160. Powers of the Court to declare election of directors invalid.— The Court may, on the
application of members holding ten percent of the voting power in the company, made within thirty days
of the date of election, declare election of all directors or any one or more of them invalid if it is satisfied
that there has been material irregularity in the holding of the elections and matters incidental or relating
thereto.

        161. Term of office of directors.—(1) A director elected under sections 159 or 162 shall hold
office for a period of three years unless he earlier resigns, vacates office due to fresh election required
under section 162 as the case may be, becomes disqualified from being a director or otherwise ceases to
hold office:

       Provided that the term of office of directors of a company limited by guarantee and not having
share capital may be a period of less than three years as provided in the articles of association of a
company.

        (2)    Any casual vacancy occurring among the directors may be filled up by the directors and
the person so appointed shall hold office for the remainder of the term of the director in whose place he is
appointed.

        162. Fresh election of directors.—(1) Notwithstanding anything contained in this Act, a
member having acquired, after the election of directors, the requisite shareholding to get him elected as
a director on the board of a company, may require the company to hold fresh election of directors in
accordance with the procedure laid down in section 159:

        Provided that the number of directors fixed in the preceding election shall not be decreased;

        Provided further that a listed company for the purpose of fresh election of directors under
this section shall follow such procedure as may be specified by the Commission.

        (2)     The board shall upon receipt of requisition under sub-section (1), as soon as
practicable but not later than thirty days from the receipt of such requisition, proceed to hold fresh
election of directors of the company.

        163. Removal of directors.—A company may by resolution in general meeting remove a
director appointed under sections 157, 161 or section 162 or elected in the manner provided for in section
159:




                                                  Page 119 of 401
      Provided that a resolution for removing a director shall not be deemed to have been passed if the
number of votes cast against it is equal to, or exceeds—

              (a)     the total number of votes for the time being computed in the manner laid
                      down in sub-section (5) of section 159 divided by the number of directors for the
                      time being, if the resolution relates to removal of a director appointed under
                      sections 157, 161 or section 162 or where the directors were elected unopposed;
                      or

              (b)     the minimum number of votes that were cast for the election of a director at
                      the immediately preceding election of directors, if the resolution relates to removal
                      of a director elected in the manner provided in sub-section (5) of section 159.

        164. Nominee directors.—(1) In addition to the directors elected or deemed to have been
elected by shareholders, a company may have directors nominated by the company’s creditors or other
special interests by virtue of contractual arrangements.

       (2)     A body corporate or corporation owned or controlled by the Federal Government or as the
case may be, a Provincial Government may also have directors nominated on the board to whom such
corporation or company has extended credit facilities.

      165. Certain provisions not to apply to directors representing special interests.—(1)
Nothing in sections 158, 159,161, 162 or 163 shall apply to—

              (a)     directors nominated by a body corporate or company or any other entity owned
                      or controlled, whether directly or indirectly, by the Federal Government or as the
                      case may be, a Provincial Government on the board of the company in which
                      such body corporate or company or entity has made investment;

              (b)     directors nominated by virtue of investment made by the Federal Government or
                      as the case may be, a Provincial Government or the Commission on the board; or

              (c)     directors nominated by foreign equity holders on the board or any other body
                      corporate set up under a regional co-operation or other co-operation arrangement
                      approved by the Federal Government.

       (2)    For the purpose of nominating directors referred to in clause (a), (b) and (c), the number
of votes computed in the manner laid down in sub-section (5) of section 159 as are proportionate to the
number of votes required to elect the director if they had offered themselves for election, shall stand
excluded from the total number of votes available to the nominating body at an election of directors,
which may be proportionate to their voting power required to elect directors at an election of directors
of a company.

      (3)    A director nominated under sub-section (1) shall hold office during the pleasure of the
nominating body.




                                               Page 120 of 401
       166. Manner of selection of independent directors and maintenance of databank of
independent directors.—(1) An independent director to be appointed under any law, rules, regulations
or code, shall be selected from a data bank containing names, addresses and qualifications of persons
who are eligible and willing to act as independent directors, maintained by any institute, body or
association, as may be notified by the Commission, having expertise in creation and maintenance of such
data bank and post on their website for the use by the company making the appointment of such directors:

        Provided that responsibility of exercising due diligence before selecting a person from the data
bank referred to above, as an independent director shall lie with the company or the Government, as
the case may be, making such appointment.

        (2)    For the purpose of this section, an independent director means a director who is not
connected or does not have any other relationship, whether pecuniary or otherwise, with the company,
its associated companies, subsidiaries, holding company or directors; and he can be reasonably
perceived as being able to exercise independent business judgment without being subservient to any
form of conflict of interest:

       Provided that without prejudice to the generality of this sub-section no director shall be
considered independent if one or more of the following circumstances exist—

              (a)     he has been an employee of the company, any of its subsidiaries or holding
                      company within the last three years;

              (b)     he is or has been the chief executive officer of subsidiaries, associated company,
                      associated undertaking or holding company in the last three years;

              (c)     he has, or has had within the last three years, a material business relationship with
                      the company either directly, or indirectly as a partner, major shareholder or
                      director of a body that has such a relationship with the company.

                             Explanation: The major shareholder means a person who, individually
                      or in concert with his family or as part of a group, holds 10% or more shares
                      having voting rights in the paid-up capital of the company;

              (d)     he has received remuneration in the three years preceding his/her appointment as
                      a director or receives additional remuneration, excluding retirement benefits from
                      the company apart from a director’s fee or has participated in the company’s stock
                      option or a performance-related pay scheme;

              (e)     he is a close relative of the company’s promoters, directors or major shareholders:

                             Explanation: “close relative” means spouse(s), lineal ascendants and
                      descendants and siblings;




                                               Page 121 of 401
               (f)     he holds cross-directorships or has significant links with other directors through
                       involvement in other companies or bodies not being the associations licenced under
                       section 42;

               (g)     he has served on the board for more than three consecutive terms from the date of
                       his first appointment, and for more than two consecutive terms in case of a public
                       sector company, provided that such person shall be deemed “independent director”
                       after a lapse of one term;

               (h)     a person nominated as a director under sections 164 and 165:

                              Provided further that for determining the independence of directors for
                       the purpose of sub-clauses (a), (b) and (c) in respect of public sector companies,
                       the time period shall be taken as two years instead of three years. Further, an
                       independent director in case of a public sector company shall not be in the service
                       of Pakistan or of any statutory body or anybody or institution owned or controlled
                       by the Government.

        (3)     The independent director of a listed company shall be elected in the same manner as other
directors are elected in terms of section 159 and the statement of material facts annexed to the notice of
the general meeting called for the purpose shall indicate the justification for choosing the appointee for
appointment as independent director.

       (4)     No individual shall be selected for the data bank referred to in sub-section (1) without his
consent in writing.

         (5)     The manner and procedure of selection of independent directors on the databank who
fulfill the qualifications and other requirements shall be specified by the Commission.

       (6)     The requirements of sub-section (1)—

               (a)     shall be deemed relaxed till such time a notification is issued by the Commission;
                       and

               (b)     may be relaxed by the Commission on an application made by the company
                       supported with the sufficient justification or the practical difficulty, as the case
                       may be.

       167. Consent to act as director to be filed with company.— (1) No person shall be appointed
or nominated as a director or chief executive of a company or represent as holding such office, nor shall
any person describe or name any other person as a director or proposed director or chief executive or
proposed chief executive of any company, unless such person or such other individual has given his
consent in writing to the company for such appointment or nomination.

        (2)     The consent given to the company under sub-section (1) shall be filed with the registrar
within fifteen days thereof.



                                                Page 122 of 401
       168. Validity of acts of directors.—The acts of a person acting as a director are valid
notwithstanding that it is afterwards discovered that there was a defect in his appointment; or he was
disqualified from holding office; or he had ceased to hold such office:

        Provided that, as soon as any such defect has come to notice, the director shall not exercise the
right of his office till the defect has been removed.

        169. Penalties.—Whoever contravenes or fails to comply with any of the provisions of
sections 154 to 168 or is a party to the contravention of the said provisions shall be liable to a penalty of
level 2 on the standard scale and may also be debarred by the authority which imposes the penalty from
becoming or continuing a director of the company for a period not exceeding three years.

       170. Restriction on director’s remuneration.—(l) The remuneration of a director for
performing extra services, including the holding of the office of chairman, shall be determined by the
board or the company in general meeting, as the case may be, in accordance with the provisions in the
company’s articles.

        (2)    The remuneration to be paid to any director for attending the meetings of the board or a
committee of directors shall not exceed the scale approved by the company or the board, as the case may
be, in accordance with the provisions of the articles.

       171.    Vacation of office by the directors.—(1) A director shall ipso facto cease to hold office
if—

               (a)     he becomes ineligible to be appointed as a director on any one or more of the
                       grounds enumerated in section 153;

               (b)     he absents himself from three consecutive meetings of the board without seeking
                       leave of absence;

               (c)     he or any firm of which he is a partner or any private company of which he is
                       a director—

                       (i)     without the sanction of the company in general meeting accepts or holds
                               any office of profit under the company other than that of chief executive
                               or a legal or technical adviser; or

                       (ii)    accepts a loan or guarantee from the company in contravention of section
                               182.

        (2)     Nothing contained in sub-section (l) shall be deemed to preclude a company from
providing by its articles that the office of director shall be vacated on any grounds additional to those
specified in that sub-section.




                                                 Page 123 of 401
               DISQUALIFICATION OF DIRECTORS BY THE COMMISSION

      172. Disqualification orders.—(1) In any of the circumstances stated hereunder, the
Commission may pass a disqualification order against a person to hold the office of a director of a
company for a period up to five years beginning from the date of order—

              (a)    conviction of an offence in connection with the promotion, formation,
                     management or liquidation of a company, or with the receivership or management
                     of a company’s property;

              (b)    persistent default in relation to provisions of this Act requiring any return, account
                     or other document to be filed with, delivered or sent, or notice of any matter to be
                     given, to the Commission or the registrar;

              (c)    a person has been a director of a company which became insolvent at any time
                     (while he was a director or subsequently):

                             Provided that order against any such person shall not be made after the end
                     of the period of two years beginning with the day on which the company of which
                     that person is or has been a director became insolvent;

              (d)    the business of the company in which he is or has been a director, has conducted
                     to defraud its creditors, members or any other persons or for a fraudulent or
                     unlawful purpose, or in a manner oppressive of any of its members or that the
                     company was formed for any fraudulent or unlawful purpose; or

              (e)    the person concerned in the formation of the company or the management of its
                     affairs have in connection therewith been guilty of fraud, misfeasance, breach of
                     trust or other misconduct towards the company or towards any of its member; or

              (f)    the affairs of the company of which he is a director have been conducted in
                     a manner which has deprived the shareholders thereof of a reasonable return; or

              (g)    the person has been convicted of allotment of shares of a company for inadequate
                     consideration; or

              (h)    the person is involved in illegal deposit taking; or

              (i)    the person has been convicted of financial irregularities or malpractices in a
                     company; or

              (j)    the company of which he is a director has acted against the interests of the
                     sovereignty and integrity of Pakistan, the security of the State, friendly relations
                     with foreign States; or




                                              Page 124 of 401
               (k)    the company of which he is a director refuses to act according to the requirements
                      of the memorandum or articles or the provisions of this Act or fail to carry out the
                      directions of the Commission given in the exercise of powers under this Act; or

               (l)    the person is convicted of insider trading or market manipulation practices; or

               (m)    the person has entered into a plea bargain arrangement with the National
                      Accountability Bureau or any other regulatory body;

               (n)    the person has been declared a defaulter by the securities exchange;

               (o)    that it is expedient in the public interest so to do.

        (2)     Where a disqualification order is made against a person who is already subject to such an
order, the periods specified in those orders shall run concurrently.

      (3)     An order under this section may be made by the Commission on its own motion or upon
a complaint made in this regard.

        (4)     Before making an order the Commission shall afford the person concerned an opportunity
of representation and of being heard.

       (5)     Any order made by the Commission under this section shall be without prejudice to the
powers of the Commission to take such further action as it deems fit with regard to the person concerned.

       173. Personal liability for company’s debts where person acts while disqualified.—(1) A
person shall be personally responsible for all the relevant debts of a company if at any time—

               (a)    in contravention of a disqualification order under section 172, he is involved in
                      the management of the company, or

               (b)    as a person who is involved in the management of the company, he acts on
                      instructions given without the leave of the Commission by a person whom he knows
                      at that time to be the subject of a disqualification order:

                               Provided that where the decision is taken in the board, the disqualified
                      director shall be personally responsible to the extent of proportionate amount of
                      liability so incurred.

       (2)   Where a person is personally responsible under this section for the relevant debts of a
company, he is jointly and severally liable in respect of those debts with the company and any other
person who, whether under this section or otherwise, is so liable.

       (3)     For the purposes of this section, the relevant debts of a company are__




                                                Page 125 of 401
               (a)     in relation to a person who is personally responsible under paragraph (a) of sub-
                       section (1), such debts and other liabilities of the company as are incurred at a
                       time when that person was involved in the management of the company; and

               (b)     in relation to a person who is personally responsible under paragraph (b) of that
                       sub-section, such debts and other liabilities of the company as are incurred at a time
                       when that person was acting on instructions given as mentioned in that paragraph.

        (4)     For the purposes of this section, company means a public interest company and a person
shall be deemed involved in the management of the company, if he is a director or concerned, whether
directly or indirectly or takes part in the management of such company.

        174. Prohibition on assignment of office by directors.—(1) A director of any company shall
not assign his office to any other person and any such appointment shall be void ab-initio.

       (2)    Notwithstanding anything contained in sub-section (1), the appointment by a director,
with the approval of the board, of an alternate or substitute director to act for him during his absence
from Pakistan of not less than ninety days, shall not be deemed to be an assignment of office.

       (3)    The alternate director appointed under sub-section (2) shall ipso facto vacate office if and
when the director appointing him returns to Pakistan.

        175. Penalty for unqualified person acting as director.—If a person who is not qualified to
be a director or chief executive or who has otherwise vacated the office of director or chief executive
describes or represents himself or acts as a director or chief executive, or allows or causes himself to be
described as such, shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        176. Proceedings of the board.—(1) The quorum for a meeting of board of a listed company
shall not be less than one-third of number of directors or four, whichever is greater and the participation
of the directors by video conferencing or by other audio visual means shall also be counted for the
purposes of quorum under this sub-section:

      Provided that if at any time, there are not enough directors to form a quorum to fill a casual
vacancy, all the remaining directors shall be deemed to constitute a quorum for this limited purpose.

        (2)      The quorum for a meeting of the board of other than listed company shall be as provided
in the articles.

       (3)     The board of a public company shall meet at least once in each quarter of a year.

        (4)      If a meeting of the board is conducted in the absence of a quorum or a meeting of board
is not held as required by sub-section (3), the chairman of the directors and the directors shall be liable—

               (a)     if the default relates to a listed company, to a penalty of level 2 on the standard
                       scale; and




                                                Page 126 of 401
                       (b)       if the default relates to any other company, to a penalty of level 1 on the standard
                                 scale.

       177. Ineligibility of bankrupt to act as director.—If any person being an undischarged
insolvent acts as chief executive or director of a company, he shall be liable to imprisonment for a term
not exceeding two years or to a fine not exceeding one hundred thousand rupees, or to both.

      178. Records of resolutions and meetings of board.—(1) Every company shall keep records
comprising—

                       (a)       all resolutions of the board passed by circulation; and

                       (b)       minutes of all proceedings of board meetings or committee of directors along with
                                 the names of participants, to be entered in properly maintained books.

       (2)     Minutes recorded in accordance with sub-section (1), if purporting to be authenticated by
the chairman of the meeting or by the chairman of the next meeting, shall be the evidence of the
proceedings at the meeting.

        (3)    Until the contrary is proved, every meeting of board or committee of directors in respect
of the proceedings whereof minutes have been so made shall be deemed to have been duly called, held
and conducted.

       (4)    A copy of the draft minutes of meeting of board shall be furnished to every director within
fourteen days of the date of meeting.

         (5)     The records must be kept at the registered office of the company from the date of the
resolution, meeting or decision simultaneously in physical and electronic form and it shall be preserved
for at least ten years in physical form and permanently in electronic form.

       (6)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        179. Passing of resolution by the directors through circulation.—(1) A resolution in writing
1
 [approved by majority of] the directors or the committee of directors for the time being entitled to
receive notice of a meeting of the directors or committee of directors shall be as valid and effectual as if it
had been passed at a meeting of the directors or the committee of directors duly convened and held.

        (2)     A resolution shall not be deemed to have been duly passed, unless the resolution has been
circulated, together with the necessary papers, if any, to all the directors.

       (3)    A resolution under sub-section (1) shall be noted at a subsequent meeting of the board or
the committee thereof, as the case may be, and made part of the minutes of such meeting.

___________________________________________________________________________________
1
    Subs. by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.16




                                                          Page 127 of 401
      (4)     A directors’ agreement to a written resolution, passed by circulation, once 1[approved],
may not be revoked.
        180. Liabilities of directors and officers.— Any provision, whether contained in the
articles of a company or in any contract with a company or otherwise, for exempting any officer
or auditor of the company, from, or indemnifying him against, any liability which by virtue of any
law would otherwise attach to him in respect of any negligence, default, breach of duty or breach
of trust of which he may be guilty in relation to the company, shall be void except as otherwise
specified for:

                 (a)       provisions of insurance undertaken by a company on behalf of such officers
                           of the company; or
                 (b)       qualifying third party indemnity provisions undertaken by a company on
                           behalf of such officers of the company:

                                  Provided that, notwithstanding anything contained in this section, a
                           company may, in pursuance of any such provision as aforesaid, indemnify
                           any such director, chief executive, officer against any liability incurred by him
                           in defending any proceedings, whether civil or criminal, in which judgment is
                           given in his favour or in which he is acquitted, or in connection with any
                           application under section 493 in which relief is granted to him.

       181. Protection to independent and non-executive directors.—(1) Notwithstanding anything
contained in this Act—

                 (a)       an independent director; and

                 (b)       a non-executive director;

shall be held liable, only in respect of such acts of omission or commission by a listed company or a public
sector company which had occurred with his knowledge, attributable through board processes, and with
his consent or connivance or where he had not acted diligently.

       (2)   For the purpose of this section a non-executive director means, a person on the board of
the company who-

                 (a)       is not from among the executive management team and may or may not be
                           independent;

                 (b)       is expected to lend an outside viewpoint to the board of a company;

                 (c)       does not undertake to devote his whole working time to the company and not
                           involve in managing the affairs of the company;
       1Subs. by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.16.




                                                   Page 128 of 401
               (d)     is not a beneficial owner of the company or any of its associated companies or
                       undertakings;

               (e)     does not draw any remuneration from the company except the meeting fee.

       182.    Loans to directors: requirement of members’ approval.—(1) A company shall not—

               (a)     make a loan to a director of the company or of its holding company; or to any of
                       his relatives;

               (b)     give a guarantee or provide security in connection with a loan made by any person
                       to such a director; or to any of his relatives;

unless the transaction has been approved by a resolution of the members of the company:

        Provided that in case of a listed company, approval of the Commission shall also be required
before sanctioning of any such loan.

       Explanation.—For the purpose of this section “relative” in relation to a director means his spouse
and minor children.

       (2)      Nothing contained in sub-section (1) shall apply to a company which in the ordinary
course of its business provides loans or gives guarantees or securities for the due repayment of any loan.

       (3)      Every person who is a party to any contravention of this section, including in particular any
person to whom the loan is made or who has taken the loan in respect of which the guarantee is given or
the security is provided, shall be punishable with fine which may extend to one million rupees or with
simple imprisonment for a term which may extend to one year.

       (4)     All persons who are parties to any contravention of sub-section (1) shall be liable, jointly
and severally, to the lending company for the repayment of the loan or for making good the sum with
markup not less than the borrowing cost of the lending company which the lending company may have
been called upon to pay by virtue of the guarantee given or the security provided by such company.

        (5)     Sub-section (1) shall apply to any transaction represented by a book-debt which was
from its inception in the nature of a loan or an advance.

        183. Powers of board.—(1) The business of a company shall be managed by the board, who
may exercise all such powers of the company as are not by this Act, or by the articles, or by a special
resolution, required to be exercised by the company in general meeting.

      (2)      The board shall exercise the following powers on behalf of the company, and shall do so
by means of a resolution passed at their meeting, namely:—

               (a)     to issue shares;




                                                 Page 129 of 401
(b)   to issue debentures or any instrument in the nature of redeemable capital;

(c)   to borrow moneys otherwise than on debentures;

(d)   to invest the funds of the company;

(e)   to make loans;

(f)   to authorise a director or the firm of which he is a partner or any partner of such
      firm or a private company of which he is a member or director to enter into any
      contract with the company for making sale, purchase or supply of goods or
      rendering services with the company;

(g)   to approve financial statements;

(h)   to approve bonus to employees;

(i)   to incur capital expenditure on any single item or dispose of a fixed asset in
      accordance with the limits as may be specified:

              Provided that the acceptance by a banking company in the ordinary course
      of its business of deposit of money from the public repayable on demand or
      otherwise and withdrawable by cheque, draft, order or otherwise, or placing of
      moneys on deposit by a banking company with another banking company such
      conditions as the board may prescribe, shall not be deemed to be a borrowing of
      money or, as the case may be, a making of loan by a banking company with the
      meaning of this section;

(j)   to undertake obligations under leasing contracts exceeding such amount as may
      be notified;

(k)   to declare interim dividend; and

(l)   having regard to such amount as may be determined to be material (as construed in
      Generally Accepted Accounting Principles) by the board—

      (i)     to write off bad debts, advances and receivables;

      (ii)    to write off inventories and other assets of the company; and

      (iii)   to determine the terms of and the circumstances in which a law suit may
              be compromised and a claim or right in favour of a company may be
              released, extinguished or relinquished.




                               Page 130 of 401
               (m)     to take over a company or acquire a controlling or substantial stake in another
                       company;

               (n)     any other matter which may be specified.

        (3)     The board of a company shall not except with the consent of the general meeting either
specifically or by way of an authorisation, do any of the following things, namely.—

               (a)     sell, lease or otherwise dispose of the undertakings or a sizeable part thereof unless
                       the main business of the company comprises of such selling or leasing; and

                               Explanation.—For the purposes of this clause-

                       (i)     “undertaking” shall mean an undertaking in which the investment of the
                               company exceeds twenty percent of its net worth as per the audited
                               financial statements of the preceding financial year or an undertaking
                               which generates twenty percent of the total income of the company during
                               the previous financial year;

                       (ii)    the expression “sizeable part” in any financial year shall mean twenty five
                               percent or more of the value of the assets in that class as per the audited
                               financial statements of the preceding financial year;

               (b)     sell or otherwise dispose of the subsidiary of the company;

               (c)     remit, give any relief or give extension of time for the repayment of any debt
                       outstanding against any person specified in sub-section (1) of section 182.

       (4)      Nothing contained in sub-section (3) shall entitle a listed company to sell or otherwise
dispose of the undertaking, which results in or may lead to closure of business operation or winding up of
the company, without there being a viable alternate business plan duly authenticated by the board.

        (5)    Any resolution passed under sub-section (3) if not implemented within one year from the
date of passing shall stand lapsed.

        (6)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale and shall be individually and severally liable for
losses or damages arising out of such action.

       184. Prohibition regarding making of political contributions.—(1) Notwithstanding
anything contained in this Act, a company shall not contribute any amount or allow utilization of its
assets—

               (a)     to any political party; or

               (b)     for any political purpose to any individual or body.




                                                    Page 131 of 401
       (2)     If a company contravenes the provisions of sub-section (1), then—

               (a)     the company shall be liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale; and

               (b)     every director and officer of the company who is in default shall be punishable
                       with imprisonment of either description for a term which may extend to two
                       years and shall also be liable to a fine of one million rupees.



         185. Prohibition regarding distribution of gifts.—(1) Notwithstanding anything contained
in this Act, a company shall not distribute gifts in any form to its members in its meeting.

       (2)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

                                          CHIEF EXECUTIVE

       186. Appointment of first chief executive.—(1) Every company shall have a chief executive
appointed in the manner provided in this section and section 187.

      (2)     The name of first chief executive shall be determined by the subscribers of the
memorandum and his particulars specified under section 197 shall be submitted along with the
documents for the incorporation of the company.

       (3)      The first chief executive shall, unless he earlier resigns or otherwise ceases to hold office,
hold office up to the first annual general meeting of the company or, if a shorter period is fixed by the
subscribers at the time of his appointment, for such period.

       (4)    Notwithstanding anything contained in this section, the Government shall have the
power to nominate chief executive of a public sector company in such manner as may be specified.

        187. Appointment of subsequent chief executive.—(1) Within fourteen days from the date
of election of directors under section 159 or the office of the chief executive falling vacant, as the case
may be, the board shall appoint any person, including an elected director, to be the chief executive, but
such appointment shall not be for a period exceeding three years from the date of appointment:

        Provided that the chief executive appointed against a casual vacancy shall hold office till the
directors elected in the next election appoint a chief executive.

        (2)    On the expiry of his term of office under section 186 or sub-section (1) of this section, a
chief executive shall be eligible for reappointment.

        (3)      The chief executive retiring under section 186 or this section shall continue to perform his
functions until his successor is appointed, unless non-appointment of his successor is due to any fault on
his part or his office is expressly terminated.



                                                 Page 132 of 401
        (4)   Notwithstanding anything contained in this section, the Government shall have the power
to nominate chief executive of a company where majority of directors is nominated by the Government,
in such manner as may be specified.

       188. Terms of appointment of chief executive.—(1) Save as provided in sub-section (2), the
terms and conditions of appointment of a chief executive shall be determined by the board or the
company in general meeting in accordance with the provisions in the company’s articles.

       (2)     The terms and conditions of appointment of a chief executive nominated under section 186
or 187 shall be determined by the Government, in such manner as may be specified.

         (3)    The chief executive shall if he is not already a director of the company, be deemed to be
its director and be entitled to all the rights and privileges, and subject to all the liabilities, of that office.

        189. Restriction on appointment of chief executive.—No person who is ineligible to become
a director of a company under section 153 or disqualified under sections 171 or 172 shall be appointed
or continue as the chief executive of any company.

        190. Removal of chief executive.—(1) The board by resolution passed by not less than three-
fourths of the total number of directors for the time being, or the company by a special resolution, may
remove a chief executive before the expiration of his term of office notwithstanding anything
contained in the articles or in any agreement between the company and such chief executive.

       (2)     Notwithstanding anything contained in this section, the Government or an authority or
a person authorized by it shall have the power to remove chief executive of a company where more than
seventy-five percent of the voting rights are held by the Government.

        191. Chief executive not to engage in business competing with company’s business.— (1)
A chief executive of a public company shall not directly or indirectly engage in any business which is
of the same nature as and directly competes with the business carried on by the company of which he is
the chief executive or by a subsidiary of such company.

         Explanation.—A business shall be deemed to be carried on indirectly by the chief executive
if the same is carried on by his spouse or any of his minor children.

       (2)   Every person who is appointed as chief executive of a public company shall forthwith on
such appointment disclose to the company in writing the nature of such business and his interest therein.

        192. Chairman in a listed company.—(1) The board of a listed company shall within
fourteen days from the date of election of directors, appoint a chairman from among the non- executive
directors who shall hold office for a period of three years unless he earlier resigns, becomes ineligible or
disqualified under any provision of this Act or removed by the directors.

        (2)    The board shall clearly define the respective roles and responsibilities of the chairman and
chief executive:




                                                   Page 133 of 401
      Provided that the Commission may specify the classes of companies for which the chairman
and chief executive shall not be the same individual.

       (3)      The chairman shall be responsible for leadership of the board and ensure that the board
plays an effective role in fulfilling its responsibilities.

        (4)    Every financial statements circulated under section 223 of this Act shall contain a review
report by the chairman on the overall performance of the board and effectiveness of the role played by
the board in achieving the company’s objectives.

       193. Penalty.—Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of sections
186 to 192 shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale and may also be
debarred by the authority which imposes the penalty from becoming a director or chief executive of a
company for a period not exceeding five years.

        194. Public company required to have secretary.—A public company must have a company
secretary; possessing such qualification as may be specified.

        195. Listed company to have share registrar.—Every listed company shall have an
independent share registrar possessing such qualifications and performing such functions as may be
specified.

       196. Bar on appointment of sole purchase, sales agents.—(1) No company whether
incorporated in Pakistan or outside Pakistan which is carrying on business in Pakistan shall, without the
approval of the Commission, appoint any sole purchase, sale or distribution agent:

       Provided that this sub-section shall not apply to a sole purchase, sale or distribution agent
appointed by a company incorporated, outside Pakistan, unless the major portion of the business of such
company is conducted in Pakistan.

        (2)    Whoever contravenes any of the provisions of this section shall be punished with
imprisonment for a term which may extend to two years, or with fine which may extend to one hundred
thousand rupees, or with both; and, if the person guilty of the offence is a company or other body
corporate, every director, chief executive, or other officer, agent or partner thereof shall, unless he proves
that the offence was committed without his knowledge or that he exercised all due diligence to prevent
its commission, be deemed to be guilty of the offence.

                      REGISTER OF DIRECTORS AND OTHER OFFICERS

        197. Register of directors, officers.—(1) Every company shall keep at its registered office a
register of its directors and officers, including the chief executive, company secretary, chief financial
officer, auditors and legal adviser, containing with respect to each of them such particulars as may be
specified.




                                                 Page 134 of 401
       (2)     Every person referred to in sub-section (1) shall, within a period of ten days of his
appointment or any change therein, as the case may be, furnish to the company the particulars specified
under sub-section (1).

        (3)      Every company shall, within a period of fifteen days from the date of appointment of any
person referred in sub-section (1) or any change among them, or in any of their particulars, file with the
registrar a return in the specified form:

       Provided that this sub-section shall not apply to the first appointment made at the time of
incorporation of the company.

        (4)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of sub-section (1) or sub-
section (3) shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        (5)      If the name of any person is fraudulently or without sufficient cause entered in or omitted
from the register of directors of a company the person aggrieved or the company, may apply to the Court
for rectification of the register of directors.

        (6)   The Court may either refuse the application or may order rectification of the register on
such terms and conditions as it may deem fit and may make order as to costs.

       (7)     Where the Court has passed and order under sub-section (6) that prima facie entry in or
omission from, the register of directors the name or other particulars of any person, was made
fraudulently or without sufficient cause, the Court may send a reference for adjudication of offence under
sub-section (8) to the court as provided in section 482.

        (8)     Anyone who fraudulently or without sufficient cause enters in, or omits from the register
of directors the name or other particulars of any person, shall be punishable with imprisonment for a
term which may extend to three years or with fine which may extend to one million rupees, or with both.

        (9)     When it makes an order for rectification of the register of directors in respect of a
company, the Court shall cause a copy of the order to be forwarded to the company and shall, by its
order, direct the company to file notice of the rectification with the registrar within fifteen days from the
receipt of the order.

        198. Rights to inspect.—(1) The register kept under section 197 shall, be open to the
inspection of any member of the company and of any other person during business hours, subject to such
reasonable restrictions, as the company may impose by its articles or in general meeting, so that not less
than two hours in each day are allowed.

       (2)     Inspection by any member of the company shall be without charge, and in the case of any
other person on payment of such fee as may be fixed by the company for each inspection.

       (3)    A person seeking to exercise the rights conferred by this section must make a request to
the company to that effect.




                                                 Page 135 of 401
       (4)     The request must contain the following information—

               (a)     in the case of an individual, his name and address;

               (b)     in the case of an organisation, its name and address and also of the authorised
                       person; and

               (c)     the purpose for which the information is to be used.

        (5)     In the case any inspection is refused, the registrar on application made by the person to
whom inspection has been refused and upon notice to the company, may by order direct an immediate
inspection of the register.

       (6)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

MISCELLANEOUS PROVISIONS REGARDING INVESTMENTS, CONTRACTS OFFICERS
            AND SHAREHOLDINGS, TRADING AND INTERESTS

       199. Investments in associated companies and undertaking.—(1) A company shall not make
any investment in any of its associated companies or associated undertakings except under the authority
of a special resolution which shall indicate the nature, period, amount of investment and terms and
conditions attached thereto.

        Explanation: The term investment’ shall include equity, loans, advances, guarantees, by
whatever name called, except for the amount due as normal trade credit, where the terms and conditions
of trade transaction(s) carried out on arms-length and in accordance with the trade policy of the company.

        (2)     The company shall not invest in its associated company or associated undertaking by
way of loans or advances except in accordance with an agreement in writing and such agreement shall inter-
alia include the terms and conditions specifying the nature, purpose, period of the loan, rate of return,
fees or commission, repayment schedule for principal and return, penalty clause in case of default or late
repayments and security, if any, for the loan in accordance with the approval of the members in the general
meeting:

        Provided that the return on such investment shall not be less than the borrowing cost of the
investing company or the rate as may be specified by the Commission whichever is higher and shall be
recovered on regular basis in accordance with the terms of the agreement, failing which the directors
shall be personally liable to make the payment:

        Provided further that the directors of the investing company shall certify that the investment is made
after due diligence and financial health of the borrowing company is such that it has the ability to repay
the loan as per the agreement.

       (3)     The Commission may—




                                                 Page 136 of 401
               (a)    by notification in the official Gazette, specify the class of companies or
                      undertakings to which the restriction provided in sub-section (1) shall not apply;
                      and

               (b)    through regulations, specify such disclosure requirements, conditions and
                      restrictions on the nature, period, amount of investment and terms and conditions
                      attached thereto, and other ancillary matters.

       (4)     An increase in the amount or any change in the nature of investment or the terms and
conditions attached thereto shall be made only under the authority of a special resolution.

       (5)     Every company shall maintain and keep at its registered office a register of
investments in associated companies and undertakings containing such particulars as may be specified.

       (6)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 3 on the standard scale and in addition, shall jointly and severally
reimburse to the company any loss sustained by the company in consequence of an investment which
was made without complying with the requirements of this section.

      200. Investments of company to be held in its own name.—(1) All investments made by a
company on its own behalf shall be made and held by it in its own name:

       Provided that the company may hold any shares in its subsidiary company in the name of any
nominee of the company, if it is necessary to do so, to ensure that the number of members of the
subsidiary company is not reduced below the statutory limit.

        (2)     Where the company has a right to appoint or get elected any person as a director of any
other company and a nominee of the company in exercise of such right has been so appointed or elected,
the shares in such other company of an amount not exceeding the nominal value of the qualification
shares which are required to be held by a director thereof, may be registered or held by such company
jointly in its own name and in the name of such person or nominee, or in the name of such person or
nominee alone.

        (3)     Nothing in this section shall be deemed to prevent a company from depositing with, or
transferring to, or holding, or registering in the name of a central depository any shares or securities.

        (4)    Where, in pursuance of proviso to sub-section (1) or provisions of sub-sections (2) or (3),
any shares or securities in which investments have been made by a company are not held by it in its own
name, the company shall forthwith enter in a register maintained by it for the purpose at its registered
office the nature, value and such other particulars as may be necessary fully to identify such shares or
securities.

        (5)     The register maintained under sub-section (4) shall, be open to the inspection of members
without charge, and to any other person on payment of such fees as the company may specify in this
behalf during business hours, subject to such reasonable restrictions, as the company may impose, so that
not less than two hours in each day be allowed.




                                               Page 137 of 401
       (6)    Any member may require a certified copy of register or any part thereof, on payment of
such fee as may be fixed by the company.

        (7)       The certified copies requested under this section shall be issued within a period of seven
days.

       (8)    A member seeking to exercise either of the rights conferred by sub-sections (5) or (6) must
make a request to the company to that effect.

        (9)     If a company contravenes the provisions of sub-section (1), the company shall be
punishable with fine which may extend to five million rupees and every officer of the company who is
in default shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term which may extend to two years or with fine
which may extend to one million rupees, or with both.

        (10) Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of sub-sections (4), (5) or
(6), shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale; and the registrar may by an
order compel an immediate inspection of the register or direct that copies required shall be sent to the
persons requiring them.

        201. Method of contracting.—(1) A contract or other enforceable obligation may be entered
into by a company as follows:

                  (a)       an obligation which, if entered into by a natural person, will, by law, be required
                            to be by deed or otherwise in writing, may be entered into on behalf of the
                            company in writing signed under the name of the company by a director, attorney
                            or any other person duly authorised by the board 1[*****];

                  (b)       an obligation which, if entered into by a natural person, is not, by law, required to
                            be in writing, may be entered into on behalf of the company in writing or orally
                            by a person acting under the company’s express or implied authority.

       (2)   All contracts made according to sub-section (1) shall be effectual in law and shall bind
the company and its successors and all other parties thereto, their heirs, or legal representatives as the
case may be.

       202. Execution of bills of exchange, promissory notes and deeds.— (1) A bill of exchange
or promissory note shall be deemed to have been made, drawn, accepted or endorsed on behalf of a
company if made, drawn, accepted or endorsed in the name of, or on behalf of or on account of, the
company by any person acting under its authority, express or implied.

        (2)    A company may, by writing, authorise any person, either generally or in respect of any
specified matters, as its attorney to execute deeds on its behalf in any place either in or outside Pakistan.



        1Omitted by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.17




                                                     Page 138 of 401
       (3)   A deed signed by such an attorney on behalf of the company and under his seal shall bind
the company and have the effect as if it was made by the company itself.

        203. Company to have official seal for use abroad.—(1) A company 1[*****] may have an
official seal for use outside Pakistan.

        (2)        The official seal 1[must add on the face of it] the name of every territory where it is to be
used.
        1
            [(3)   *        *          *         *            *          *          *]

       (4)     A company having such an official seal may, 1[****] authorise any person appointed for
the purpose in any territory not situate in Pakistan to affix the same to any deed or other document to
which the company is party in that territory.

        (5)    The authority of any such agent shall, as between the company and any person dealing with
the agent, continue during the period, if any, mentioned in the instrument conferring the authority, or if
no period is mentioned therein, then until notice of the revocation or determination of the agent’s
authority has been given to the person dealing with him.

        (6)   The person affixing any such official seal shall, by writing under his hand, on the deed
or other document to which the seal is affixed, certify the date and place of affixing the same.

        (7)    A deed or other document to which an official seal is duly affixed shall bind the company
        1
         [*******].

        204. Duties of directors.—(1) Subject to the provisions of this Act, a director of a company shall
act in accordance with the articles of the company.

      (2)     A director of a company shall act in good faith in order to promote the objects of the
company for the benefit of its members as a whole, and in the best interests of the company, its
employees the shareholders the community and for the protection of environment.

        (3)    A director of a company shall discharge his duties with due and reasonable care, skill and
diligence and shall exercise independent judgment.

        (4)     A director of a company shall not involve in a situation in which he may have a direct or
indirect interest that conflicts, or possibly may conflict, with the interest of the company.

       (5)    A director of a company shall not achieve or attempt to achieve any undue gain or
advantage either to himself or to his relatives, partners, or associates and if such director is found guilty
of making any undue gain, he shall be liable to pay an amount equal to that gain to the company.


        1Omitted. and Subs. by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.18




                                                                  Page 139 of 401
       (6)     A director of a company shall not assign his office and any assignment so made shall
be void.

        (7)     In addition to the preceding sub-sections, the Commission may provide for the extent of
duties and the role of directors as may be specified.

        (8)     Any breach of duty, default or negligence by a director in contravention of the
articles of the company or any of its policy or decision of the board may be ratified by the company
through a special resolution and the Commission may impose any restriction as may be specified.

       (9)      Without prejudice to any other action that may be taken under this Act or any other law,
any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an offence liable to
a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        205. Disclosure of interest by director.—(1) Every director of a company who is in any way,
whether directly or indirectly, concerned or interested in any contract or arrangement entered into, or
to be entered into, by or on behalf of the company shall disclose the nature of his concern or interest at
a meeting of the board:

        Provided that a director shall be deemed also to be interested or concerned if any of his
relatives, is so interested or concerned.

       Explanation.— For the purpose of this section “director’s relatives”, are—

               (a)     the director’s spouse;

               (b)     the director’s children, including the step children;

               (c)     the director’s parents.

       (2)     The disclosure required to be made by a director under sub-section (1) shall be made—

               (a)     in the case of a contract or arrangement to be entered into, at the meeting of the
                       board at which the question of entering into the contract or arrangement is first
                       taken into consideration or, if the director was not, on the date of that meeting,
                       concerned or interested in the contract or arrangement, at the first meeting of the
                       board held after he becomes so concerned or interested; and

               (b)     in the case of any other contract or arrangement, at the first meeting of the board
                       held after the director becomes concerned or interested in the contract or
                       arrangement.

        (3)     For the purposes of sub-sections (1) and (2), a general notice given to the board to the effect
that a director is a director or a member of a specified body corporate or a partner of a specified firm
and is to be regarded as concerned or interested in any contract or arrangement which may, after the date




                                                  Page 140 of 401
of the notice, be entered into with that body corporate or firm, shall be deemed to be a sufficient disclosure
of concern or interest in relation to any contract or arrangement so made.

      (4)      Any such general notice shall expire at the end of the financial year in which it is given,
but may be renewed for further period of one financial year at a time, by a fresh notice given in the last
month of the financial year in which it would otherwise expire.

       (5)      No such general notice, and no renewal thereof, shall be of effect unless either it is given
at a meeting of the board, or the director concerned takes reasonable steps to ensure that it is brought up
and read at the first meeting of the board after it is given.

        (6)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of sub-sections (1) or (2),
shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

         206. Interest of officers.__(1) Save as provided in section 205 in respect of directors, no other
officer of a company who is in any way, directly or indirectly, concerned or interested in any proposed
contract or arrangement with the company shall, unless he discloses the nature and extent of his interest
in the transaction and obtains the prior approval of the board, enter into any such contract or arrangement.

       (2)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirement under this section shall be
an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        207. Interested director not to participate or vote in proceedings of board.__ (1) No director
of a company shall, as a director, take any part in the discussion of, or vote on, any contract or arrangement
entered into, or to be entered into, by or on behalf of the company, if he is in any way, whether directly
or indirectly, concerned or interested in the contract or arrangement, nor shall his presence count for the
purpose of forming a quorum at the time of any such discussion or vote; and if he does vote, his vote shall
be void:

       Provided that a director of a listed company who has a material personal interest in a matter that is
being considered at a board meeting shall not be present while that matter is being considered.

       (2)     If majority of the directors are interested in, any contract or arrangement entered into, or
to be entered into, by or on behalf of the company, the matter shall be laid before the general meeting
for approval.

       (3)     Sub-section (1) shall not apply to—

               (a)     a private company which is neither a subsidiary nor a holding company of a public
                       company;

               (b)     any contract of indemnity or insurance coverage executed by the company in
                       favour of interested director against any loss which he may suffer or incur by
                       reason of becoming or being a surety for the company or while undertaking any
                       transaction on behalf of the company:




                                                 Page 141 of 401
                       Provided that for the purpose of clause (b), a company shall only insure the liability
               of interested director where such liability arises out of a transaction validly approved by
               the board or the members of the company as the case may be.

       (4)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirements under this section shall be
an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        208. Related party transactions.__(1) A company may enter into any contract or arrangement
with a related party only in accordance with the policy approved by the board, subject to such conditions
as may be specified, with respect to—

               (a)    sale, purchase or supply of any goods or materials;

               (b)    selling or otherwise disposing of, or buying, property of any kind;

               (c)    leasing of property of any kind;

               (d)    availing or rendering of any services;

               (e)    appointment of any agent for purchase or sale of goods, materials, services or
                      property; and

               (f)    such related party’s appointment to any office or place of profit in the company,
                      its subsidiary company or associated company:

                             Provided that where majority of the directors are interested in any of the
                      above transactions, the matter shall be placed before the general meeting for
                      approval as special resolution:

                             Provided also that nothing in this sub-section shall apply to any transactions
                      entered into by the company in its ordinary course of business on an arm’s length
                      basis.

                      Explanation.—In this sub-section—

                      (a)     the expression “office of profit” means any office—

                              (i)     where such office is held by a director, if the director holding it
                                      receives from the company anything by way of remuneration over
                                      and above the remuneration to which he is entitled as director, by
                                      way of salary, fee, commission, perquisites, any rent-free
                                      accommodation, or otherwise;

                              (ii)    where such office is held by an individual other than a director or
                                      by any firm, private company or other body corporate, if the
                                      individual, firm, private company or body corporate holding it




                                                Page 142 of 401
              receives from the company anything by way of remuneration,
              salary, fee, commission, perquisites, any rent-free accommodation,
              or otherwise;

(b)   the expression “arm’s length transaction” means a transaction which is
      subject to such terms and conditions as may be specified.

(c)   the expression “related party” includes—

      (i)     a director or his relative;

      (ii)    a key managerial personnel or his relative;

      (iii)   a firm, in which a director, manager or his relative is a partner;

      (iv)    a private company in which a director or manager is a member or
              director;

      (v)     a public company in which a director or manager is a director
              or holds alongwith his relatives, any shares of its paid up share
              capital;

      (vi)    any body corporate whose chief executive or manager is
              accustomed to act in accordance with the advice, directions or
              instructions of a director or manager;

      (vii)   any person on whose advice, directions or instructions a director or
              manager is accustomed to act:

                     Provided that nothing in sub-clauses (vi) and (vii) shall
              apply to the advice, directions or instructions given in a
              professional capacity;

      (viii) any company which is—

              (A)     a holding, subsidiary or an associated company of such
                      company; or

              (B)     a subsidiary of a holding company to which it is also a
                      subsidiary;

      (ix)    such other person as may be specified;

                      Explanation.—For the purpose of this section “relative”
              means spouse, siblings and lineal ascendants and descendants of a
              person.




                        Page 143 of 401
       (2)    Every contract or arrangement entered into under sub-section (1) shall be referred to in
the board’s report to the shareholders along-with the justification for entering into such contract or
arrangement.

        (3)     The Commission may specify the record to be maintained by the company with regards
to transactions undertaken with the related party.

        (4)     Where any contract or arrangement is entered into by a director or any other employee,
without obtaining the consent of the board or approval by a special resolution in the general meeting
under sub-section (1) and if it is not ratified by the board or, as the case may be, by the shareholders at
a meeting within ninety days from the date on which such contract or arrangement was entered into, such
contract or arrangement shall be voidable at the option of the board and if the contract or arrangement is
with a related party to any director, or is authorised by any other director, the directors concerned shall
indemnify the company against any loss incurred by it.

        (5)     Without prejudice to anything contained in sub-section (4), it shall be open to the
company to proceed against a director or any employee who had entered into such contract or
arrangement in contravention of the provisions of this section for recovery of any loss sustained by it as
a result of such contract or arrangement.

       (6)      Any director or any other employee of a company, who had entered into or authorised the
contract or arrangement in violation of the provisions of this section shall be liable—

               (a)     in case of listed company, be punishable with imprisonment for a term which may
                       extend to three years or with fine which shall not be less than five million rupees,
                       or with both; and

               (b)     in case of any other company, to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale.

       209. Register of contracts or arrangements in which directors are interested.—(1) Every
company shall keep one or more registers giving separately the particulars of all contracts or
arrangements, in such manner and containing such particulars as may be specified by the Commission.

        (2)      Every director shall, within a period of thirty days of his appointment, or relinquishment
of his office, as the case may be, disclose to the company the particulars relating to his concern or interest
in the other associations which are required to be included in the register under sub-section (1) or such
other information relating to himself as may be specified.

        (3)   The register referred to in sub-section (1) shall be kept at the registered office of the
company and it shall be open for inspection at such office during business hours and extracts may be
taken therefrom, and copies thereof as may be required by any member of the company shall be
furnished by the company to such extent, in such manner, and on payment of such fees as may be
specified.




                                                 Page 144 of 401
       (4)    The register to be kept under this section shall also be produced at the commencement of
every annual general meeting of the company and shall remain open and accessible during the
continuance of the meeting to any person having the right to attend the meeting.

       (5)    Nothing contained in sub-section (1) shall apply to any contract or arrangement—

              (a)     for the sale, purchase or supply of any goods, materials or services if the value of
                      such goods and materials or the cost of such services does not exceed five hundred
                      thousand rupees in the aggregate in any year; or
              (b)     by a banking company for the collection of bills in the ordinary course of its
                      business.

       (6) Any contravention or default in complying with requirements under this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        210. Contract of employment with directors.—(1) Every company shall keep at its
registered office—

              (a)     where a contract of service with a director is in writing, a copy of the contract; or

              (b)     where such a contract is not in writing, a written memorandum setting out its terms.

        (2)    The copies of the contract or the memorandum kept under sub-section (1) shall be open
to inspection by any member of the company without payment of fee.

       (3)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirement under this section shall be
an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

       (4)    The provisions of this section shall not apply to a private company.

        211. Restriction on non-cash transactions involving directors.—(1) No company shall enter
into an arrangement by which—

              (a)     a director of the company or its holding, subsidiary or associated company or a
                      person connected with him acquires or is to acquire assets for consideration other
                      than cash, from the company; or

              (b)     the company acquires or is to acquire assets for consideration other than cash, from
                      such director or person so connected;

unless prior approval for such arrangement is accorded by a resolution of the company in general meeting
and if the director or connected person is a director of its holding company, approval under this sub-
section shall also be required to be obtained by passing a resolution in general meeting of the holding
company.




                                               Page 145 of 401
        (2)    The notice for approval of the resolution by the company or holding company in general
meeting under sub-section (1) shall include the particulars of the arrangement along-with the value of the
assets involved in such arrangement duly calculated by a registered valuer.

       (3)     Any arrangement entered into by a company or its holding company in contravention of
the provisions of this section shall be voidable at the instance of the company unless—

               (a)     the restitution of any money or other consideration which is the subject-matter of
                       the arrangement is no longer possible and the company has been indemnified by
                       any other person for any loss or damage caused to it; or

               (b)     any rights are acquired bona fide for value and without notice of the contravention
                       of the provisions of this section by any other person.

       (4)   The company shall ensure that all cash transactions with its directors are conducted
only through banking channels.

        212. Declaring a director to be lacking fiduciary behaviour.—The Court may declare a
director to be lacking fiduciary behaviour if he contravenes the provisions of section 205 or sub-section
(1) of section 206 or sections 207 or 208:

       Provided that before making a declaration the Court shall afford the director concerned an
opportunity of showing cause against the proposed action.

        213. Disclosure to members of directors’ interest in contract appointing chief executive
or secretary.—(1) Every director of a company who is in any way, whether directly or indirectly,
concerned or interested, in any appointment or contract for the appointment of a chief executive, whole-
time director or secretary of the company shall disclose the nature of his interest or concern at a meeting
of the board in which such appointment or contract is to be approved and the interested director shall not
participate or vote in the proceedings of the board.

        (2)    All contracts entered into by a company for the appointment of a chief executive, whole-
time director or secretary shall be kept at the registered office of the company.

      (3)    Every contract required to be kept under sub-section (2) must be open to inspection by
any member of the company without charge.

       (4)     Any member of the company is entitled, on request and on payment of such fee as may
be fixed by the company, to be provided with a copy of any such contract. The copy must be provided
within seven days after the request is received by the company.

       (5)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirements under this section shall be
an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

      214. Contracts by agents of company in which company is undisclosed principal.— (1)
Every officer or other agent of a company, other than a private company, not being the subsidiary




                                                Page 146 of 401
company of a public company, who enters into a contract for or on behalf of the company in which
contract the company is an undisclosed principal shall, at the time of entering into the contract, make a
memorandum in writing of the terms of contract, and specify therein the person with whom it has been
made.

      (2)    Every such officer or other agent shall forthwith deliver the memorandum aforesaid to the
company and its directors which shall be laid before next meeting of the board.

       (3)     If any such officer or other agent makes default in complying with the requirements of this
section—
               (a)     the contract shall, at the option of the company, be void as against the company;
                       and
               (b)     such officer or other agent shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard
                       scale.

        215. Liability for undesired activities of the shareholders.—(1) A member of a company
shall act in good faith while exercising its powers as a shareholder at the general meetings and shall not
conduct themselves in a manner that is considered disruptive to proceedings of the meeting.

       (2)     Without prejudice to his rights under this Act, a member of the company shall not exert
influence or approach the management directly for decisions which may lead to create hurdle in the smooth
functioning of management.

        (3)    Any shareholder who fails to conduct in the manner provided in this section and as
specified by the Commission shall be guilty of an offence under this section and shall be liable to a
penalty not exceeding of level 1 on the standard scale.

        216. Company deemed to be a public interest company in certain circumstances.—(1)
Notwithstanding anything contained in this Act, a company shall be deemed to be a company with public
interest as envisaged in the Third Schedule.

      (2)     Upon being deemed as a company with public interest, the company shall be required to
comply with such disclosure and reporting requirements as may be specified by the Commission.

        (3)      The Commission may as specified, after giving an opportunity of hearing to a
company or class of companies, by an order in writing exempt such company from the requirements of
this section if the Commission determines that such exemption is in the interest of the public:

       Provided that such order shall be posted on the official website of the Commission.

        217. Securities and deposits.—(1) Save as provided in section 84, no company or any of its
officers or agents shall receive or utilise any money received as security or deposit, except in accordance
with a contract in writing.

       (2)    The money so received shall be kept in a special account maintained by a company with
a scheduled bank.




                                                Page 147 of 401
        (3)   This section shall not apply where the money received is in the nature of an advance
payment for goods to be delivered or sold to an agent, dealer or sub-agent in accordance with a contract
in writing.

        218. Employees’ provident funds, contributory retirement funds and securities.___(1) All
moneys or securities deposited with a company by its employees in pursuance of their contracts of service
with the company shall be kept or deposited by the company within fifteen days from the date of deposit
in a special account to be opened by the company for the purpose in a scheduled bank or in the National
Saving Schemes, and no portion thereof shall be utilized by the company except for the breach of the
contract of service on the part of the employee as provided in the contract and after notice to the employee
concerned.

        (2)     Where a provident fund, contributory pension fund or any other contributory retirement
fund has been constituted by a company for its employees or any class of its employees, all moneys
contributed to such fund, whether by the company or by the employees or by both, or received or accruing
by way of interest, profit or otherwise from the date of contribution, receipt or accrual, as the case may
be, shall either—

               (a)     be deposited—

                       (i)     in a National Savings Scheme;

                       (ii)    in a special account to be opened by the company for the purpose in
                               a scheduled bank; or

                       (iii)   where the company itself is a scheduled bank, in a special account to be
                               opened by the company for the purpose either in itself or in any other
                               scheduled bank; or

               (b)     be invested in—

                       (i)     Government securities; or

                       (ii)    bonds, redeemable capital, debt securities or instruments issued by a
                               statutory body, units of collective investment schemes registered as notified
                               entities with the Commission, and in listed securities including shares of
                               companies, bonds, redeemable capital, debt securities and equity securities,
                               subject to the conditions as may be specified.

        (3)    Where a trust has been created by a company with respect to any provident fund or a
contributory pension fund or any contributory retirement fund referred to in sub-section (2), the company
shall be bound to collect the contribution of the employees concerned and pay such contributions as well
as its own contributions, if any, to the trustees within fifteen days from the date of collection, and
thereupon, the obligations laid on the company by that sub-section shall devolve on the trustees and shall
be discharged by them instead of the company.




                                                Page 148 of 401
       (4)     The trustees of provident fund, contributory pension or retirement fund shall have
appropriate representation from the members of the funds.

        219. Penalty for contravention of section 217 or 218.—Any contravention or default in
complying with requirements of sections 217 or 218 shall be an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on
the standard scale and shall also be liable to pay the loss suffered by the depositor of security or the
employee, on account of such contravention.


                                         _________________




                                              Page 149 of 401
                                     ACCOUNTS OF COMPANIES

         220. Books of account, to be kept by company.− (1) Every company shall prepare and keep
at its registered office books of account and other relevant books and papers and financial statements for
every financial year which give a true and fair view of the state of the affairs of the company, including
that of its branch office or offices, if any:

        Provided that in the case of a company engaged in production, processing, manufacturing or
mining activities, such particulars relating to utilisation of material or labour or the other inputs or items
of cost as may be specified, shall also be maintained:

        Provided further that all or any of the books of account aforesaid and other relevant papers may
be kept at such other place in Pakistan as the board may decide and where such a decision is taken, the
company shall, within seven days thereof, file with the registrar a notice in writing giving the full address
of that other place.

        (2)    Where a company has a branch office in Pakistan or outside Pakistan, it shall be deemed
to have complied with the provisions of sub-section (1), if proper books of account relating to the
transactions effected at the branch office are kept at that office and proper summarized returns are sent
periodically by the branch office to the company at its registered office or the other place referred to in
sub-section (1).

       (3)     The books of account and other books and papers maintained by the company within
Pakistan shall be open for inspection at the registered office of the company or at such other place in
Pakistan by any director during business hours, and in the case of financial information, if any, maintained
outside the country, copies of such financial information shall be maintained and produced for inspection
by any director.

        (4)   Where an inspection is made under sub-section (3), the officers and other employees of
the company shall give to the director making such inspection all assistance in connection with the
inspection which the company is reasonably expected to give.

        (5)    The books of account of every company relating to a period of not less than ten financial
years immediately preceding a financial year, or where the company had been in existence for a
period less than ten years, in respect of all the preceding years together with the vouchers relevant to any
entry in such books of account shall be kept in good order.

       (6)     If a company fails to comply with any of the requirements of this section, every director,
including chief executive and chief financial officer, of the company who has by his act or omission
been the cause of such default shall—

               (a)     in respect of a listed company, be punishable with imprisonment for a term which
                       may extend to two year and with fine which shall not be less than five hundred
                       thousand rupees nor more than five million rupees, and with a further fine which
                       may extend to ten thousand rupees for every day after the first during which the
                       default continues; and




                                                 Page 150 of 401
               (b)     in respect of any other company, be punishable with imprisonment for a term which
                       may extend to one year and with fine which may extend to one hundred thousand
                       rupees.

        (7)    The provisions of this section except those of sub-section (5), shall apply mutatis mutandis
to the books of account which a liquidator is required to maintain and keep.

        221. Inspection of books of account by the Commission.—(1) The books of account and
books and papers of every company shall be open to inspection by any officer authorised by the
Commission in this behalf if, for reasons to be recorded in writing, the Commission considers it necessary
so to do.

       (2)     It shall be the duty of every director, officer or other employee of the company to
produce to the person making inspection under sub-section (1) all such books of account and books and
papers of the company in his custody or under his control, and to furnish him with any such statement,
information or explanation relating to the affairs of the company, as the said person may require of him
within such time and at such place as he may specify.

        (3)     It shall also be the duty of every director, officer or other employee of the company to
give to the person making inspection under this section all assistance and facilitation in connection with
the inspection which the company may be reasonably expected to give.

        (4) The officer making the inspection under this section may, during the course of
inspection—

               (a)     make or cause to be made copies of books of account and other books and papers;
                       or

               (b)     place or cause to be placed by marks of identification thereon in token of the
                       inspection having been made;

               (c)     take possession of such documents and retain them for thirty days if there are
                       reasonable grounds for believing that they are evidence of the commission of an
                       offence.

        (5)     Where an inspection of the books of account and books and papers of the company has
been conducted under this section, by an officer authorised by the Commission, such officer shall make
a report to the Commission.

        (6)  Any officer authorised to make an inspection under this section shall have all the powers
that the Commission has under this Act in relation to the making of inquiries.

       222. Default in compliance with provisions of section 221.—(1) If default is made in
complying with the provisions of section 221, every person who is in default shall be punishable with
imprisonment for a term which may extend to one hundred and eighty days and with fine which may
extend to one hundred thousand rupees.



                                                Page 151 of 401
        (2)     Where a director or any other officer of a company has been convicted of an offence under
this section, he shall, on and from the date on which he is so convicted, be deemed to have vacated his
office as such and, on such vacation of office, shall be disqualified for holding such office in any company,
for a period of three years.

        223. Financial Statements.—(1) The board of every company must lay before the company
in annual general meeting its financial statements for the period, in the case of first such statements since
the incorporation of the company and in any other case since the preceding financial statements, made
up to the date of close of financial year adopted by the company.

       (2)     The financial statements must be laid within a period of one hundred and twenty days
following the close of financial year of a company:

       Provided that, in the case of a listed company the Commission, and in any other case the registrar,
may, for any special reason, extend the period for a term not exceeding thirty days.

        (3)     Subject to the provision of sub-section (2), the first financial statement must be laid at
some date not later than sixteen months after the date of incorporation of the company and subsequently
once at least in every calendar year.

       (4)    The period to which the statements aforesaid relate, not being the first, shall not exceed
one year except where special permission of the registrar has been obtained.

       (5)     The financial statement shall be audited by the auditor of the company, in the manner
hereinafter provided, and the auditor’s report shall be attached thereto:

       Provided that nothing in this sub-section shall apply to a private company having the paid
up capital not exceeding one million rupees or such higher amount of paid up capital as may be notified
by the Commission.

        (6)     Every company shall send in the form and manner specified audited financial
statements together with the auditors’ report, directors’ report and in the case of a listed company the
chairman’s review report to every member of the company and every person who is entitled to receive
notice of general meeting, either by post or electronically at least twenty-one days before the date of
meeting at which it is to be laid before the members of the company, and shall keep a copy at the registered
office of the company for the inspection of the members.

        (7)    A listed company shall, simultaneously with the dispatch of the financial statements
together with the reports referred to in sub-section (6), send by post three copies and electronically a
copy of such financial statements together with said reports to each of the Commission, registrar and the
securities exchange and shall also post on the company’s website:

       Provided that the reports shall be made available on the website of the Company for a time period
as may be specified.




                                                 Page 152 of 401
        (8)     The provisions of sub-section (6) of section 220 shall apply to any person who is a party
to the default in complying with any of the provisions of this section.

        (9)     This section shall not apply to a single member company except to the extent as provided
in sub-section (5).

        224. Classification of Companies.—For the purpose of this Act, the companies may be
classified in such categories as may be specified in the Third Schedule.

        225. Contents of Financial Statements.—(1) The financial statements shall give a true and
fair view of the state of affairs of the company, comply with the financial reporting standards notified by
the Commission and shall be prepared in accordance with the requirements contained in the Third
Schedule for different class or classes of companies:

       Provided that for the purpose of preparation of financial statements and related accounting
treatment of associated companies shall be in accordance with financial reporting standards or such other
standards as may be notified by the Commission:

        Provided further that, except to the extent, otherwise notified in the official Gazette by the
Commission, this sub-section shall not apply to an insurance or banking company or to any other class
of companies for which the requirements of financial statements are specified in the law regulating such
class of companies.

        (2)     The Commission may, of its own motion or upon application by a company, modify, in
relation to that company, the requirements of the relevant Schedule for the purpose of adapting it to the
circumstances of a company.

       (3)     The Commission shall have power from time to time to grant exemption to any company
or any class of companies if it is in the public interest so to do, from compliance with all or any of the
requirements of the relevant Schedule.

       (4)    Notwithstanding anything in this Act any company that intends to make unreserved
compliance of IFRS issued by the IASB shall be permitted to do so.

       Explanation.—The expression “IFRS” means International Financial Reporting Standards and
the expression “IASB” means International Accounting Standards Board.

        (5)     The provisions of sub-section (6) of section 220 shall apply to any person who is a party
to the default in complying with any of the provisions of this section.

       226. Duty to prepare directors’ report and statement of compliance.—(1) The board shall
prepare a directors’ report for each financial year of the company:

       Provided that nothing in this sub-section shall apply to a private company, not being a
subsidiary of public company, having the paid up capital not exceeding three million rupees.




                                                Page 153 of 401
      (2)     The Commission may by general or special order, direct such class or classes of
companies to prepare a statement of compliance.

       (3)     The board of a holding company, required to prepare consolidated financial statements
under section 228, shall in its report to the members as provided in section 227, include information on
matters specified in sub-section (2) of section 227 with respect to the consolidated financial statements.

        (4)    The directors in their report shall give greater emphasis to the matters that are significant
to the undertakings included in the consolidation.

       (5)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

       227. Contents of directors’ report and statement of compliance.— (1) The directors shall
make out and attach to the financial statements, a report with respect to the state of the company’s affairs
and a fair review of its business, the amount (if any), that the directors recommend should be paid by
way of dividend and the amount (if any), they propose to carry to the Reserve Fund, General Reserve or
Reserve Account.

      (2)     In the case of a public company or a private company which is a subsidiary of a public
company, the directors report, in addition to the matters specified in sub-section (1) must state—

               (a)     the names of the persons who, at any time during the financial year, were directors
                       of the company;

               (b)     the principal activities and the development and performance of the company’s
                       business during the financial year;

               (c)     a description of the principal risks and uncertainties facing the company;

               (d)     any changes that have occurred during the financial year concerning the nature of
                       the business of the company or of its subsidiaries, or any other company in which
                       the company has interest,;

               (e)     the information and explanation in regard to any contents of modification in the
                       auditor’s report;

               (f)     information about the pattern of holding of the shares in the form specified;

               (g)     the name and country of origin of the holding company, if such company is
                       a foreign company;

               (h)     the earning per share;

               (i)     the reasons for loss if incurred during the year and future prospects of profit, if any;




                                                 Page 154 of 401
                   (j)       information about defaults in payment of any debts and reasons thereof;

                   (k)       comments in respect of adequacy 1[of] internal financial controls;

                   (l)       any material changes and commitments affecting the financial position of the
                             company which have occurred between the end of the financial year of the company
                             to which the financial statement relates and the date of the report; 1[*]
                   1
                       [(la) disclosure with respect to remuneration package of each of the directors and chief
                             executive including but not limited to salary, benefits, bonuses, stock options,
                             pension and other incentives; and]

                   (m)       any other information as may be specified.

       (3)    In the case of a listed company, the business review must, to the extent necessary for
understanding the development, performance or position of the company’s business, include—

                   (a)       the main trends and factors likely to affect the future development, performance
                             and position of the company’s business;

                   (b)       the impact of the company’s business on the environment;

                   (c)       the activities undertaken by the company with regard to corporate social
                             responsibility during the year; 1[*]

                   (d)       directors’ responsibility in respect of adequacy of internal financial controls as
                             may be specified 1[; and]
                   1
                       [(e) the legitimate reasons for not declaring dividend under section 240 despite earning
                            profits and future prospects of dividend, if any.]

       (4)    The board shall make out and attach to the financial statement such statement of
compliance as may be specified.

       (5)     The directors’ report and statement of compliance must be approved by the board and
signed by the chief executive and a director of the company.
       1
           [(6) Whoever contravenes any of the provisions of this section shall—

                   (a)       in respect of a listed company, be punishable with a penalty of level 2 on the
                             standard scale; and
                   (b)       in respect of any other company, be punishable with a penalty of level 1 on the
                             standard scale.]

       1
           Ins. Omitted and Subs. by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.19




                                                               Page 155 of 401
       228. Consolidated financial statements.—(1) There shall be attached to the financial
statements of a holding company having a subsidiary or subsidiaries, at the end of the financial year at
which the holding company’s financial statements are made out, consolidated financial statements of the
group presented as those of a single enterprise and such consolidated financial statements shall comply
with the disclosure requirements of the relevant Schedule and financial reporting standards notified by
the Commission:

       Provided that nothing in this sub-section shall apply to a private company and its subsidiary,
where none of the holding and subsidiary company has the paid up capital exceeding one million rupees.

        (2)     Where the financial year of a subsidiary precedes the day on which the holding company’s
financial year ends by more than ninety days, such subsidiary shall make an interim closing, on the day
on which the holding company’s financial year ends, and prepare financial statements for consolidation
purposes.

        (3)    Every auditor of a holding company appointed under section 246 shall also report, in the
specified form, on consolidated financial statements and exercise all such rights and duties as are vested
in him under sections 248 and 249 respectively.

        (4)     There shall be disclosed in the consolidated financial statements any note or saving
contained in such accounts to call attention to a matter which, apart from the note or saving, would properly
have been referred to in such a qualification, in so far the matter which is the subject of the qualification
or note is not covered by the holding company’s own accounts and is material from the point of view of
its members.

       (5)     Every consolidated financial statement shall be signed by the same persons by whom the
individual financial statements of the holding company are required to be signed, under section 232.

       (6)     All provisions of sections 223, 233, 234, 235 and 236 shall apply to a holding company
required to prepare consolidated financial statements under this section as if for the word “company”
appearing in these sections, the words “holding company” were substituted.

         (7)    The Commission may, on an application of a holding company, direct that the provisions
of this section shall not apply to such extent as may be specified in the direction.

       (8)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale.

       229. Financial year of holding company and subsidiary.—(1) The board of a holding
company shall ensure that, except where in their opinion there are good reasons against it, its financial
year and each of its subsidiaries coincides.

       (2)   The Commission may, on an application of a holding company or a subsidiary of the
holding company, extend the financial year of any such company for the purpose of sub-section (1).




                                                 Page 156 of 401
        (3)    While granting any extension under sub-section (2), the Commission may grant such other
relaxations as may be incidental or ancillary thereto.

       230. Rights of holding company’s representatives and members.—(1) A holding company
may, by resolution, authorise representatives named in the resolution to inspect the books of account kept
by any of its subsidiaries; and the books of account of any such subsidiary shall be open to inspection
by those representatives at any time during business hours.

       (2)    The rights conferred by section 256 upon members of a company may be exercised, in
respect of any subsidiary, by members of the holding company as if they also were members of the
subsidiary.

        231. Financial Statements of modaraba company to include modaraba accounts.—(1)
There must be attached to the financial statements of a modaraba company, the annual accounts and
other reports circulated in pursuance of the provisions of section 14 of the Modaraba Companies and
Modaraba (Floatation and Control) Ordinance, 1980 (XXXI of 1980), made out—

               (a)    as at the end of the financial year of the modaraba where such financial year
                      coincides with the financial year of the modaraba company; and

               (b)    as at the end of the financial year of the modaraba last before that of the modaraba
                      company, where the financial year of the modaraba does not coincide with that
                      of the modaraba company.

        (2)     The provisions of sub-section (8) of section 228 shall apply to any person who is a party
to the default in complying with any of the provisions of this section.

         232. Approval and authentication of Financial Statements.—(1) The financial statements,
including consolidated financial statement, if any, must be approved by the board of the company and
signed on behalf of the board by the chief executive and at least one director of the company, and in case
of a listed company also by the chief financial officer:

        Provided that when the chief executive is for the time being not available in Pakistan, then the
financial statements may be signed by at least two directors:

       Provided further that in case of a private company having a paid up capital not exceeding one
million rupees, the financial statements shall also be accompanied by an affidavit executed by the chief
executive if the accounts are signed by him or by any of the directors if the accounts has been signed by
two directors, as the case may be, that the financial statements have been approved by the board.

       (2)     The financial statements of a single member company shall be signed by one director.

       (3)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.




                                               Page 157 of 401
        233. Copy of Financial Statements to be forwarded to the registrar.— (1) Without
prejudice to the provisions of sub-section (5) of section 223, after the audited financial statements have
been laid before the company at the annual general meeting and duly adopted, a copy of such financial
statements together with reports and documents required to be annexed to the same, duly signed in the
manner provided by sections 226, 232 and 251, shall be filed by the company with the registrar within
thirty days from the date of such meeting in case of a listed company and within fifteen days in case of
any other company.

        (2)    If the general meeting before which the financial statement is laid does not adopt the same
or defers consideration thereof or is adjourned, a statement of that fact and of the reasons therefor shall
be annexed to the said financial statements required to be filed with the registrar.

       (3)    Nothing in this section shall apply to a private company having the paid up capital not
exceeding ten million rupees or such higher amount of paid up capital as may be notified by the
Commission.

       (4)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence liable—

                 (a)       in case of a listed company, to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale; and

                 (b)       in case of any other company, to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.
       1
           [234. *         *                       *          *          *              *               *]

       235. Right of member of a company to copies of the Financial Statements and the
auditor’s report.—(1) Any member of the company is entitled, on request and on payment of such fee
as may be fixed by the company to be provided with a copy of any financial statement. The copy must
be provided within seven days after the request is received by the company.

       (2)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        236. Penalty for improper issue, circulation or publication of Financial Statements.— If
any copy of financial statements is issued, circulated or published without there being annexed or
attached thereto, as the case may be, a copy each of (i) any component of financial statements, reports,
or statements referred therein, (ii) the auditors’ report, (iii) review reports on the statement of compliance,
(iv) the directors’ report and (v) the statements of compliance, the company, and every officer of the
company who is in default shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.



       1Omitted. by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.20




                                                       Page 158 of 401
       237. Quarterly financial statements of listed companies.—(1) Every listed company shall
prepare the quarterly financial statements within the period of—

               (a)    thirty days of the close of first and third quarters of its year of accounts; and

               (b)    sixty days of the close of its second quarter of its year of accounts:

                       Provided that the cumulative figures for the half year, presented in the second
               quarter accounts shall be subjected to a limited scope review by the statutory auditors of the
               company in such manner and according to such terms and conditions as may be determined
               by the Institute of Chartered Accountants of Pakistan and approved by the Commission:

                       Provided further that the Commission may, upon an application by the company,
               extend the period of filing in case of accounts of first quarter for a period not exceeding
               thirty days, if the company was allowed extension in terms of sections 223.

       (2)     The quarterly financial statements shall be posted on the company’s website for the
information of its members and also be transmitted electronically to the Commission, securities exchange
and with the registrar within the period specified under sub-section (1):

       Provided that a copy of the quarterly financial statements shall be dispatched in physical form if
so requested by any member without any fee:

        Provided further that the Commission may specify the time period for which the quarterly
financial statements shall be made available on the website of the company.

       (3)     The provisions of section 232 shall be applicable to the quarterly financial statements.

        (4)     If a company fails to comply with any of the requirements of this section, every
director, including chief executive and chief financial officer of the company who has by his act or
omission been the cause of such default shall be liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale.

       238. Power of Commission to require submission of additional statements of accounts and
reports.—(1) Notwithstanding anything contained in any other provision of this Act the Commission
may, by general or special order, require companies generally, or any class of companies or any particular
company, to prepare and send to the members, the Commission, the registrar, the securities exchange
and any other person such periodical statements of accounts, information or other reports, in such form
and manner and within such time, as may be specified in the order.

       (2)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 3 on the standard scale.

        239. Rights of debenture-holders to obtain copies of financial statements.—(1) The holders
of debentures, including the trustees for holders of debentures, of a company shall be entitled to have
copies of financial statements of the company and other reports on payment of such fee as may be fixed
by the company.




                                                Page 159 of 401
       (2)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

              DIVIDENDS AND MANNER AND TIME OF PAYMENT THEREOF

      240. Certain restrictions on declaration of dividend.—(1) The company in general meeting
may declare dividends; but no dividend shall exceed the amount recommended by the board.

        (2)     No dividend shall be declared or paid by a company for any financial year out of the
profits of the company made from the sale or disposal of any immovable property or assets of a capital
nature comprised in the undertaking or any of the undertaking of the company, unless the business of
the company consists, whether wholly or partly, of selling and purchasing any such property or assets,
except after such profits are set off or adjusted against losses arising from the sale of any such immovable
property or assets of a capital nature:

        Provided that no dividend shall be declared or paid out of unrealized gain on investment property
credited to profit and loss account.

        241. Dividend to be paid only out of profits.—Any dividend may be paid by a company
either in cash or in kind only out of its profits.

      Explanation.—The payment of dividend in kind shall only be in the form of shares of listed
company held by the distributing company.

       242. Dividend not to be paid except to registered shareholders.—Any dividend declared
by a company must be paid to its registered shareholders or to their order within such period and in such
manner as may be specified:

       Provided that any dividend payable in cash may be paid by cheque or warrant or in any electronic
mode to the shareholders entitled to the payment of the dividend, as per their direction:

       Provided further that in case of a listed company, any dividend payable in cash shall only be paid
through electronic mode directly into the bank account designated by the entitled shareholders.

         243. Directors not to withhold declared dividend.—(1) When a dividend has been declared,
it shall not be lawful for the directors of the company to withhold or defer its payment and the chief
executive of the company shall be responsible to make the payment in the manner provided in section
242.

        Explanation.—Dividend shall be deemed to have been declared on the date of the general meeting
in case of a dividend declared or approved in the general meeting and on the date of commencement of
closing of share transfer for purposes of determination of entitlement of dividend in the case of an interim
dividend and where register of members is not closed for such purpose, on the date on which such
dividend is approved by the board.




                                                Page 160 of 401
        (2)    Where a dividend has been declared by a company but is not paid within the period
specified under section 242, the chief executive of the company shall be punishable with imprisonment
for a term which may extend to two years and with fine which may extend to five million rupees:

       Provided that no offence shall be deemed to have been committed within the meaning of the
foregoing provisions in the following cases, namely—

               (a)    where the dividend could not be paid by reason of the operation of any law;

               (b)    where a shareholder has given directions to the company regarding the payment
                      of the dividend and those directions cannot be complied with;

               (c)    where there is a dispute regarding the right to receive the dividend;

               (d)    where the dividend has been lawfully adjusted by the company against any sum due
                      to it from the shareholder; or

               (e)    where, for any other reason, the failure to pay the dividend or to post the warrant
                      within the period aforesaid was not due to any default on the part of the company;
                      and

the Commission has, on an application of the company on the specified form made within forty- five
days from the date of declaration of the dividend, and after providing an opportunity to the shareholder
or person who may seem to be entitled to receive the dividend of making representation against the
proposed action, permitted the company to withhold or defer payment as may be ordered by the
Commission.

      (3)     Notwithstanding anything contained in sub-section (2), a company may withhold the
payment of dividend of a member where the member has not provided the complete information or
documents as specified by the Commission.

       (4)      Chief executive convicted under sub-section (2) shall from the day of the conviction cease
to hold the office of chief executive of the company and shall not, for a period of five years from that
day, be eligible to be the chief executive or a director of that company or any other company.

      244. Unclaimed shares, modaraba certificates and dividend to vest with the Federal
Government.—(1) Notwithstanding anything to the contrary contained in this Act or any other law—

               (i)    where shares of a company or modaraba certificates of a Modaraba have been
                      issued; or

               (ii)   where dividend has been declared by a company or Modaraba;

which remain unclaimed or unpaid for a period of three years from the date it is due and payable, or




                                               Page 161 of 401
               (iii)   any other instrument or amount which remain unclaimed or unpaid, having such
                       nature and for such period as may be specified;

the company shall give ninety days notices to the shareholders or certificate holders or the owner, as the
case may be, to file claim, in the following manner—

               (a)     by a registered post acknowledgement due on his last known address; and

               (b)     after expiry of notice period as provided under clause (a), final notice in the
                       specified form shall be published in two daily newspapers of which one will be in
                       Urdu and one in English having wide circulation.

       Explanation.—For the purpose of this section “shares” or “modaraba certificates” include
unclaimed or undelivered bonus shares or modaraba certificates and “company” includes a “modaraba
company”.

        (2)     If no claim is made before the company by the shareholder, certificate holder or the owner,
as the case may be, the company shall after ninety days from the date of publication of notice under
clause (b) of sub-section (1) shall—

               (a)     in case of sum of money, deposit any unclaimed or unpaid amount to the credit of
                       the Federal Government; and

               (b)     in case of shares or modaraba certificates or other instrument, report and deliver
                       to the Commission such shares or modaraba certificates or other instrument and
                       the Commission shall sell such shares or modaraba certificates or other
                       instrument, as the case may be, in the manner and within such period as may be
                       specified and deposit the proceeds to the credit of Federal Government:

                              Provided that where the company has deposited the unclaimed or unpaid
                       amount or delivered the shares or modaraba certificates or other instrument with
                       the Commission for credit of the Federal Government, the company shall preserve
                       and continue to preserve all original record pertaining to the deposited unclaimed
                       or unpaid amount and the shares or modaraba certificates or other instrument and
                       provide copies of the relevant record to the Commission until it is informed by the
                       Commission in writing that they need not to be preserved any longer.

        (3)     Notwithstanding anything contained in any law or procedure for the time being in force,
the unclaimed or unpaid amount as well as the proceeds from the sale of shares or modaraba certificates
or any other instrument or any benefit accrued thereon, as the case may be, shall be maintained in a profit
bearing account with the State Bank of Pakistan or National Bank of Pakistan to be called “Companies
Unclaimed Instruments and Dividend and Insurance Benefits and Investors Education Account” as may
be notified by the concerned Minister-in- Charge of the Federal Government and shall be deemed to be
part of public accounts and interest / profit accumulated thereon shall be credited on quarterly basis to
the Fund established under section 245 of this Act.




                                                Page 162 of 401
        (4)     Any person claiming to be entitled to any money paid into “Companies Unclaimed
Instruments and Dividend and Insurance Benefits and Investors Education Account” may in pursuance
of this section apply to the Commission in such manner along with such documents as may be specified
for payment thereof, and the Commission after necessary verification from the company concerned
forward to the bank as notified under sub-section (3) to make the payment to entitled person of the sum
equivalent to his unclaimed or unpaid dividend or amount of proceeds:

        Provided that the payment to the claimant shall be made within a period of thirty days from the
date of verification by the company.

        (5)    A person shall be entitled to receive the shares or modaraba certificates or any other
instrument as delivered to the Commission by the company, making a claim under this Act before the
sale of such unclaimed shares or modaraba certificates or the instrument, is effected by the Commission.

        (6)    A person making a claim under this section shall be entitled to the proceeds of the sale of
the shares or modaraba certificates or the instrument less any deduction for expenses of sale.

        (7)     Payment to the claimant pursuant to sub-section (4) and a receipt given by the bank in
this respect shall be a good discharge to the Commission and the bank.

       (8)      Where any dispute regarding unclaimed shares, modaraba certificates, the instrument or
dividend arises or is pending adjudication before the competent authority or Court, the Commission shall
process the claim in accordance with the decision of such authority or Court.

      (9)     No claim whatsoever shall be entertained after the period of ten years from the credit of
any amount to the account of the Federal Government to be maintained under this section.

       (10) Every company within thirty days of the close of each financial year shall submit to the
Commission a return of all unclaimed shares, modaraba certificates, the instruments or dividend in its
books in the manner as may be specified by the Commission.

        (11) Whoever contravenes the provisions of this section shall be punishable with a penalty of
level 3 on the standard scale.

        (12) The account to be maintained under sub-section (3) shall be available on the direction of
Minister-in-Charge to serve as a collateral in order to facilitate the provision of credit facility to the
clearing house to address any systemic risk in the capital market:

        Provided that powers under this sub-section shall be exercised only in case where in opinion of
the Commission the resources of the clearing house are or likely to be insufficient for timely settlement
of trades executed at the securities and future exchanges.

        245. Establishment of Investor Education and Awareness Fund.— (1) There is hereby
established a fund to be called Investor Education and Awareness Fund (hereinafter in this section
referred to as “Fund”) to be managed and controlled by the Commission as may be prescribed through
rules.




                                               Page 163 of 401
       (2)     The Fund shall be credited with—

               (a)    the interest/profit earned on the “Companies Unclaimed Instruments and Dividend
                      and Insurance Benefits and Investors Education Account”;

               (b)    forfeited amounts under sub-section (7) of section 87 of the Securities Act, 2015;

               (c)    grants or donations given by the Federal Government, Provincial Governments,
                      companies, or any other institution or person for the purposes of the Fund;

               (d)    the interest or other income received out of the investments made from the Fund;

               (e)    the amount realised in terms of fourth proviso of section 341 or fourth proviso of
                      sub-section (4) of section 372; and

               (f)    such other amounts as may be prescribed.

       (3)     The Fund shall be utilized for—

               (a)    the promotion of investor education and awareness in such manner as may be
                      prescribed;

               (b)    without prejudice to the generality of the object of sub-clause (a) of sub-section (3),
                      the Fund may be used for the following purposes, namely—

                      (i)     educational activities including seminars, training, research and
                              publications aimed at investors;

                      (ii)    awareness programs including through media – print, electronic, social
                              media, aimed at investors;

                      (iii)   funding investor education and awareness activities approved by the
                              Commission; and

                      (iv)    to meet the administrative expenses of the Fund.

       Explanation.—”Investors” means investor in securities, insurance policyholders and customers
of non-bank finance companies and Modarabas.

         (4)     The Commission shall, by notification in the official Gazette, constitute an advisory
committee with such members as may be prescribed, for recommending investor education and awareness
activities that may be undertaken directly by the Commission or through any other agency, for utilization
of the Fund for the purposes referred to in sub-section (3).

        (6)     The Commission may invest the moneys of the Fund in such manner as set out in
section 20 of the Trusts Act, 1882 (II of 1882).




                                                Page 164 of 401
                                                 AUDIT

       246. Appointment, removal and fee of auditors.—(1) The first auditor or auditors of a
company shall be appointed by the board within ninety days of the date of incorporation of the
company; and the auditor or auditors so appointed shall retire on the conclusion of the first annual general
meeting.

       (2)    Subject to the provisions of sub-section (3), the subsequent auditor or auditors shall be
appointed by the company in the annual general meeting on the recommendation of the board after
obtaining consent of the proposed auditors, a notice shall be given to the members with the notice of
general meeting. The auditor or auditors so appointed shall retire on the conclusion of the next annual
general meeting.

        (3)     A member or members having not less than ten percent shareholding of the company shall
also be entitled to propose any auditor or auditors for appointment whose consent has been obtained by
him and a notice in this regard has been given to the company not less than seven days before the date
of the annual general meeting. The company shall forthwith send a copy of such notice to the retiring
auditor and shall also be posted on its website.

        (4)     Where an auditor, other than the retiring auditor is proposed to be appointed, the retiring
auditor shall have a right to make a representation in writing to the company at least two days before the
date of general meeting. Such representation shall be read out at the meeting before taking up the agenda
for appointment of the auditor:

       Provided that where such representation is made, it shall be mandatory for the auditor or a person
authorized by him in writing to attend the general meeting in person.

       (5)   The auditor or auditors appointed by the board or the members in an annual general
meeting may be removed through a special resolution.

        (6)    Any casual vacancy of an auditor shall be filled by the board within thirty days from the
date thereof. Any auditor appointed to fill in any casual vacancy shall hold office until the conclusion
of the next annual general meeting:

       Provided that where the auditors are removed during their tenure, the board shall appoint the
auditors with prior approval of the Commission.

       (7)     If the company, fails to appoint—

               (a)     the first auditors within a period of ninety days of the date of incorporation of
                       the company;

               (b)     the auditors at an annual general meeting; or

               (c)     an auditor in the office to fill up a casual vacancy within thirty days after the
                       occurrence of the vacancy; and




                                                Page 165 of 401
               (d)     if the appointed auditors are unwilling to act as auditors of the company;

the Commission may, of its own motion or on an application made to it by the company or any of its
members direct to make good the default within such time as may be specified in the order. In case the
company fails to report compliance within the period so specified, the Commission shall appoint auditors
of the company who shall hold office till conclusion of the next annual general meeting.

       (8)     The remuneration of the auditors of a company shall be fixed—

               (a)     by the company in the general meeting;

               (b)     by the board or by the Commission, if the auditors are appointed by the board or
                       the Commission, as the case may be.

        (9)    Every company shall, within fourteen days from the date of any appointment of an
auditor, send to the registrar intimation thereof, together with the consent in writing of the auditor
concerned.

       247. Qualification and disqualification of auditors.—(1) A person shall not be qualified for
appointment as an auditor—

               (a)     in the case of a public company or a private company which is subsidiary of a public
                       company or a private company having paid up capital of three million rupees or
                       more unless such person is a chartered accountant having valid certificate of
                       practice from the Institute of Chartered Accountants of Pakistan or a firm of
                       chartered accountants; and

               (b)     in the case of a company other than specified in clause (a), unless such person, is
                       a chartered accountant or cost and management accountant having valid
                       certificate of practice from the respective institute or a firm of chartered
                       accountants or cost and management accountants, having such criteria as may be
                       specified:

                               Provided that for the purpose of clause (a) and (b), a firm whereof majority
                       of practicing partners are qualified for appointment shall be appointed by its firm
                       name to be auditors of the company.

        (2)     Where a partnership firm is appointed as auditor of a company, only the partners who meet
the qualification requirements as provided in sub-section (1), shall be authorized to act and sign on behalf
of the firm.

       (3)     None of the following persons shall be appointed as auditor of a company, namely—

               (a)     a person who is, or at any time during the preceding three years was, a director,
                       other officer or employee of the company;




                                                Page 166 of 401
              (b)    a person who is a partner of , or in the employment of, a director, officer or
                     employee of the company;

              (c)    the spouse of a director of the company;

              (d)    a person who is indebted to the company other than in the ordinary course of
                     business of such entities;

              (e)    a person who has given a guarantee or provided any security in connection with
                     the indebtedness of any third person to the company other than in the ordinary
                     course of business of such entities;

              (f)    a person or a firm who, whether directly or indirectly, has business relationship
                     with the company other than in the ordinary course of business of such entities;

              (g)    a person who has been convicted by a court of an offence involving fraud and
                     a period of ten years has not elapsed from the date of such conviction;

              (h)    a body corporate;

              (i)    a person who is not eligible to act as auditor under the code of ethics as adopted by
                     the Institute of Chartered Accountants of Pakistan and the Institute of Cost and
                     Management Accountants of Pakistan; and

              (j)    a person or his spouse or minor children, or in case of a firm, all partners of such
                     firm who hold any shares of an audit client or any of its associated companies:

                             Provided that if such a person holds shares prior to his appointment as
                     auditor, whether as an individual or a partner in a firm the fact shall be disclosed
                     on his appointment as auditor and such person shall disinvest such shares within
                     ninety days of such appointment.

                             Explanation.—Reference in this section to an “officer” or “employee”
                     shall be construed as not including reference to an auditor.

       (4)    For the purposes of clause (d) of sub-section (3) a person who owes—

              (a)    a sum of money not exceeding one million rupees to a credit card issuer; or

              (b)    a sum to a utility company in the form of unpaid dues for a period not exceeding
                     ninety days;

shall not be deemed to be indebted to the company.




                                              Page 167 of 401
        (5)     A person shall also not be qualified for appointment as auditor of a company if he is, by
virtue of the provisions of sub-section (3), disqualified for appointment as auditor of any other company
which is that company’s subsidiary or holding company or a subsidiary of that holding company.

        (6)     If, after his appointment, an auditor becomes subject to any of the disqualifications
specified in this section, he shall be deemed to have vacated his office as auditor with effect from the
date on which he becomes so disqualified.

       (7)     A person who, not being qualified to be an auditor of a company, or being or having
become subject to any disqualification to act as such, acts as auditor of a company shall be liable to a
penalty of level 2 on the standard scale.

        (8)     The appointment as auditor of a company of an unqualified person, or of a person who is
subject to any disqualifications to act as such, shall be void, and, where such an appointment is made by a
company, the Commission may appoint a qualified person in place of the auditor appointed by the
company.

                                RIGHTS AND DUTIES OF AUDITOR

       248.    Auditors’ right to information.—(1) An auditor of a company has a right—

               (a)     of access at all times to the company’s books, accounts and vouchers (in whatever
                       form they are held); and

               (b)     of access to such copies of, an extracts from, the books and accounts of the branch
                       as have been transmitted to the principal office of the company;

               (c)     to require any of the following persons to provide him with such information or
                       explanations as he thinks necessary for the performance of his duties as auditor—

                       (i)     any director, officer or employee of the company;

                       (ii)    any person holding or accountable for any of the company’s books
                               accounts or vouchers;

                       (iii)   any subsidiary undertaking of the company; and

                       (iv)    any officer, employee or auditor of any such subsidiary undertaking of the
                               company or any person holding or accountable for any books, accounts or
                               vouchers of any such subsidiary undertaking of the company.

        (2)    If any officer of a company refuses or fails, without lawful justification, the onus
whereof shall lie on him, to allow any auditor access to any books and papers in his custody or power,
or to give any such information possessed by him as and when required, or otherwise hinders, obstructs
or delays an auditor in the performance of his duties or the exercise of his powers or fails to give notice of
any general meeting to the auditor or provides false or incorrect information, he shall be liable to penalty
as provided under section 252.



                                                 Page 168 of 401
       249. Duties of auditor.—(1) A company’s auditor shall conduct the audit and prepare his report
in compliance with the requirements of International Standards on Auditing as adopted by the Institute
of Chartered Accountants of Pakistan.

         (2)   A company’s auditor must carry out such examination to enable him to form an opinion
as to—

               (a)    whether adequate accounting records have been kept by the company and returns
                      adequate for their audit have been received from branches not visited by him; and

               (b)    whether the company’s financial statements are in agreement with the accounting
                      records and returns.

        (3)     The auditor shall make out a report to the members of the company on the accounts and
books of accounts of the company and on every financial statements and on every other document
forming part of such statements including notes, statements or schedules appended thereto, which are to
be laid before the company in general meeting and the report shall state—

               (a)    whether or not they have obtained all the information and explanations which
                      to the best of their knowledge and belief were necessary for the purposes of the
                      audit and if not, the details thereof and the effect of such information on the
                      financial statements;

               (b)    whether or not in their opinion proper books of accounts as required by this Act
                      have been kept by the company;

               (c)    whether or not in their opinion the statement of financial position and profit and
                      loss account and other comprehensive income or the income and expenditure
                      account and the cash flows have been drawn up in conformity with the
                      requirements of accounting and reporting standards as notified under this Act and
                      are in agreement with the books of accounts and returns;

               (d)    whether or not in their opinion and to the best of their information and according to
                      the explanations given to them, the said accounts give the information required by
                      this Act in the manner so required and give a true and fair view—

                      (i)     in the case of the statement of financial position, of the state of affairs of the
                              company as at the end of the financial year;

                      (ii)    in the case of the profit and loss account and other comprehensive income
                              or the income and expenditure account, of the profit or loss and other
                              comprehensive income or surplus or deficit, as the case may be, for its
                              financial year; and

                      (iii)   in the case of statement of cash flows, of the generation and utilisation of
                              the cash and cash equivalents of the company for its financial year;




                                                Page 169 of 401
               (e)     whether or not in their opinion—

                       (i)     investments made, expenditure incurred and guarantees extended, during
                               the year, were for the purpose of company’s business; and

                       (ii)    zakat deductible at source under the Zakat and Usher Ordinance, 1980
                               (XVIII of 1980), was deducted by the company and deposited in the Central
                               Zakat Fund established under section 7 of that Act.

                                       Explanation.—Where the auditor’s report contains a reference to
                               any other report, statement or remarks which they have made on the
                               financial statements examined by them, such statement or remarks shall be
                               annexed to the auditor’s report and shall be deemed to be a part of the
                               auditor’s report.

        (4)     Where any of the matters referred to in sub-section (2) or (3) is answered in the negative
or with a qualification, the report shall state the reason for such answer along with the factual position to
the best of the auditor’s information.

        (5)     The Commission may, by general or special order, direct that, in the case of all
companies generally or such class or description of companies as may be specified in the order, the
auditor’s report shall also include a statement of such additional matters as may be so specified.

       (6)     The auditor shall express unmodified or modified opinion in his report in compliance
with the requirements of International Standards on Auditing as adopted by the Institute of Chartered
Accountants of Pakistan.

        (7)     The Commission may by general or special order, direct, that the statement of compliance
as contained in sub-section (4) of section 227 of this Act, shall be reviewed by the auditor who shall
issue a review report to the members on the format specified by the Commission.

        (8)     The auditor of a company shall be entitled to attend any general meeting of the company,
and to receive all notices of, and any communications relating to, any general meeting which any member
of the company is entitled to receive, and to be heard at any general meeting which he attends on any
part of the business which concerns him as auditor:

        Provided that, in the case of a listed company, the auditor or a person authorised by him in writing
shall be present in the general meeting in which the financial statements and the auditor’s report are to
be considered.

         250. Audit of cost accounts.—(1)Where any company or class of companies is required under
first proviso of sub-section (1) of section 220 to include in its books of account the particulars referred
to therein, the Commission may direct that an audit of cost accounts of the company shall be conducted
in such manner and with such stipulations as may be specified in the order by an auditor who is a chartered
accountant within the meaning of the Chartered Accountants Ordinance, 1961 (X of 1961), or a cost and



                                                 Page 170 of 401
management accountant within the meaning of the Cost and Management Accountants Act, 1966 (XIV
of 1966); and such auditor shall have the same powers, duties and liabilities as an auditor of a
company and such other powers, duties and liabilities as may be specified.

       (2)      The audit of cost accounts of the company under sub-section (1) shall be directed by the
Commission subject to the recommendation of the regulatory authority supervising the business of
relevant sector or any entity of the sector.

        251. Signature of auditor’s report.—(1) The auditor’s report must state the name of the
auditor, engagement partner, be signed, dated and indicate the place at which it is signed.
       (2)     Where the auditor is an individual, the report must be signed by him.

      (3)     Where the auditor is a firm, the report must be signed by the partnership firm with the
name of the engagement partner.

        252. Penalty for non-compliance with provisions by companies.—Any contravention or
default in complying with requirements of sections 246, 247, 248 and 250 shall be an offence liable to a
penalty of level 3 on the standard scale.

        253. Penalty for non-compliance with provisions by auditors.—(1) If any auditor’s report
or review report is made, or any document of the company is signed or authenticated otherwise than in
conformity with the requirements of section 131, sections 249 and 251 or is otherwise untrue or fails to
bring out material facts about the affairs of the company or matters to which it purports to relate, the
auditor concerned and the person, if any, other than the auditor who signs the report or signs or
authenticates the document, and in the case of a firm all partners of the firm, shall be liable to a penalty
of level 2 on the standard scale.
       (2)      If the auditor’s report to which sub-section (1) applies is made with the intent to profit such
auditor or any other person or to put another person to a disadvantage or loss or for a material
consideration, the auditor shall, in addition to the penalty provided by that sub-section, be punishable
with imprisonment for a term which may extend to two years and with penalty which may extend to one
million rupees.

                    POWER OF REGISTRAR TO CALL FOR INFORMATION

        254. Power of registrar to call for information or explanation.—(1) Where on a scrutiny of
any document filed by a company or on any information received by him under this Act, or any notice,
advertisement, other communication, or otherwise, the registrar is of opinion that any information,
explanation or document is necessary with respect to any matter, he may, by a written notice, call upon
the company and any of its present or past directors, officers or auditors to furnish such information or
explanation in writing, or such document, within thirty days:

       Provided that a director, officer or auditor who ceased to hold office more than six years before
the date of the notice of the registrar shall not be compelled to furnish information or explanation or
document under this sub-section.




                                                  Page 171 of 401
       (2)    On receipt of the notice under sub-section (1) it shall be the duty of the company and all
persons who are or have been directors, officers or auditors of the company to furnish such information,
explanation or documents as required.

       (3)     If no information or explanation is furnished within the time specified or if the information
or explanation furnished is, in the opinion of the registrar, inadequate, the registrar may if he deems fit,
by written order, call on the company and any such person as is referred to in sub-section (1) or (2) to
produce before him for his inspection such books and papers as he considers necessary within such time
as he may specify in the order; and it shall be the duty of the company and of such persons to produce
such books and papers.

      (4)      If the company or any such person as is referred to in sub-section (1), (2) or (3) refuses or
makes default in furnishing any such information or in producing any such books or papers—

               (a)     the company shall be liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale; and

               (b)     every officer of the company who authorises or permits, or is a party to, the default
                       shall be punishable with imprisonment of either description for a term which may
                       extend to two years, and shall also be liable to fine which may extend to one million
                       rupees and the court trying the offence may, make an order directing the company
                       to produce such books or papers as in its opinion may reasonably be required by
                       the registrar.

        (5)    On receipt of such information or explanation or production of any books and papers, the
registrar may annex the same or any copy thereof or extract therefrom to the original document submitted
to him; and any document so annexed shall be subject to the provisions as to inspection and the taking of
extracts and furnishing of copies to which the original document is subject.

        (6)     If the information or explanation or book or papers required by the registrar under sub-
section (1) is not furnished within the specified time, or if after perusal of such information or explanation
or books or papers the registrar is of opinion that the document in question or the information or
explanation or book or paper discloses an unsatisfactory state of affairs, or that it does not disclose a full
and fair statement of the matter to which it purports to relate, the registrar shall without prejudice to any
other provisions, and whether or not action under sub-section (3) or sub-section (4) has been taken, report
in writing the circumstances of the case to the Commission.

        255. Seizure of documents by registrar, inspector or investigation officer.—(1)
Notwithstanding anything contained in Code of Criminal Procedure, 1898(Act V of 1898) or any other
law including Banking Companies Ordinance (Act LVII of 1962) the registrar, inspector or investigation
officer, as the case may be, upon information in his possession or otherwise or during investigation, has
reasons to believe that documents, books and papers or anything relating to any company or any chief
executive or officer of such company or any associate of such person or is useful or relevant to any
proceedings or investigation under this Act which is required or may be destroyed, mutilated, altered,
falsified or secreted, the registrar, inspector, or investigation officer after obtaining prior permission of
the Commission, signed by one Commissioner, without warrants, enter such place and cause a search to
be made at any time freeze, seize or take possession of and retain any document, object, article, material,




                                                 Page 172 of 401
thing, account books, movable or immovable property or cause any account, property or thing to be
maintained in specific manner.

        (2)     For the purposes of sub-section (1), the registrar may, after he has obtained the
permission from the Commission under that sub-section (1), may also authorise any officer subordinate
to him, not inferior in rank to an assistant registrar to enter, with such assistance as may be required, the
place where he has reasons to believe that any of the items referred in sub-section (1) are kept;

               (a)     to search that place; and

               (b)     to seize any of the items referred in sub-section (1) as he considers necessary.

       (3)     The registrar shall return the items seized under this section as soon as may be and in any
case not later than thirty day after such seizure, to the company or, as the case may be, to the chief
executive or any other person from whose custody or power they were seized:

        Provided that the Commission may, after providing to the company an opportunity to show cause
against the order proposed to be made by it, allow the registrar to retain the items seized for a further
period not exceeding thirty days:

        Provided further that the registrar may, before returning items as aforesaid, take copies of, or
extracts from them or put such marks of identification thereon as he considers necessary.

        (4)     Where, the registrar, inspector or investigation officer, as the case may be, has
apprehension that any person or occupants of any place to be searched may create hindrance, resist
search, or such document or thing is not known to be in the possession of any person, or where general
search is required for the purposes of any proceedings, inspection or investigation under this Act, or any
person will not or would not produce any document or thing as required by the registrar, inspector or
investigation officer in any proceedings, inspection or investigation under this Act, a search-warrants
from the concerned Magistrate may be obtained.

        (5)     The registrar, inspector or investigation officer after obtaining warrant under sub-
section (4) may conduct search of such person and enter any place and seize any property, material,
document or thing required under this Act or is associated with commission of any offence under this
Act or administered legislation and Magistrate while issuing orders under this section may also direct
local police, authority or any agency to provide necessary assistance to such person.

       (6)    The registrar, inspector or investigation officer executing the warrants shall comply and
proceed in manner provided in the Criminal Procedure Code 1898(Act V of 1898) including sections
102, 48 and 52:

      Provided that any proceeding under this section shall not be vitiated or called into question for
non–observance of any requirement of Section 103 of the Code and shall be admissible in the Court of
law.




                                                   Page 173 of 401
        (7)     Notwithstanding anything contained in sub section (3) in case of seizure of any property,
material or thing by the investigation officer, in relation to any offense under this Act or administered
legislation or scheduled offences, may retain any property, material, document or thing seized under sub-
section (1) or (5) which is a case property and produce the same as and when required during the trial in
accordance with law.

       (8)    Where the Commission has reason to believe that proceeds of crime of any offence under
this Act or administered legislation, it may pass an order to freeze account, securities and any other
moveable property or part or parts thereof for not more than thirty days.

        (9)    Any person aggrieved of the seizure, freezing or retention by the investigation officer may
approach the Court and obtain order for release of such accounts, securities, movable or immovable
property, things or material seized or retained, after expiry of thirty days of such seizure or freezing order
by the inspector or investigator under sub-sections (1), (5) or (8), if it can satisfy the Court that such
property, accounts, securities, material or thing is not associated with any offence under this Act or any
administered legislation and Court while passing order of release may impose such restriction and
condition as deemed necessary.

         Explanation I.—For the purposes of sub-section (8) the expression “Court” means the Company
Bench of the High Court having jurisdiction where registered office is situated, in case of company or
any connected person and in all other case, it will be the Company Bench of the High Court having
territorial jurisdiction over area where the search has been conducted under this section.

       Explanation II.—For the purposes of this Act, the expression “administrated legislation” shall
have the same meaning as provided in clause (aa) of sub-section (1) of section 2 of the Securities and
Exchange Commission of Pakistan Act, 1997 (XLII of 1997).

                           INVESTIGATION AND RELATED MATTERS

         256. Investigation into affairs of company.—(1) Where the Commission is of the opinion,
that it is necessary to investigate into the affairs of a company—

               (a)     on the application of the members holding not less than one tenth of the total voting
                       power in a company having share capital;

               (b)     on the application of not less than one tenth of the total members of a company not
                       having share capital;

               (c)     on the receipt of a report under sub-section (5) of section 221 or on the report by
                       the registrar under sub-section (6) of section 254;

       it may order an investigation into the affairs of the company and appoint one or more persons as
inspectors to investigate into the affairs of the company and to report thereon in such manner as the
Commission may direct:




                                                 Page 174 of 401
       Provided that before making an order of investigation, the Commission shall give the company
an opportunity of being heard.

        (2)     While appointing an inspector under sub-section (1), the Commission may define the
scope of the investigation, the period to which it is to extend or any other matter connected or incidental
to the investigation.

       (3)     An application by members of a company under clause (a) or (b) of sub-section (1) shall
be supported by such evidence as the Commission may require for the purpose of showing that the
applicants have good reason for requiring the investigation.

        (4)    The Commission may, before appointing an inspector, require the applicants to give such
security for payment of the costs of the investigation as the Commission may specify.

       257. Investigation of company’s affairs in other cases.—(1)Without prejudice to its power
under section 256, the Commission—

               (a)     shall appoint one or more competent persons as inspectors to investigate the affairs
                       of a company and to report thereon in such manner as the Commission may direct,
                       if—

                       (i)     the company, by a special resolution, or

                       (ii)    the Court, by order,

declares that the affairs of the company ought to be investigated; and

               (b)     may appoint one or more competent persons as inspectors to investigate the affairs
                       of a company and to report thereon in such manner as the Commission may direct
                       if in its opinion there are circumstances suggesting—

                       (i)     that the business of the company is being or has been conducted with
                               intent to defraud its creditors, members or any other person or for a
                               fraudulent or unlawful purpose, or in a manner oppressive of any of its
                               members or that the company was formed for any fraudulent or unlawful
                               purpose; or

                       (ii)    that persons concerned in the formation of the company or the management
                               of its affairs have in connection therewith been guilty of fraud, misfeasance,
                               breach of trust or other misconduct towards the company or towards any of
                               its members or have been carrying on unauthorised business; or

                       (iii)   that the affairs of the company have been so conducted or managed as to
                               deprive the members thereof of a reasonable return; or




                                                Page 175 of 401
                        (iv)     that the members of the company have not been given all the information
                                 with respect to its affairs which they might reasonably expect; or

                        (v)      that any shares of the company have been allotted for inadequate
                                 consideration; or

                        (vi)     that the affairs or the company are not being managed in accordance with
                                 sound business principles or prudent commercial practices; or

                        (vii)    that the financial position of the company is such as to endanger its
                                 solvency:

                                      Provided that, before making an order under clause (b), the
                                 Commission shall give the company an opportunity of being heard.

       (2)    While appointing an inspector under sub-section (1), the Commission may define the
scope of the investigation, whether as respects the matters or the period to which it is to extend or
otherwise.

        258. Serious Fraud Investigation.—(1) Notwithstanding anything contained in sections 256
and 257, the Commission may authorize any one or more of its officers or appoint such number of
professionals from amongst the persons of ability, integrity and having experience in the fields of
corporate affairs, accountancy, taxation, forensic audit, capital market, banking, information technology,
law or such other fields as may be notified, as an inspector or investigation officer to investigate such
serious nature of offences relating to a company as provided in Sixth Schedule.

       (2)    The persons appointed as inspectors or investigation officer under sub-section (1) shall
have all powers of investigation officer under this Act, the Securities and Exchange Commission of
Pakistan Act, 1997 (XLII of 1997) and Code of Criminal Procedure, 1898 (Act V of 1898), mutatis
mutandis and shall report in such manner as the Commission may direct.

       (3)     Where no procedure is provided in this Act or Securities and Exchange Commission of
Pakistan Act, 1997 (XLII of 1997) the investigation officer shall comply with the relevant provisions of
Code of Criminal Procedure, 1898 (Act V of 1898).

          (4)     Notwithstanding anything contained in this Act or any other law, the Commission may,
if it is satisfied that the matter is of public importance or it is in the interest of public at large, request the
concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government to form a Joint Investigation Team to be
headed by a senior level officer of the Commission, not below the rank of additional director, and may
include any person mentioned in sub section (1) alongwith Gazetted officer of any Federal law
enforcement agency, bureau or authority for providing assistance in investigating the offence under this
section and the direction of the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government under this
section shall be binding and any person who fails to comply with such directions, shall be guilty of an
offence punishable with simple imprisonment of thirty days or fine up to one hundred thousand rupees
by the Court:




                                                   Page 176 of 401
      Provided that nothing in this section shall be in derogation to or affect any proceedings under
powers of the Commission to send reference under section 41B of the Securities and Exchange
Commission of Pakistan Act, 1997 (XLII of 1997).

       (5)    Upon completion of investigation, the Joint Investigation Team shall, through the Special
Public Prosecutor, submit a report before the Court as mentioned in section 483 of this Act:

       Provided that notwithstanding anything contained in the Qanun-e-Shahadat (Order), 1984 (P.O.
No. X of 1984) or any other law, such report shall be admissible as an evidence in the Court.

        (6)    While trying any offence under this Act, the Court may also try any other offence, in which
an accused may be charged under any other law, at the same trial if the offence is connected with such
other offence.

       (7)   Where, in the course of any trial under this Act, it is found that the accused person has
committed any other offence in addition to any offences connected with the scheduled offences, the
Court may convict an accused for such other offence and pass any sentence under this Act or any other
law:

        Provided that where such offence is tried by any special court having jurisdiction, higher or equal
to the Court of Session, joint trial will be conducted by such special court of all the offences and convict
an accused accordingly under the process provided in the special law.

        259. Inspector to be a Court for certain purposes.—(1) Notwithstanding anything contained
in any other law for the time being in force, the Commission may either on its own motion or on the
basis of any information received, is of the view that any offence has been committed under this Act or
any person is engaged in any fraud, misfeasance, misconduct or any other activity prejudice to the public
interest shall have all the powers as provided under the Securities and Exchange Commission of Pakistan
Act, 1997(XLII of 1997).

        (2)     A person appointed as inspector under sections 256, 257 and 258 shall, for the purposes
of his investigation, have the same powers as are vested in a Court under the Code of Civil Procedure,
1908 (Act V of 1908), while trying a suit, in respect of the following matters, namely—

               (a)     enforcing the attendance of persons and examining them on oath or affirmation;

               (b)     compelling the discovery and production of books and papers and any material
                       objects; and

               (c)     issuing commissions for the examination of witnesses;

and every proceeding before such person shall be deemed to be “judicial proceeding” within the meaning
of sections 193 and 228 of the Pakistan Penal Code, 1860 (Act XLV of 1860).

       (3)    Any contravention of or non-compliance with any orders, directions or requirement of the
inspector exercising powers of a Court under sub-section (1) shall, in all respects, entail the same




                                                Page 177 of 401
liabilities, consequences and penalties as are provided for such contravention, non-compliance or default
under the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (Act V of 1908) and Pakistan Penal Code, 1860 (Act XLV of
1860).

        260. Power of inspectors to carry investigation into affairs of associated companies.— If
an inspector appointed under sections 256, 257 or 258 to investigate the affairs of a company considers
it necessary for reasons to be recorded in writing, he may probe after seeking prior approval of the
Commission, the affairs of any other associated company or associated undertaking which is, or has
been associated and also from the chief executive of any such company:

        Provided that the Commission shall not grant approval under this section without providing
opportunity of being heard to the associated company or associated undertaking or the chief executive,
as the case may be.

        261. Duty of officers to assist the inspector.—(1) It shall be the duty of all officers and other
employees and agents of the company and all persons who have dealings with the company to give to
the inspector all assistance in connection with the investigation.

        (2)     Any such person who makes default in complying with the provisions of sub-section (1)
shall, without prejudice to any other liability, be publishable in respect of each offence with imprisonment
of either description for a term which may extend to two years and shall also be liable to a fine which
may extend to one million rupees.

       (3)     In this section—

               (a)     the expression “agents”, in relation to any company, body corporate or person,
                       includes the bankers, legal advisers and auditors of the company;

               (b)     the expression “officer”, in relation to any company or body corporate, include
                       any trustee for the debenture-holders of such company or body corporate; and

               (c)     any reference to officers and other employees and agents shall be construed as a
                       reference to past as well as present officers and other employees and agents, as the
                       case may be.

      262. Inspector’ s report.—(1) The inspector may, and if so directed by the Commission shall,
make an interim report, and on the conclusion of the investigation a final report to the Commission.

       (2)     The Commission—

               (a)     shall forward a copy of any report made by the inspector to the company at its
                       registered office with such directions as the Commission thinks fit;

               (b)     may, if it thinks fit, furnish a copy thereof, on request and on payment of the
                       specified fee, to any person-




                                                Page 178 of 401
                       (i)    who is a member of the company or other body corporate or is interested in
                              the affairs of the company;

                       (ii)   whose interests as a creditor of the company or other body corporate appear
                              to the Commission to be affected;

               (c)     shall, when the inspectors are appointed under clause (a) or clause (b) of section
                       256, furnish, at the request of the applicants for the investigation, a copy of the
                       report to them;

               (d)     shall, where the inspector are appointed under section 257 in pursuance of an order
                       of the Court, furnish a copy of the report to the Court;

               (e)     may forward a copy of the report to the registrar with such directions as it may
                       deem fit; and

               (f)     may also cause the report or any part thereof to be posted on its website.

         263. Prosecution.__(1) If, from any report made under section 262, it appears to the
Commission that any person has, in relation to the company or in relation to any other body corporate,
whose affairs have been investigated by virtue of sections 256, 257 and 258, been guilty of any offense
for which he is criminally liable, the Commission may, prosecute such person for the offence, and it shall
be the duty of all officers and other employees and agents of the company or body corporate, as the case
may be, other than the accused in the proceedings, to give the Commission or any person nominated by
it in this behalf all assistance in connection with the prosecution which they are reasonably able to give.

       (2)     Sub-section (3) of section 261 shall apply for the purpose of this section as it applies for
the purposes of that section.

      264. Power of Commission to initiate action against management.— (1) If from any report
made under section 262, the Commission is of the opinion that—

               (a)     the business of the company is being or has been conducted with intent to defraud
                       its creditors, members or any other persons or for a fraudulent or unlawful purpose,
                       or in a manner oppressive of any of its members or that the company was formed
                       for any fraudulent or unlawful purpose; or

               (b)     the person concerned in the formation of the company or the management of
                       its affairs have in connection therewith been guilty of fraud, misfeasance, breach of
                       trust or other misconduct towards the company or towards any of its member or
                       have been carrying on unauthorized business; or

               (c)     the affairs of the company have been so conducted or managed as to deprive the
                       shareholders thereof of a reasonable return; or




                                                Page 179 of 401
               (d)     that the members of the company have not been given all the information with
                       respect to its affairs which they might reasonably expect; or

               (e)     any shares of the company have been allotted for inadequate consideration; or

               (f)     the affairs of the company are not being managed in accordance with sound
                       business principles or prudent commercial practices; or

               (g)     the financial position of the company is such as to endanger its solvency;

the Commission may apply to the Court and the Court may, after taking such evidence as it may consider
necessary, by an order—

                       (i)     remove from office any director including the chief executive or other
                               officer of the company; or

                       (ii)    direct that the directors of the company shall carry out such changes in the
                               management or in the accounting policies of the company as may be
                               specified in the order; or

                       (iii)   notwithstanding anything contained in this Act or any other law for the time
                               being in force, direct the company to call a meeting of its members to
                               consider such matters as may be specified in the order and to take
                               appropriate remedial actions; or

                       (iv)    direct that any existing contract which is to the detriment of the company
                               or its members or is intended to or does benefit any officer or director shall
                               be annulled or modified to the extent specified in the order:
                                       Provided that no such order shall be made so as to have effect from
                               any date preceding the date of the order:
                                       Provided further that any director, including a chief executive or
                               other officer who is removed from office under clause (i), unless the Court
                               specified a lesser period, shall not be a director, chief executive or officer
                               of any company for a period of five years from the date of his removal.

        (2)    No order under this section shall be made unless the director or other officer likely to be
affected by such order has been given an opportunity of being heard.

       (3)     The action taken under sub-section (1) shall be in addition to and not in substitution of
any other action or remedy provided in any other law for the time being in force.

       265. Effect of Court’s order.—On the issue of the Court’s order under section 264 removing
from office any director, including chief executive or other officer, such director or other officer shall be
deemed to have vacated his office and—




                                                 Page 180 of 401
               (a)     if the Court’s order has removed a director, the casual vacancy in the office of
                       director shall be filled in accordance with the relevant provisions of section 161 of
                       this Act; and

               (b)     if the Court’s order has removed from office a chief executive, the board shall
                       appoint another person to be the chief executive; and

               (c)     if the Court’s order has removed from office all the directors including the chief
                       executive, a general meeting of the company shall be called forthwith for electing
                       new directors.

       266. No compensation to be payable for annulment or modification of contract.—
Notwithstanding anything contained in any other law for the time being in force, and except as ordered
by the Court for special reasons to be recorded in writing, no director, chief executive or other officer of
the company shall be entitled to be paid any compensation for annulment or modification of a contract
to which he is a party or of which he is a beneficiary, if such contract is annulled or modified by an order
issued by the Court under section 264.

       267. No right to compensation for loss of office.—No person shall be entitled to or be paid
any compensation or damages for the loss of office by reason of an order issued under section 264.


                         POWERS OF COURT HEARING APPLICATION

        268. Application for winding up of company or an order under section 286.—If any
company or other body corporate the affairs of which have been investigated by inspectors is liable to be
wound up under this Act, and it appears to the Commission from any report made under section 262 that
it is expedient so to do by reason of any such circumstances as are referred to in sub-clause (i) or sub-
clause (ii) or sub-clause (iii) or sub-clause (iv) or sub-clause (vii) of clause (b) of sub-section (1) of
section 257, the Commission may, unless the company or other body corporate is already being wound
up by the Court cause to be presented to the Court by the registrar or any person authorised by the
Commission in this behalf—

               (a)     a petition for the winding up of the company or body corporate, on the ground that
                       it is just and equitable that it should be wound up;

               (b)     an application for an order under section 286; or

               (c)     both a petition and an application as aforesaid.

        269. Proceedings for recovery of damages or property.—(1) If from any report referred to
in sub-section (1) of section 262 it appears to the Commission that proceedings ought, in the public
interest, to be brought by the company or any body corporate whose affairs have been investigated in
pursuance of section 260—




                                                Page 181 of 401
               (a)    for the recovery of damages in respect of any fraud, misfeasance, breach of trust
                      or other misconduct in connection with the promotion or formation, or the
                      management of the affairs, of such company or body corporate; or

               (b)    for the recovery of any property of such company or body corporate which has been
                      misapplied or wrongfully retained;

the Commission may itself bring proceedings for that purpose in the name of such company or body
corporate.

       (2)     The Commission shall be indemnified by such company or body corporate against any
costs or expenses incurred by it in, or in connection with, any proceedings brought by virtue of sub-
section (1) and the Court or other authority before which proceedings are brought shall pass an order
accordingly.

        270. Expenses of investigation.—(1) When an investigation is ordered to be made under
section 256 or 257 or 258, the expenses of and incidental to the investigation shall in the first instance
be defrayed by the Commission; but the following persons shall, to the extent mentioned below, be liable
to reimburse the Commission in respect of such expenses, namely—

               (a)    any person who is convicted on a prosecution instituted in pursuance of section
                      263 or is ordered to pay damages or restore any property as a result of proceedings
                      under section 269 may in the same proceedings be ordered to pay the said expenses
                      to such extent as may be specified by the Commission or the Court convicting such
                      person or ordering him to pay such damages or restore such property, as the case
                      may be;

               (b)    any company or body corporate in whose name proceedings are brought as
                      aforesaid shall be liable, to the extent of the amount or value of any sums or
                      property recovered by it as a result of the proceedings;

               (c)    where the investigation was ordered by the Commission under clause (c) of sub-
                      section (1) of section 256 or 257 or 258, the company or body corporate whose
                      affairs are ordered to be investigated, shall be liable; and

               (d)    where the investigation was ordered under section 256 on an application of the
                      members, the members making the application and the company or body corporate
                      dealt with by the report shall be liable to such extent, if any, as the Commission
                      may direct.

       (2)     The amount of expenses which any company, body corporate or person is liable under this
section to reimburse to the Commission shall be recoverable from that company, body corporate or
person as provided under section 486.




                                               Page 182 of 401
        (3)     For the purposes of this section, any costs or expenses incurred by the Commission in or
in connection with proceeding brought by the Commission under section 269 shall be treated as expenses
of the investigation giving rise to the proceedings.

        (4)     Any liability to reimburse the Commission imposed by clauses (a) and (b) of sub-section
(1) shall, subject to satisfaction of the right of the Commission to re-imbursement, be a liability also to
indemnify all persons against liability under clause (c) of that sub-section.

         (5)     Any such liability imposed by clause (a) of sub-section (1) shall, subject as aforesaid, be
a liability also to indemnify all persons against liability under clause (b) of that sub-section.

        (6)     Any person liable under clause (a) or clause (b) or clause (c) of sub-section (1) shall be
entitled to contribute from any other person liable under the same clause according to the amount of their
respective liabilities thereunder.

       (7)     In so far as the expenses to be defrayed by the Commission under this section are not
recovered thereunder, they shall be borne by the Commission.

       271. Inspector’ s report to be evidence.—A copy of any report of any inspector or inspectors
appointed under sections 256, 257 or 258 authenticated in such manner, if any, as may be specified, shall
be admissible in any legal proceedings as evidence of the opinion of the inspector or inspectors in relation
to any matter contained in the report.

         272. Imposition of restrictions on shares and debentures and prohibition of transfer of
shares or debentures in certain cases.—(1) Where it appears to the Commission in connection with
any investigation that there is good reason to find out the relevant facts about any shares, whether issued
or to be issued, and the Commission is of the opinion that such facts cannot be found out unless the
restrictions specified in sub-section (2) are imposed, the Commission may, by order, direct that the
shares shall be subject to the restrictions imposed by sub-section (2) for such period not exceeding one
year as may be specified in the order:

        Provided that, before making an order under this sub-section, the Commission shall provide an
opportunity of showing cause against the proposed action to the company and the persons likely to be
affected by the restriction.

       (2)     So long as any shares are directed to be subject to the restrictions imposed by this sub-
section—

               (a)     any transfer of those shares shall be void;

               (b)     where those shares are to be issued, they shall not be issued; and any issue thereof
                       or any transfer of the right to be issued therewith, shall be void;

               (c)     no voting right shall be exercisable in respect of those shares;




                                                Page 183 of 401
               (d)    no further shares shall be issued in right of those shares or in pursuance of any
                      offer made to the holder thereof; and any issue of such shares or any transfer of the
                      right to be issued therewith, shall be void;

               (e)    except in a liquidation, no payment shall be made of any sums due from the
                      company on those shares, whether in respect of dividend, capital or otherwise; and

               (f)    no change other than a change by operation of law shall be made in the directors or
                      the chief executive.

        (3)     Where a transfer of shares in a company has taken place and as a result thereof a change
in the directors of the company is likely to take place and the Commission is of opinion that any such
change will be prejudicial to the public interest, the Commission may, by order, direct, that—

               (a)    the voting rights in respect of those shares shall not be exercisable for such period
                      not exceeding one year as may be specified in the order; and

               (b)    no resolution passed or action taken to effect a change in the directors before
                      the date of the order shall have effect unless confirmed by the Commission.

       (4)    Where the Commission has reasonable ground to believe that a transfer of shares in a
company is likely to take place as a result of which a change in the directors of the company will follow
and the Commission is of opinion that any such change will be prejudicial to the public interest, the
Commission may, by order, prohibit any transfer of shares in the company during such period not
exceeding one year as may be specified in the order.

       (5)     The Commission may, by order, at any time, vary or rescind any order made by it under
sub-section (1) or sub-section (3) or sub-section (4).

        (6)    Where the Commission makes an order under sub-section (1) or sub-section (3) or sub-
section (4) or sub-section (5) or refuses to rescind any such order, any person aggrieved thereby may
apply to the Court and the Court may, if it thinks fit, by order, vacate any such order of the Commission:

     Provided that no order, whether interim or final shall be made by the Court without giving the
Commission an opportunity of being heard.

       (7)     Any order of the Commission rescinding an order under sub-section (1), or any order of
the Court vacating any such order, which is expressed to be made with a view to permitting a transfer of
any shares, may continue the restrictions mentioned in clauses (d) and (e) of sub-section (2), either in
whole or in part, so far as they relate to any right acquired, or offer made, before the transfer.

        (8)    Any order made by the Commission under sub-section (5) shall be served on the company
within fourteen days of the making of the order.

       (9)     Any person who—




                                               Page 184 of 401
              (a)     exercises or purports to exercise any right to dispose of any shares or of any right
                      to be issued with any such shares, when to his knowledge he is not entitled to do
                      so by reason of any of the restrictions applicable to the case under sub-section (1);
                      or

              (b)     votes in respect of any shares, whether as holder or proxy, or appoints a proxy to
                      vote in respect thereof, when to his knowledge he is not entitled to do so by reason
                      of any of the restrictions applicable to the case under sub-section (2) or by reason
                      of any order made under sub-section (3); or

              (c)     transfers any shares in contravention of any order made under sub-section (4); or

              (d)     being the holder of any shares in respect of which an order under sub-section (2)
                      or sub-section (3) has been made, fails to give notice of the fact of their being
                      subject to any such order to any person whom he does not know to be aware of that
                      fact but whom he knows to be otherwise entitled to vote in respect of those shares,
                      whether as holder or a proxy;

shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term which may extend to one year, or with fine which may
extend to one million rupees, or with both.

       (10) Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of sub-section (2) shall be
an offence liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale.

      (11) A prosecution shall not be instituted under this section except by or with the consent of
the Commission.

       (12)   This section shall also apply in relation to debentures as it applies in relation to shares.

       273. Saving for legal advisers and bankers.—Nothing in sections 256 to 263 shall require the
disclosure to the registrar or to the Commission or to an inspector appointed by the Commission—

              (a)     by a legal adviser, of any privileged communication made to him in that capacity,
                      except as respects the name and address of his client; or

              (b)     by the bankers of any company, body corporate, or other person, referred to in the
                      sections aforesaid, as such bankers, of any information as to be the affairs of any of
                      their customers other than such company, body corporate, or person.

       274. Enquiries and investigation not to be affected by winding up.— An inspection, enquiry
or investigation may be initiated or proceeded with under sections 221, 254, 255, 256, 257 and 260 and
any consequential action taken in accordance with any provisions of this Act notwithstanding that—




                                                Page 185 of 401
              (a)    the company has passed a resolution for winding up;

              (b)    a petition has been submitted to the Court for winding up of the company; or

              (c)    any other civil or criminal proceedings have been initiated against the company or
                     its officers under any provision of this Act.

        275. Application of sections 254 to 274 to liquidators and foreign companies.—The
provisions of sections 254 to 274 shall apply mutatis mutandis to companies in the course of winding
up, their liquidators and foreign companies.

                                         _______________




                                             Page 186 of 401
                                              PART VIII

        MEDIATION, ARBITRATION, ARRANGEMENTS AND RECONSTRUCTION

        276. Mediation and Conciliation Panel.— (1) Any of the parties to the proceedings may, by
mutual consent, at any time during the proceedings before the Commission or the Appellate Bench,
apply to the Commission or the Appellate Bench, as the case may be, in such form along- with such fees
as may be specified, for referring the matter pertaining to such proceedings to the Mediation and
Conciliation Panel and the Commission or the Appellate Bench, as the case may be, shall appoint one or
more individuals from the panel referred to in sub-section (2).

        (2)    The Commission shall maintain a panel to be called as the Mediation and Conciliation
Panel consisting of individuals having such qualifications as may be specified for mediation between the
parties during the pendency of any proceedings before the Commission or the Appellate Bench under
this Act.

       (3)     The fee and other terms and conditions of individuals of the Mediation and
Conciliation Panel shall be such as may be specified.


       (4)     The Mediation and Conciliation Panel shall follow such procedure as and dispose of the
matter referred to it within a period of ninety days from the date of such reference and forward its
recommendations to the Commission or the Appellate Bench, as the case may be.

       277. Resolution of disputes through mediation.— A company, its management or its
members or creditors may by written consent, directly refer a dispute, claim or controversy arising
between them or between the members or directors inter-se, for resolution, to any individuals enlisted
on the mediation and conciliation panel maintained by the Commission before taking recourse to formal
dispute resolution.

        278. Power for companies to refer matter to arbitration.— (1) A company may by written
agreement refer any existing or future difference between itself and any other company or person to
arbitration, in accordance with the Arbitration Act, 1940 (X of 1940).

       (2)     Companies, parties to the arbitration, may delegate to the arbitrator power to settle any
term or to determine any matter capable of being lawfully settled or determined by the companies
themselves, or by the board or other managing body.

      (3)   The provisions of the Arbitration Act, 1940 (X of 1940), shall apply to all arbitrations
between companies and persons in pursuance of this Act.

        279. Compromise with creditors and members.— (1) Where a compromise or arrangement
is proposed between a company and its creditors or any class of them, or between the company and its
members or any class of them, the Commission may, on the application of the company or of any creditor
or member of the company or, in the case of a company being wound up, of the liquidator, order a
meeting of the creditors or class of creditors, or of the members of the company or class of members,
as the case may be, to be called, held and conducted in such manner as the Commission directs.



                                              Page 187 of 401
        (2)    If a majority in number representing three-fourths in value of the creditors or class of
creditors, or members, as the case may be, present and voting either in person or, where proxies are
allowed, by proxy at the meeting, agree to any compromise or arrangement, the compromise or
arrangement shall, if sanctioned by the Commission be binding on the company, all its creditors, all the
members, the liquidators and the contributories of the company, as the case may be:

         Provided that no order sanctioning any compromise or arrangement shall be made by the
Commission unless the Commission is satisfied that the company or any other person by whom an
application has been made under sub-section (1) has disclosed to the Commission, by affidavit or
otherwise, all material facts relating to the company, such as the financial position of the company, the
auditor’s report on the latest accounts of the company, the pendency of any investigation proceedings
in relation to the company and the like.

        (3)     A copy of the order under sub-section (2) sanctioning the compromise or arrangement
duly certified by an authorised officer of the Commission shall be forwarded to the registrar within seven
days from the date of the order.

        (4)   A copy of the order under sub-section (2) shall be annexed to every copy of the
memorandum of the company issued after the order has been made or in the case of a company not
having a memorandum to every copy so issued of the instrument constituting or defining the constitution
of the company.

        (5)      The Court may, at any time after an application has been made to the Commission under
this section, stay the commencement or continuation of any suit or proceeding until final disposal of the
application.

        (6)     In this section the expression “company” means any company liable to be wound up under
this Act and the expression “arrangement” includes a re-organisation of the share- capital of the company
by the consolidation of shares of different classes or by the division of shares into shares of different
classes or by both those methods, and for the purposes of this section unsecured creditors who may have
filed suits or obtained decrees shall be deemed to be of the same class as other unsecured creditors.

       (7)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of sub-section (4) shall be
an offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        280. Power of Commission to enforce compromises and arrangements.— (1) Where the
Commission makes an order under section 279 sanctioning a compromise or an arrangement in respect
of a company, it may, at the time of making such order or at any time thereafter, give such directions in
regard to any matter or make such modifications in the compromise or arrangement as it may consider
necessary for the proper working of the compromise or arrangement.

       (2)     If the Commission is satisfied that a compromise or arrangement sanctioned under section
279 cannot be worked satisfactorily with or without modification, it may, initiate proceedings for the
winding up of the company.




                                               Page 188 of 401
       281. Information as to compromises or arrangements with creditors and members.— (1)
Where a meeting of creditors or any class of creditors, or of members or any class of members, is called
under section 279—

               (a)     with every notice calling the meeting which is sent to a creditor or member, there
                       shall be sent also a statement setting forth the terms of the compromise or
                       arrangement and explaining its effect; and in particular, stating any material interest
                       of the directors including the chief executive of the company, whether in their
                       capacity as such or as members or creditors of the company or otherwise, and the
                       effect on those interests, of the compromise or arrangement if, and in so far as, it
                       is different from the effect on the like interest of other persons; and

               (b)     in every notice calling the meeting which is given by advertisement, there shall be
                       included either such a statement as aforesaid or a notification of the place at which
                       and the manner in which creditors or members entitled to attend the meeting may
                       obtain copies of such a statement as aforesaid.

        (2)   Where the compromise or arrangement affects the rights of debenture-holders of the
company, the said statement shall give the like information and explanation as respects the trustees of
any deed for securing the issue of the debentures as it is required to give as respects the company’s
directors.

        (3)     Where a notice given by advertisement includes a notification that copies of a statement
setting forth the terms of the compromise or arrangement proposed and explaining its effect can be
obtained by creditors or members entitled to attend the meeting, every creditor or member so entitled
shall, on making an application in the manner indicated by the notice, be furnished by the company, free
of charge, with a copy of the statement.

        (4)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale; and for the purpose of this sub-section any
liquidator of the company and trustee of a deed for securing the issue of debentures of the company shall
be deemed to be an officer of the company:

        Provided that a person shall not be under this sub-section if he shows that the default was due to
the refusal of any other person, being a director, including chief executive or trustee for debenture-holder,
to supply the necessary particulars as to his material interests.

       (5)     Every director, including chief executive of the company and every trustee for debenture-
holders of the company, shall give notice to the company of such matters relating to himself as may be
necessary for the purposes of this section and on the request of the company shall provide such further
information as may be necessary for the purposes of this section; and, if he fails to do so within the time
allowed by the company, he shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

       282. Powers of Commission to facilitate reconstruction or amalgamation of companies.—
(1) Where an application is made to the Commission under section 279 to sanction a compromise or
arrangement and it is shown that—




                                                 Page 189 of 401
              (a)     the compromise or arrangement is proposed for the purposes of, or in connection
                      with, a scheme for the reconstruction of any company or companies, or the
                      amalgamation of any two or more companies or division of a company into one or
                      more companies;

              (b)     under the scheme the whole or any part of the undertaking or property or liabilities
                      of any company concerned in the scheme (“a transferor company”) is to be
                      transferred to another company (“the transferee company”) or is proposed to be
                      divided among and transferred to two or more companies; and

              (c)     a copy of the scheme drawn up by the applicants has been filed with the registrar;

the Commission may order a meeting of the creditors or class of creditors or the members or class of
members, as the case may be, to be called, held and conducted in such manner as the Commission
may direct.

        (2)    Where an order has been made by the Commission under sub-section (1), merging
companies or the company in respect of which a division is proposed, shall also be required to circulate
the following for the meeting so ordered by the Commission, namely:—


              (a)     the draft of the proposed terms of the scheme drawn up and adopted by the board
                      of each of the applicant companies;

              (b)     confirmation that a copy of the draft scheme has been filed with the registrar;

              (c)     a report adopted by the board of the applicant companies explaining effect of
                      compromise on each class of members, laying out in particular the share swap ratio,
                      specifying any special valuation difficulties;

              (d)     the report of the expert with regard to valuation, if any;

              (e)     a supplementary audited financial statements if the last annual accounts of any of
                      the applicant company relate to a financial year ending more than one hundred and
                      eighty days before the first meeting of the company summoned for the purposes
                      of approving the scheme.

       (3)    The Commission may, either by an order, sanction the compromise or arrangement or by
a subsequent order, make provision for all or any of the following matters—

              (a)     the transfer to the transferee company of the whole or any part of the undertaking
                      and of the property or liabilities of any transferor company;

              (b)     the allotment or appropriation by the transferee company of any shares, debentures,
                      policies or other like interests in that company which under the compromise or
                      arrangement are to be allotted or appropriated by that company to or for any person;



                                               Page 190 of 401
               (c)     the continuation by or against the transferee company of any legal proceedings
                       pending by or against any transferor company;

               (d)     the dissolution, without winding up, of any transferor company;

               (e)     the provision to be made for any persons who, within such time and in such manner
                       as the Commission directs, dissent from the compromise or arrangement;

               (f)     such incidental, consequential and supplemental matters as are necessary to secure
                       that the reconstruction, amalgamation or bifurcation is fully and effectively carried
                       out.

       (4)     If an order under this section provides for the transfer of property or liabilities—

               (a)     the property, by virtue of the order stands transferred to, and vests in, the transferee
                       company, and

               (b)     the liabilities, by virtue of the order, stand transferred to and become liabilities of
                       that company.

        (5)    Notwithstanding anything contained in the Stamp Act, 1899 (II of 1899) or any other law
for the time being in force, no stamp duty shall be payable on transfer to the transferee company of the
whole or any part of the undertaking and of the property of any transferor company as a result of
sanctioning by the Commission, any compromise or arrangement under this Part:

        Provided that this sub-section (5) shall, in respect of the companies having registered office within
the jurisdiction of—

               (a)     the Islamabad Capital Territory, be applicable at once; and

               (b)     the Provinces, be applicable upon notification or legislation by the respective
                       Provincial Governments.

      (6)    The property (if the order so directs) vests freed from any charge that is by virtue of the
compromise or arrangement to cease to have effect.

        (7)    A copy of the order passed by the Commission under this section sanctioning the
reconstruction, the amalgamation or division, duly certified by an authorised officer of the Commission
shall be forwarded to the registrar within seven days from the date of the order.

         (8)     In this section “property” includes property, rights and powers of every description; and
“liabilities” includes duties.

        (9)   In this section the expression “transferee company” does not include any company other
than a company within the meaning of this Act, and the expression “transferor company” includes any
body corporate, whether a company within the meaning of this Act or not.



                                                 Page 191 of 401
       283. Notice to be given to registrar for applications under section 279 and 282.−The
Commission shall give notice of every application made to it under sections 279 to 282 to the registrar
and shall take into consideration the representation if any, made to it by the registrar before passing any
order under any of these sections.

       284. Amalgamation of wholly owned subsidiaries in holding company.—(1) A company
and one or more other companies that is or that are directly or indirectly wholly owned by it, may
amalgamate and continue as one company (being the company first referred to) without complying with
sections 279 to 282, if—

               (a)     the scheme of amalgamation is approved by the board of each amalgamating
                       company; and

               (b)     each resolution provides that—

                       (i)     the shares of each transferor company, other than the transferee company,
                               will be cancelled without payment or other consideration; and

                       (ii)    the board is satisfied that the transferee company will be able to pay its
                               debts as they fall due during the period of one year immediately after the
                               date on which the amalgamation is to become effective and a declaration
                               verified by an affidavit to the effect will be filed with the registrar; and

                       (iii)   the person or persons named in the resolution will be the director or
                               directors of the transferee company.

       (2)   Two or more companies, each of which is directly or indirectly wholly owned by the same
person, may amalgamate and continue as one company without complying with section 279 or section
282 if—

               (a)     the scheme of amalgamation is approved by a resolution of the board of each
                       amalgamating company; and

               (b)     each resolution provides that—

                       (i)     the shares of all the transferor companies will be cancelled without payment
                               or other consideration; and

                       (ii)    the board is satisfied that the transferee company will be able to pay its debts
                               as they fall due during the period of one year immediately after the date on
                               which the amalgamation is to become effective and a declaration verified
                               by an affidavit to the effect will be filed with the registrar; and

                       (iii)   the person or persons named in the resolution will be the director or
                               directors of the transferee company.




                                                 Page 192 of 401
       (3)     The board of each amalgamating company must, not less than twenty days before the
amalgamation is proposed to take effect, give written notice of the proposed amalgamation to every
secured creditor of the company.

      (4)    The resolutions approving an amalgamation under this section, taken together, shall be
deemed to constitute an amalgamation proposal that has been approved.

       (5)     The transferee company shall file a copy of the scheme so approved in the manner as may
be specified, with the registrar where the registered office of the company is situated.

       (6)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale.

        285. Power to acquire shares of members dissenting from scheme or contract.__(1) Where
a scheme or contract involving the transfer of shares or any class of shares in any company (in this section
referred to as “the transferor company”) to another company (in this section referred to as “transferee
company”) has, within one hundred and twenty days after the making of the offer in that behalf by the
transferee company, been approved by the holders of not less than nine-tenths in value of the shares whose
transfer is involved (other than shares already held at the date of the offer by, or by a nominee for, the
transferee company or its subsidiary), the transferee company may, at any time within sixty days after
the expiry of the said one hundred and twenty days, give notice in the specified manner to any dissenting
shareholder that it desires to acquire his shares; when such a notice is given the transferee company, shall,
unless, on an application made by the dissenting shareholder within thirty days from the date on which the
notice was given, the Commission thinks fit to order otherwise, be entitled and bound to acquire those
shares on the terms on which, under the scheme or contract, the shares of the approving shareholders are
to be transferred to the transferee company:

        Provided that, where shares in the transferor company of the same class as the shares whose transfer
is involved are already held as aforesaid by the transferee company to a value greater than one-tenths of
the aggregate of the value of all the shares in the company of such class, the foregoing provisions of this
sub-section shall not apply, unless—

               (a)     the transferee company offers the same terms to all holders of the shares of that
                       class (other than those already held as aforesaid) whose transfer is involved; and

               (b)     the holders who approve the scheme or contract, besides holding not less than nine-
                       tenths in value of the shares (other than those already held as aforesaid) whose
                       transfer is involved, are not less than three-fourths in number of the holders of those
                       shares.

        (2)     Where, in pursuance of any such scheme or contract as aforesaid, shares, or shares of any
class, in a company are transferred to another company or its nominee, and those shares together with
any other shares or any other shares of the same class, as the case may be, in the first mentioned company
held at the date of the transfer by, or by a nominee for, the transferee company or its subsidiary comprise
nine-tenth in value of the shares, or shares of that class, as the case may be, in the first-mentioned
company, then—




                                                 Page 193 of 401
               (a)     the transferee company shall, within thirty days from the date of the transfer (unless
                       on a previous transfer in pursuance of the scheme or contract it has already
                       complied with this requirement), give notice of that fact in the specified manner to
                       the holders of the remaining shares or of the remaining shares of that class, as the
                       case may be, who have not assented to the scheme or contract; and

               (b)     any such holder may, within ninety days from the giving of the notice to him,
                       require the transferee company to acquire the shares in question;

and where a shareholder gives notice under clause (b) with respect to any shares, the transferee company
shall be entitled and bound to acquire those shares on the terms on which, under the scheme or contract,
the shares of the approving shareholders were transferred to it, or on such other terms as may be agreed, or
as the Commission on the application of either the transferee company or the shareholders thinks fit to
order.

        (3)     Where a notice has been given by the transferee company under sub-section (1) and the
Commission has not, on an application made by the dissenting shareholder, made an order to the
contrary, the transferee company shall, on the expiration of thirty days from the date on which the notice
has been given or, if an application to the Commission by the dissenting shareholder is then pending,
after that application has been disposed of, transmit a copy of the notice to the transferor company
together with an instrument of transfer executed on behalf of the shareholder by any person appointed
by the transferee company and on its own behalf by the transferee company and pay or transfer to the
transferor company the amount or other consideration representing the price payable by the transferee
company for the shares which, by virtue of this section, that company is entitled to acquire; and the
transferor company shall—

               (a)     thereupon register the transferee company as the holders of those shares; and

               (b)     within thirty days of the date of such registration, inform the dissenting
                       shareholders of the fact of such registration and of the receipt of the amount or
                       other consideration representing the price payable to them by the transferee
                       company:

                       Provided that an instrument of transfer shall not be required for any share for which
               a share warrant is for the time being outstanding.

        (4)    Any sums received by the transferor company under this section shall forthwith be paid
into a separate bank account to be opened in a scheduled bank and any such sum and any other
consideration so received shall be held by that company in trust for the several persons entitled to the
shares in respect of which the said sums or other consideration were or was respectively received.

       (5)    The following provisions shall apply in relation to every offer of a scheme or contract
involving the transfer of shares or any class of shares in the transferor company to the transferee
company, namely—




                                                Page 194 of 401
               (a)     every such offer or every circular containing such offer or every recommendation
                       to the members of the transferor company by its board to accept such offer shall be
                       accompanied by such information as may be specified;

               (b)     every such offer shall contain a statement by or on behalf of the transferee company
                       disclosing the steps it has taken to ensure that necessary cash will be available;

               (c)     every circular containing or recommending acceptance of, such offer shall be
                       presented to the registrar for registration and no such circular shall be issued until
                       it is so registered;

               (d)     the registrar may refuse to register any such circular which does not contain the
                       information required to be given under clause (a) or which sets out such information
                       in a manner likely to give a misleading, erroneous or false impression; and

               (e)     an appeal shall lie to the Commission against an order of the registrar refusing to
                       register any such circular.

        (6)    The Commission or any party may make a reference to the Court, on any matter including
but not limited to the determination of liabilities of the company or incidental thereto as provided under
sections 279 to 285, for necessary orders.

        (7)     Whoever issues a circular referred to in clause (c) of sub-section (5) which has not been
registered shall be punishable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        (8)    Notwithstanding anything contained in sections 279 to 283 and 285, the powers of the
Commission shall be exercised by the Court for such companies or class of companies or having such
capital, as may be notified by the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government.

                                                 PART IX

                     PREVENTION OF OPPRESSION AND MIS-MANAGEMENT

        286. Application to Court.—(1) If any member or members holding not less than ten percent
of the issued share capital of a company, or a creditor or creditors having interest equivalent in amount
to not less than ten percent of the paid up capital of the company, complains, or complain, or the
Commission or registrar is of the opinion, that the affairs of the company are being conducted, or are
likely to be conducted, in an unlawful or fraudulent manner, or in a manner not provided for in its
memorandum, or in a manner oppressive to the members or any of the members or the creditors or any of
the creditors or are being conducted in a manner that is unfairly prejudicial to the public interest, such
member or members or, the creditor or creditors, as the case may be, the Commission or registrar may
make an application to the Court by petition for an order under this section.

       (2)     If, on any such petition, the Court is of opinion—




                                                Page 195 of 401
               (a)        that the company’s affairs are being conducted, or are likely to be conducted,
                          as aforesaid; and

               (b)        that to wind-up the company will unfairly prejudice the members or creditors;

the Court may, with a view to bringing to an end the matters complained of, make such order as it thinks
fit, whether for regulating the conduct of the company’s affairs in future, or for the purchase of the shares
of any members of the company by other members of the company or by the company and, in the case of
purchase by the company, for, the reduction accordingly of the company’s capital, or otherwise.

        (3)    Where an order under this section makes any alteration in, or addition to, a company’s
memorandum or articles, then, notwithstanding anything in any other provision of this Act, the company
shall not have power without the leave of the Court to make any further alteration in or addition to the
memorandum or articles inconsistent with the provisions of the order; and the alterations or additions
made by the order shall be of the same effect as if duly made by resolution of the company and the
provisions of this Act shall apply to the memorandum or articles as so modified accordingly.

        (4)     A copy of any order under this section altering or adding to, or giving leave to alter or
add to, a company’s memorandum or articles shall, within fourteen days after the making thereof, be
delivered by the company to the registrar for registration; and if the company makes default in complying
with this sub-section, the company and every officer of the company who is in default shall be liable to
a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

      (5)      The provisions of this section shall not prejudice the right of any person to any other
remedy or action.

        287. Powers of Court under section 286.—Without prejudice to the generality of the powers
of the Court under section 286, an order under that section may provide for—
               1
                   [(a)   the termination, setting aside or modification of any agreement or award
                          compensation, however arrived including but not limited to between the company
                          or any other company or any director, including the chief executive or any other
                          officer, wherein the Court concludes that such agreement suffers from conflict of
                          interest on the part of any director or the Board or any such agreement or contract
                          is prejudicial to the interest of members upon such terms and conditions as may,
                          in the opinion of the Court, be just and equitable in all the circumstances;]

               (b)        setting aside of any transfer, delivery of goods, payment, execution or other
                          transactions not relating to property made or done by or against the company within
                          ninety days before the date of the application which would, if made or done by or
                          against an individual, be deemed in his insolvency to be a fraudulent preference;
                          and
               1Subs. by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.21




                                                        Page 196 of 401
               (c)     any other matter, including a change in management, for which in the opinion of
                       the Court it is just and equitable that provision should be made.

        288. Interim order.—Pending the making by it of a final order under section 286 the Court may,
on the application of any party to the proceedings, make such interim order as it thinks fit for regulating
the conduct of the company’s affairs, upon such terms and conditions as appear to it to be just and
equitable.

        289. Claim for damages inadmissible.— Where an order of the Court made under section 286
terminates, sets aside, or modifies an arrangement, the order shall not give rise to any claim whatever
against the company by any person for damages or for compensation for loss of office or in any other
respect, either in pursuance of the agreement or otherwise.

       290. Application of certain sections to proceedings under this Part.— In relation to an
application under section 286, sections 395 to 400 shall mutatis mutandis apply as they apply in respect
of winding up.

        291. Management by Administrator.—(1) If at any time a creditor or creditors having
interest equivalent in amount not less than sixty per cent of the paid up capital of a company, represents
or represent to the Commission that—

               (a)     the affairs or business of the company are or is being or have or has been conducted
                       or managed in a manner likely to be prejudicial to the interest of the company, its
                       members or creditors, or any director of the company or person concerned with the
                       management of the company is or has been guilty of breach of trust, mis-feasance
                       or other misconduct towards the company or towards any of its members or
                       creditors or director;

               (b)     the affairs or business of the company are or is being or have or has been conducted
                       or managed with intent to defraud its members or creditors or any other person or
                       for a fraudulent or unlawful purpose, or in a manner oppressive of any of such
                       persons or for purposes as aforesaid; or

               (c)     the affairs of the company have been so conducted or managed as to deprive the
                       members thereof of a reasonable return; or

               (d)     any industrial project or unit to be set up or belonging to the company has not been
                       completed or has not commenced operations or has not been operating smoothly or
                       its production or performance has so deteriorated that__

                       (i)    the market value of its shares as quoted on the securities exchange or
                              the net worth of its share has fallen by more than seventy-five per cent of
                              its par value; or

                       (ii)   debt equity ratio has deteriorated beyond 9:1; or




                                                Page 197 of 401
                      (iii)   current ratio has deteriorated beyond 5:1; or

              (e)     any industrial unit owned by the company is not in operation for over a period of
                      two years or has been in operation intermittently or partially during the preceding
                      two years; or

              (f)     the accumulated losses of the company exceed sixty percent of its paid up capital,

and request the Commission to take action under this section, the Commission may, after giving the
company an opportunity of being heard, without prejudice to any other action that may be taken under
this Act or any other law, by order in writing, appoint an Administrator, hereinafter referred to as the
Administrator, within sixty days of the date of receipt of the representation, from a panel maintained
by it on the recommendation of the State Bank of Pakistan to manage the affairs of the company subject
to such terms and conditions as may be specified in the order:

       Provided that the Commission may, if it considers it necessary so to do, for reasons to be
recorded, or on the application of the creditors on whose representation it proposes to appoint the
Administrator, and after giving a notice to the State Bank of Pakistan, appoint a person whose name does
not appear on the panel maintained for the purpose to be the Administrator.

        Explanation.—For the purposes of clause (c), the members shall be deemed to have been
deprived of a reasonable return if, having regard to enterprises similarly placed, the company is unable
to, or does not, declare any or adequate dividend for a period of three consecutive years.

       (2)    The Administrator shall receive such remuneration as the Commission may determine.

        (3)  On and from the date of appointment of the Administrator, the management of the affairs
of the company shall vest in him, and he shall exercise all the powers of the board or other persons in
whom the management vested and all such directors and persons shall stand divested of that
management and powers and shall cease to function or hold office.

       (4)     Where it appears to the Administrator that any purchase or sales agency contract has been
entered into, or any employment given, patently to benefit any director or other person in whom the
management vested or his nominees and to the detriment of the interest of the general members, the
Administrator may, with the previous approval in writing of the Commission, terminate such contract or
employment.

       (5)      No person shall be entitled to, or be paid, any compensation or damages for termination
of any office, contract or employment under sub-section (3) or sub-section (4).

        (6)     If at any time it appears to the Commission that the purpose of the order appointing the
Administrator has been fulfilled, it may permit the company to appoint directors and, on the appointment
of directors, the Administrator shall cease to hold office.




                                               Page 198 of 401
        (7)     Save as provided in sub-section (8), no suit, prosecution or other legal proceeding shall
lie against the Administrator for anything which is in good faith done or intended to be done by him in
pursuance of this section or of any rules or regulations made thereunder.

        (8)     Any person aggrieved by an order of the Commission under sub-section (1) or sub-section
(10), or of the Administrator under sub-section (4) may, within sixty days from the date of the order,
appeal against such order to the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government.

        (9)     If any person fails to deliver to the Administrator any property, records or documents
relating to the company or does not furnish any information required by him or in any way obstructs the
Administrator in the management, of the affairs of the company or acts for or represents the company in
any way, the Commission may by order in writing, direct that such person shall be liable to a penalty of
level 3 on the standard scale.

        (10) The Commission may issue such directions to the Administrator as to his powers and
duties as it deems desirable in the circumstances of the case, and the Administrator may apply to the
Commission at any time for instructions as to the manner in which he shall conduct the management of
the company or in relation to any matter arising in the course of such management.

        (11) Any order or decision or direction of the Commission made in pursuance of this section
shall be final and shall not be called in question in any Court.

       (12)    The Commission may, make regulations to carry out the purposes of this section.


        (13) The provisions of this section shall have effect notwithstanding anything contained in any
other provision of this Act or any other law or contract, or in the memorandum or articles of a company.

       292. Rehabilitation of sick public sector companies.—(1) The provisions of this section shall
apply to a public sector company which is facing financial or operational problems and is declared as a
sick company by the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government.

        (2)   After a company is declared as a sick company under sub-section (1), any institution,
authority, committee or person authorised by the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal
Government in this behalf may draw up a plan for the rehabilitation, reconstruction and reorganisation
of such company, hereafter in this section referred to as the rehabilitation plan.

        (3)     Without prejudice to the generality of the foregoing provision, the rehabilitation plan, may,
in addition to any other matter, provide for all or any of the following—

               (a)     reduction of capital so as to provide for all or any of the matters referred to in
                       section 89 or reconstruction, compromise, amalgamation and other arrangements
                       so as to provide for all or any of the matters referred to in section 279 or section
                       282 or section 285;

               (b)     alteration of share capital and variation in the rights and obligations of shareholders
                       or any class of shareholders;



                                                 Page 199 of 401
               (c)     alteration of loan structure, debt rescheduling or conversion into shares carrying
                       special rights or other relief and modification in the terms and conditions in respect
                       of outstanding debts and liabilities of the company or any part of such loan, debts
                       or liabilities or variation in the rights of the creditors or any class of them including
                       any security pertaining thereto;

               (d)     acquisition or transfer of shares of the company on the specified terms and
                       conditions;

               (e)     issue of further capital including shares carrying special rights and obligations
                       relating to voting powers, dividend, redemption or treatment on winding up;

               (f)     removal and appointment of directors (including the chief executive) or other
                       officers of the company;

               (g)     amendment, modification or cancellation of any existing contract; or

               (h)     alteration of the memorandum or articles or changes in the accounting policy
                       and procedure.

        (4)     The rehabilitation plan shall be submitted for approval to the concerned Minister-in-
Charge of the Federal Government which shall, unless it otherwise decides for reasons to be recorded,
cause it to be published in the official Gazette for ascertaining the views of the shareholders, creditors
and other persons concerned within a specified period.

       (5)     Before approving the rehabilitation plan, the concerned Minister-in- Charge of the Federal
Government shall take into consideration the views relating thereto received from any quarter within
the specified period.

         (6)    On the approval of the rehabilitation plan by the concerned Minister- in-Charge of the
Federal Government, its provisions, with such modification as may be directed by the concerned
Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government, shall become final and take effect and be implemented
and shall be valid, binding and enforceable in all respects notwithstanding anything in this Act or any
other law or the memorandum or articles of the company or in any agreement or document executed by
it or in any resolution passed by the company in general meeting or by its board, whether the same be
registered, adopted, executed or passed, as the case may be, before or after the commencement of this
Act.

        (7)     Any provision contained in the memorandum, articles, agreements, documents or
resolutions as aforesaid shall, to the extent to which it is repugnant to the provisions of this Act or the
rehabilitation plan, become void.

       (8)   No compensation or damages shall be payable to any one for any matter or
arrangement provided for in, or action taken in pursuance of, the rehabilitation plan.




                                                 Page 200 of 401
        (9)     The concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government may vary or rescind
rehabilitation plan from time to time and issue such directions as to its implementation and matters
ancillary thereto as it may deem expedient.

       (10) The concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government or any authority or other
person authorised by the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government in this behalf shall
supervise the implementation of the rehabilitation plan and may issue such directions to the parties
concerned as may be deemed necessary by such Government, authority or person, as the case may be.

        (11) Whosoever fails to give effect, to carry out or implement the rehabilitation plan or any
matter provided for therein or any direction issued under sub-section (10), shall be liable to imprisonment
of either description for a term which may extend to three years and fine not exceeding five million
rupees and, in case of a continuing failure, to a further fine not exceeding ten thousand rupees for every
day after the first during which the failure or default continues.

       (12) Until a rehabilitation plan has been approved by the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the
Federal Government and is in operation, the provisions of this section shall not prejudice or affect the
power or rights of a company or its shareholders or creditors to enter into, arrive at or make any
compromise, arrangement or settlement in any manner authorised by this Act or any other law for the
time being in force.

         (13) The rehabilitation plan approved by the concerned Minister-in- Charge of the Federal
Government and any modification thereof shall, unless otherwise directed by it, be published in the
official Gazette and a copy thereof shall be forwarded by the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal
Government to the registrar who shall register and keep the same with the documents of the company.

        (14) The Federal Government may, by notification in the official Gazette, make rules to carry
out the purposes of this section.

        (15) This section is in addition to and not in derogation of any other law regarding
rehabilitation of any entity.

                                                PART X

                                             WINDING UP

                                            PRELIMINARY

       293.    Modes of winding up.__(1) The winding up of a company may be either—

               (a)     by the Court or

               (b)     voluntary; or

               (c)     subject to the supervision of the Court.




                                                Page 201 of 401
        (2)     Save as otherwise expressly provided, the provisions of this Act with respect to winding
up shall apply to the winding up of a company in any of the modes specified in sub-section (1).

         294. Liability as contributories of present and past members.—(1) In the event of a
company being wound up, every present and past member shall, subject to the provisions of section 295,
be liable to contribute to the assets of the company to an amount sufficient for payment of its debts and
liabilities and the costs, charges and expenses of the winding up, and for the adjustment of the rights of
the contributories among themselves, with the following qualifications, that is to say—

               (a)    a past member shall not be liable to contribute if he has ceased to be member for
                      one year or upwards before the commencement of the winding up;

               (b)    a past member shall not be liable to contribute in respect of any debt or liability of
                      the company contracted after he ceased to be a member;

               (c)    a past member shall not be liable to contribute unless it appears to the Court that
                      the present members are unable to satisfy the contributions required to be made by
                      them in pursuance of this Act;

               (d)    in the case of a company limited by shares, no contribution shall be required from
                      any past or present member exceeding the amount, if any, unpaid on the shares in
                      respect of which he is liable as such member;

               (e)    in the case of a company limited by guarantee, no contribution shall, subject to the
                      provisions of sub-section (2), be required from any past or present member
                      exceeding the amount undertaken to be contributed by him to the assets of the
                      company in the event of its being wound up;

               (f)    nothing in this Act shall invalidate any provision contained in any policy of
                      insurance or other contract whereby the liability of individual members on the
                      policy or contract is restricted, or whereby the funds of the company are alone made
                      liable in respect of the policy or contract; and

               (g)    a sum due to any past or present member of a company in his character as such, by
                      way of dividends, profits or otherwise, shall not be deemed to be a debt of the
                      company payable to that member in a case of competition between himself and any
                      other creditor not being a member of the company, but any such sum may be taken
                      into account for the purpose of the final adjustments of the rights of the
                      contributories among themselves.

       (2)      In the winding up of a company limited by guarantee which has a share capital, every
member of the company shall be liable, in addition to the amount undertaken to be contributed by him to
the assets of the company in the event of its being wound up, to contribute to the extent of any sum
unpaid on any shares held by him, as if the company were a company limited by shares.




                                               Page 202 of 401
         295. Liability of directors whose liability is unlimited.—In the winding up of a limited
company any director, whether past or present, whose liability is, in pursuance of this Act, unlimited,
shall, in addition to his ability, if any, to contribute as an ordinary member, be liable to make a further
contribution as if he were, at the commencement of the winding up, a member of an unlimited company:

       Provided that—

               (a)     a past director shall not be liable to make such further contribution if he has ceased
                       to hold office for a year or upwards before the commencement of the winding up;

               (b)     a past director shall not be liable to make such further contribution in respect of any
                       debtor liability of the company contracted after he ceased to hold office;

subject to the articles, a director shall not be liable to make such further contribution unless the
Court deems it necessary to require that contribution in order to satisfy the debts and liabilities of the
company, and the costs, charges and expenses of the winding up.

        296. Liability of Contributory having fully paid share.—A person holding fully paid-up
shares in a company shall be considered as a contributory but shall have no liabilities of a contributory
under this Act while retaining rights of such a contributory.

        Explanation.—The term “contributory” means a person liable to contribute towards the assets
of the company on the event of its being wound up.

       297. Nature of liability of contributory.—The liability of a contributory shall create a debt
accruing due from him at the time when his liability commenced, but payable at the time specified in
calls made on him for enforcing the liability.

        298. Contributories in case of death of member.—If a contributory dies, whether before or
after being placed on the list of contributories of a company:

               (a)     his legal representatives shall be liable, in due course of administration, to
                       contribute to the assets of the company in discharge of his liability, and shall be
                       contributories accordingly; and

               (b)     if the legal representatives make default in paying any money ordered to be paid
                       by them, proceedings may be initiated for administering the property of the
                       deceased contributory, and of compelling payment of the money due, out of assets
                       of the deceased.

      299. Contributory in case of insolvency of member.—If a contributory is adjudged insolvent
whether before or after he has been placed on the list of contributories of a company, then—

               (a)     his assignees in insolvency shall represent him for all the purposes of the winding
                       up, and shall be contributories accordingly, and may be called on to admit to proof
                       against the estate of the insolvent, or otherwise to allow to be paid out of his assets




                                                 Page 203 of 401
                     in due course of law, any money due from the insolvent in respect of his liability to
                     contribute to the assets of the company; and

              (b)    there may be proved against the estate of the insolvent the estimated value of his
                     liability to further calls as well as calls already made.

       300. Contributories in case of winding up of a body corporate which is a member.— If a
body corporate which is a contributory is ordered to be wound up, whether before or after it has been
placed on the list of contributories of a company—

              (a)    the liquidator of the body corporate shall represent it for all purposes of the
                     winding up of the company and shall be a contributory accordingly, and may be
                     called on to admit to proof against the assets of the body corporate, or otherwise to
                     allow to be paid out of its assets in due course of law, any money due from the body
                     corporate in respect of its liability to contribute to the assets of the company; and

              (b)    there may be proved against the assets of the body corporate the estimated value of
                     its liability to future calls as well as calls already made.

                                    WINDING UP BY COURT

      301. Circumstances in which a company may be wound up by Court.—A company may
be wound up by the Court—

              (a)    if the company has, by special resolution, resolved that the company be wound
                     up by the Court; or

              (b)    if default is made in delivering the statutory report to the registrar or in holding the
                     statutory meeting; or

              (c)    if default is made in holding any two consecutive annual general meetings; or

              (d)    if the company has made a default in filing with the registrar its financial statements
                     or annual returns for immediately preceding two consecutive financial years; or

              (e)    if the number of members is reduced, in the case of public company, below three
                     and in the case of a private company below two; or

              (f)    if the company is unable to pay its debts; or

              (g)    if the company is—

                     (i)     conceived or brought forth for, or is or has been carrying on, unlawful or
                             fraudulent activities; or




                                               Page 204 of 401
      (ii)    carrying on business prohibited by any law for the time being in force in
              Pakistan; or restricted by any law, rules or regulations for the time being in
              force in Pakistan; or

      (iii)   conducting its business in a manner oppressive to the minority members or
              persons concerned with the formation or promotion of the company; or

      (iv)    run and managed by persons who fail to maintain proper and true accounts,
              or commit fraud, misfeasance or malfeasance in relation to the company; or

      (v)     managed by persons who refuse to act according to the requirements of the
              memorandum or articles or the provisions of this Act or failed to carry out
              the directions or decisions of the Commission or the registrar given in the
              exercise of powers under this Act; or

(h)   if, being a listed company, it ceases to be such company; or

(i)   if the Court is of opinion that it is just and equitable that the company should
      be wound up; or

(j)   if a company ceases to have a member; or

(k)   if the sole business of the company is the licensed activity and it ceases to operate
      consequent upon revocation of a licence granted by the Commission or any other
      licencing authority; or

(l)   if a licence granted under section 42 to a company has been revoked or such
      a company has failed to comply with any of the provisions of section 43 or where
      a company licenced under section 42 is being wound up voluntarily and its
      liquidator has failed to complete the winding up proceedings within a period of one
      year from the date of commencement of its winding up; or

(m)   if a listed company suspends its business for a whole year.

             Explanation I.—The promotion or the carrying on of any scheme or
      business, howsoever described—

      (a)     whereby, in return for a deposit or contribution, whether periodically or
              otherwise, of a sum of money in cash or by means of coupons, certificates,
              tickets or other documents, payment, at future date or dates of money or
              grant of property, right or benefit, directly or indirectly, and whether with
              or without any other right or benefit, determined by chance or lottery or
              any other like manner, is assured or promised; or




                               Page 205 of 401
                        (b)     raising un-authorised deposits from the general public, indulging in referral
                                marketing, multi-level marketing (MLM), Pyramid and Ponzi Schemes,
                                locally or internationally, directly or indirectly; or

                        (c)     any other business activity notified by the Commission to be against public
                                policy or a moral hazard;

        shall be deemed to be an unlawful activity.

               Explanation II.—”Minority members” means members together holding not less than ten
        percent of the equity share capital of the company.

       302. Company when deemed unable to pay its debts.—(1) A company shall be deemed to
be unable to pay its debts__

                (a)     if a creditor, by assignment or otherwise, to whom the company is indebted in a
                        sum exceeding one hundred thousand rupees, then due, has served on the
                        company, by causing the same to be delivered by registered post or otherwise, at
                        its registered office, a demand under his hand requiring the company to pay the
                        sum so due and the company has for thirty days thereafter neglected to pay the sum,
                        or to secure or compound for it to the reasonable satisfaction of the creditor; or

                (b)     if execution or other process issued on a decree or order of any Court or any other
                        competent authority in favour of a creditor of the company is returned unsatisfied
                        in whole or in part; or

                (c)     if it is proved to the satisfaction of the Court that the company is unable to pay its
                        debts, and, in determining whether a company is unable to pay its debts, the Court
                        shall take into account the contingent and prospective liabilities of the company.

       (2)     The demand referred to in clause (a) of sub-section (1) shall be deemed to have been duly
given under the hand of the creditor if it is signed by an agent or legal adviser duly authorised on his behalf.

       303. Transfer of proceedings to other Courts.—Where the Court makes an order for winding
up a company under this Act, it may, if it thinks fit, direct all subsequent proceedings to be held in any
other High Court, with the consent of such court and thereupon, for the purposes of the winding up of the
company, such Court shall be deemed to be the “Court” within the meaning of this Act and shall have all
the powers and jurisdiction of the Court thereunder.

                                     PETITION FOR WINDING UP

        304. Provisions as to applications for winding up.—An application to the Court for the
winding up of a company shall be by petition presented, subject to the provisions of this section, either
by the company, or by any creditor or creditors (including any contingent or prospective creditor or
creditors), or by any contributory or contributories, or by all or any of the aforesaid parties, together or




                                                  Page 206 of 401
separately or by the registrar, or by the Commission or by a person authorised by the Commission in that
behalf:

       Provided that—

              (a)     a contributory shall not be entitled to present a petition for winding up a
                      company unless__

                      (i)    either the number of members is reduced, in the case of a private
                             company, below two, or, in the case of public company, below three; and

                      (ii)   the shares in respect of which he is a contributory or some of them either
                             were originally allotted to him or have been held by him, and registered in
                             his name, for at least one hundred and eighty days during the eighteen
                             months before the commencement of the winding up, or have or devolved
                             on him through the death of a former holder;

              (b)     the registrar shall not be entitled to present a petition for the winding up of a
                      company unless the previous sanction of the Commission has been obtained to the
                      presentation of the petition:

                             Provided that no such sanction shall be given unless the company has first
                      been afforded an opportunity of making a representation and of being heard;

              (c)     the Commission or a person authorised by the Commission in that behalf shall not
                      be entitled to present a petition for the winding up of a company unless an
                      investigation into the affairs of the company has revealed that it was formed for
                      any fraudulent or unlawful purpose or that it is carrying on a business not
                      authorised by its memorandum or that its business is being conducted in a manner
                      oppressive to any of its members or persons concerned in the formation of the
                      company or that its management has been guilty of fraud, mis-feasance or other
                      misconduct towards the company or towards any of its members; and such
                      petition shall not be presented or authorised to be presented by the Commission
                      unless the company has been afforded an opportunity of making a representation
                      and of being heard:

                              Provided that if sole business of the company is the licensed activity and
                      that licence is revoked, no investigation into the affairs of the company shall be
                      required to present the petition for winding up of the company;

              (d)     the Court shall not give a hearing to a petition for winding up a company by
                      a contingent or prospective creditor until such security for costs has been given as
                      the Court thinks reasonable and until a prima facie case for winding up has been
                      established to the satisfaction of the Court;




                                               Page 207 of 401
               (e)     the Court shall not give a hearing to a petition for winding up a company by the
                       company until the company has furnished with its petition, in the prescribed
                       manner, the particulars of its assets and liabilities and business operations and the
                       suits or proceedings pending against it.

       305. Right to present winding up petition where company is being wound up voluntarily
or subject to Court’s supervision.—(1) Where a company is being wound up voluntarily or subject to
the supervision of the Court, a petition for its winding up by the Court may be presented by any person
authorised to do so under section 304 and subject to the provisions of that section.

          (2)    The Court shall not make a winding up order on a petition presented to it under sub-
section (1) unless it is satisfied that the voluntary winding up or winding up subject to the supervision of
the Court cannot be continued with due regard to the interests of the creditors or contributories or both
or it is in the public interest so to do.

        306. Commencement of winding up by Court.—A winding up of a company by the Court
shall be deemed to commence at the time of the presentation of the petition for the winding up.

                         POWERS OF COURT HEARING APPLICATION

        307. Court may grant injunction.—The Court may, at any time after presentation of the
petition for winding up a company under this Act, and before making an order for its winding up, upon
the application of the company itself or of any its creditors or contributories, restrain further proceedings
in any suit or proceeding against the company, upon such terms as the Court thinks fit.

      308. Powers of Court on hearing petition.—(1) The Court may, on receipt of a petition for
winding up under section 304 pass any of the following orders, namely—

               (a)     dismiss it, with or without costs;

               (b)     make any interim order as it thinks fit;

               (c)     appoint a provisional manager of the company till the making of a winding up
                       order;

               (d)     make an order for the winding up of the company with or without costs; or

               (e)     any other order as it thinks fit:

                               Provided that an order under this sub-section shall be made within ninety
                       days from the date of presentation of the petition:

                                Provided further that before appointing a provisional manager under clause
                       (c), the Court shall give notice to the company and afford a reasonable opportunity
                       to it to make its representations, if any, unless for special reasons to be recorded
                       in writing, the Court thinks fit to dispense with such notice:



                                                 Page 208 of 401
                               Provided also that the Court shall not refuse to make a winding up order on
                       the ground only that the assets of the company have been mortgaged for an amount
                       equal to or in excess of those assets, or that the company has no assets.

        (2)   Where a petition is presented on the ground that it is just and equitable that the company
should be wound up, the Court may refuse to make an order of winding up, if it is of the opinion that some
other remedy is available to the petitioners and that they are acting unreasonably in seeking to have the
company wound up instead of pursuing the other remedy.

        (3)    Where the Court makes an order for the winding up of a company, it shall forthwith cause
intimation thereof to be sent to the official liquidator appointed by it and to the registrar.

         309. Copy of winding up order to be filed with registrar.—(1) Within fifteen days from the
date of the making of the winding up order, the petitioner in the winding up proceedings and the company
shall file a certified copy of the order with the registrar.

        (2)     If default is made in complying with the foregoing provision, the petitioner or, as the case
may require, the company, and every officer of the company who is in default, shall be liable to a penalty
of level 1 on the standard scale.

       (3)     On the filing of a certified copy of a winding up order, the registrar shall forthwith make
a minute thereof in his books relating to the company, and shall simultaneously notify in the official
Gazette that such an order has been made.

       (4)    Such order shall be deemed to be notice of discharge to the employees of the company,
except when the business of the company is continued.

       310. Suits stayed on winding up order.—(1) When a winding up order has been made or a
provisional manager has been appointed, no suit or other legal proceeding shall be proceeded with or
commenced against the company except by leave of the Court, and subject to such terms as the Court
may impose.

       (2)     The Court which is winding up the company shall, notwithstanding anything contained
in any other law for the time being in force, have jurisdiction to entertain, or dispose of, any suit or
proceeding by or against the company.

       (3)     Any suit or proceeding by or against the company which is pending in any court other
than that in which the winding up of the company is proceeding may, notwithstanding anything
contained in any other law for the time being in force, be transferred to and disposed of by the Court.

       311. Court may require expeditious disposal of suits.—(1) Notwithstanding anything
contained in any other law—

               (a)     If any suit or proceedings, including an appeal, by or against the company which
                       is allowed to be proceeded with in any Court other than the Court in which winding
                       up of the company is proceeding, the Court may issue directions to that other Court



                                                Page 209 of 401
                       if that Court is subordinate to it and, in any other case, make a request to that other
                       Court for expeditious disposal of the pending suit or proceedings by or against the
                       company; and

               (b)     If any proceedings, including proceedings for assessment or recovery of any tax,
                       duty or levies or appeal or review petitions against any order is pending or is
                       likely to be instituted, before any officer, authority or other body, the Court may
                       issue directions to that officer, authority or other body for expeditious action and
                       disposal of the said proceedings.

        (2)    Upon issue of a direction or making of a request as aforesaid, the Court, officer, authority
or body to whom the same is addressed shall, notwithstanding anything contained in any other law,
proceed to dispose of the said suit or other proceedings expeditiously by according it special priority and
adopting such measures as may be necessary in this behalf, and shall inform the Court issuing the
direction or making the request of the action taken.

         312. Effect of winding up order.—An order for winding up a company shall operate in favour
of all the creditors and of all contributories of the company as if made on the joint petition of a creditor
and of a contributory.

        313. Power of Court to stay winding up.—(1) The Court may at any time not later than three
years after an order for winding up, on the application of any creditor or contributory or of the registrar
or the Commission or a person authorised by it, and on proof to the satisfaction of the Court that all
proceedings in relation to the winding up ought to be stayed, withdrawn, cancelled or revoked, make an
order accordingly, on such terms and conditions as the Court thinks fit.

        (2)      On any application under sub-section (1), the Court may, before making an order, require
the official liquidator to furnish to the Court a report with respect to any facts or matters which are in his
opinion relevant to the application.

       (3)     A copy of every order made under sub-section (1) shall forthwith be forwarded by the
Court to the registrar, who shall make a minute of the order in his books relating to the company.

        314. Court may ascertain wishes of creditors or contributories.—(1) In all matters relating
to the winding up of a company, the Court may__

               (a)     have regard to the wishes of creditors or contributories of the company, as proved
                       to it by any sufficient evidence in a manner as provided under this Act;

               (b)     if it thinks fit for the purpose of ascertaining their wishes, order meetings of
                       the creditors or contributories to be called, held and conducted in such manner as
                       may be directed; and

               (c)     appoint a person to act as chairman of any such meeting and to submit a report in
                       this regard.




                                                 Page 210 of 401
        (2)     While ascertaining the wishes of creditors or contributories under sub-section (1), regard
shall be had to the value of each debt of the creditor or the voting power exercised by each contributory,
as the case may be.

                                      OFFICIAL LIQUIDATORS

       315. Appointment of official liquidator.—(1) For the purpose of the winding up of
companies by the Court, the Commission shall maintain a panel of persons from whom the Court shall
appoint a provisional manager or official liquidator of a company ordered to be wound up.

        (2)   A person shall not be appointed as provisional manager or official liquidator of more than
three companies at one point of time.

       (3)     The panel for the purpose of sub-section (1) shall consist of persons having at least ten
years experience in the field of accounting, finance or law and as may be specified by the Commission
such other persons, having at least ten years professional experience.

       (4)     Where a provisional manager is appointed by the Court, the Court may limit and restrict
his powers by the order appointing him or by a subsequent order, but otherwise he shall have the same
powers as a liquidator.

        (5)     On appointment as provisional manager or official liquidator, as the case may be, such
liquidator shall file a declaration within seven days from the date of appointment in the specified form
disclosing conflict of interest or lack of independence in respect of his appointment, if any, with the Court
and such obligation shall continue throughout the term of his appointment.

       (6)    While passing a winding up order, the Court may appoint a provisional manager, if any,
under clause (c) of sub-section (1) of section 308, as the official liquidator for the conduct of the
proceedings for the winding up of the company.

        (7)     If more persons than one are appointed to the office of official liquidator, the Court shall
declare whether any act by this Act required or authorised to be done by the official liquidator is to be done
by all or any one or more of such persons:

        Provided that in case of any dispute or any varying stance amongst the liquidators, the matter
shall be referred to the Court for an appropriate order in chambers in the presence of the parties concerned.

        (8)    The Court may determine whether any, and what, security is to be given by any official
liquidator on his appointment.

       (9)     Notwithstanding anything contained in sub-section (1), the Court may, on the
application of creditors to whom amounts not less than sixty percent of the issued share-capital of the
company being wound up are due, after notice to the registrar, appoint a person whose name does not
appear on the panel maintained for the purpose, to be the official liquidator.




                                                 Page 211 of 401
       (10) An official liquidator shall not resign or quit his office before conclusion of the liquidation
proceedings except for reasons of personal disability to the satisfaction of the Court.

       (11) Any casual vacancy in the office of an official liquidator occurred due to his death,
removal or resignation, shall be filled up by the Court by the appointment of another person from the
panel maintained under sub-section (1):

       Provided that in case of resignation, the outgoing official liquidator shall, unless the Court directs
otherwise, continue to act until the person appointed in his place takes charge.

       (12) The Commission may of its own, remove the name of any person from the panel
maintained under sub-section (1) on the grounds of misconduct, fraud, misfeasance, breach of duties or
professional incompetence:

       Provided that the Commission before removing him from the panel shall give him a reasonable
opportunity of being heard.

       (13) The person appointed on the panel under this section shall be subject to such code of
conduct and comply with the requirement of any professional accreditation programs as may be specified
by the Commission.

        316. Removal of official liquidator.—(1) The Court may, on a reasonable cause being shown
including but not limited to lack of independence or lack of impartiality, remove the provisional manager
or the official liquidator, as the case may be, on any of the following grounds, namely:—

               (a)     misconduct;

               (b)     fraud or misfeasance;

               (c)     professional incompetence or failure to exercise due care and diligence in
                       performance of the powers and functions;
               (d)     inability to act as provisional manager or official liquidator, as the case may be;

               (e)     conflict of interest during the term of his appointment that will justify removal.

        (2)    Where the Court is of the opinion that any liquidator is responsible for causing any loss
or damage to the company due to fraud or misfeasance or failure to exercise due care and diligence in
the performance of his powers and functions, the Court may recover or cause to be recovered such loss
or damage from the provisional manager or official liquidator, as the case may be, and pass such other
orders as it may think fit.

        317. Remuneration of official liquidator.—(1) The terms and conditions of appointment of
a provisional manager or official liquidator and the fee payable to him shall be fixed by the Court on the
basis of task required to be performed, experience, qualification of such liquidator and size of the
company.




                                                 Page 212 of 401
       (2)     An official liquidator, shall also be entitled to such remuneration by way of percentage of
the amount realised by him by disposal of assets as may be fixed by the Court having regard to the amount
and nature of the work actually done and subject to such limits as may be prescribed:

       Provided that different percentage rates may be fixed for different types of assets and items.

        (3)    In addition to the remuneration payable under sub-section (2), the Court may permit
payment of a monthly allowance to the official liquidator for meeting the expenses of the winding up for
a period not exceeding one year from the date of the winding up order.

       (4)     The remuneration fixed as aforesaid shall not be enhanced subsequently but may be
reduced by the Court at any time.

       (5)    If the official liquidator resigns, is removed from office or otherwise ceases to hold office
before conclusion of the winding up proceedings, he shall not be entitled to any remuneration and the
remuneration already received by him, if any, shall be refunded by him to the company.

       (6)    No remuneration shall be payable to official liquidator who fails to complete the winding
up proceedings within the prescribed period or such extended time as may be allowed by the Court.

        318. Style and title of official liquidator.—The official liquidator shall be described by the
style of “the official liquidator” of the particular company in respect of which he acts, and in no case he
shall be described by his individual name.

       319. General provisions as to liquidators.—(1) The official liquidator shall conduct the
proceedings in winding up the company and perform such duties in reference thereto as the Court may
impose.

       (2)     The acts of a liquidator shall be valid, notwithstanding any defect that may afterwards be
discovered in his appointment or qualification:

        Provided that nothing in this sub-section shall be deemed to give validity to acts done by
a liquidator after his appointment has been shown to be invalid.

        (3)   The winding up proceedings shall be completed by the official liquidator within a period
as determined by the Court under section 322.

        (4)    If an official liquidator is convicted of misfeasance, or breach of duty or other lapse or
default in relation to winding up proceedings of a company, he shall cease to be the official liquidator
of the company and shall also become disqualified, for a period of five years from such conviction, from
being the liquidator or to hold any other office including that of a director, in any company and if he
already holds any such office he shall forthwith be deemed to have ceased to hold such office.

        (5)     The registrar or the Commission shall take cognizance of any lapse, delay or other
irregularity on the part of the official liquidator and may, without prejudice to any other action under the
law, report the same to the Court.




                                                Page 213 of 401
        320. Statement of affairs to be made to official liquidator.—(1) Where the Court has
appointed a provisional manager or made a winding up order and appointed an official liquidator, there
shall be made out and submitted to the provisional manager or official liquidator, a statement as to the
affairs of the company in the prescribed form, verified by an affidavit, and containing the following
particulars, namely—

               (a)    particulars of the company’s assets, debts and liabilities;

               (b)    the detail of cash balance in hand and at the bank;

               (c)    the names and addresses of the company’s creditors stating separately the amount
                      of secured debts and unsecured debts, and, in the case of secured debts, particulars
                      of the securities given, their value and the dates when they were given.

               (d)    the names, residential addresses and occupations of the persons from whom debts
                      of the company are due and the amount likely to be realised therefrom;

               (e)    where any property of the company is not in its custody or possession, the place
                      where and the person in whose custody or possession such property is;

               (f)    full address of the places where the business of the company was conducted during
                      the one hundred and eighty days preceding the relevant date and the names and
                      particulars of the persons incharge of the same;

               (g)    details of any pending suits or proceedings in which the company is a party; and

               (h)    such other particulars as may be prescribed or as the Court may order or the
                      provisional manager or official liquidator may require in writing, including any
                      information relating to secret reserves and personal assets of directors.

        (2)     The statement shall be submitted and verified by persons who are at the relevant date the
directors, chief executive, chief financial officer and secretary of the company.

        (3)    The provisional manager or official liquidator, subject to the direction of the Court, may
also require to make out and submit to him a statement in the prescribed form as to the affairs of the
company by some or all of the persons__

               (a)    who have been directors, chief executives, chief financial officer, secretary or other
                      officers of the company within one year from the relevant date;

               (b)    who have taken part in the formation of the company at any time within one year
                      before the relevant date;

               (c)    who are in the employment of the company, or have been in the employment of the
                      company within the said year, and are in the opinion of the official liquidator or




                                               Page 214 of 401
                       provisional manager capable of giving the information required and to whom the
                       statement relates;

       (4)    The statement shall be submitted within fifteen days from the relevant date, or within such
extended time not exceeding forty-five days from that date as the official liquidator or provisional
manager or the Court may, for special reasons, appoint.

        (5)      Any person making the statement required by this section shall be entitled to and be paid
by the official liquidator or the provisional manager, as the case may be, the reasonable expenses incurred
in preparation of such statement.

       (6)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence liable to a daily penalty of level 2 on the standard scale.

        (7)    Without prejudice to the operation of any provisions imposing penalties in respect of any
such default as aforesaid, the Court which makes the winding up order or appoints a provisional
manager may take cognizance of an offence under sub-section (6) and try the offence itself in accordance
with the procedure laid down in the Code of Criminal Procedure, 1898 (Act V of 1898), for the trial of
cases by Magistrates and further direct the persons concerned to comply with the provisions of this
section within such times as may be specified by it.

        (8)     Any person stating himself in writing to be a creditor or contributory of the company shall
be entitled, by himself or by his agent, at all reasonable times, on payment of the prescribed fee, to inspect
the statement submitted in pursuance of this section, and to a copy thereof or extract therefrom.

       (9)      Any person untruthfully so stating himself to be a creditor or contributory shall be guilty
of an offence under section 182 of the Pakistan Penal Code, 1860 (Act XLV of 1860), and shall, on the
application of the official liquidator or provisional manager, be punishable accordingly.

       (10) In this section, the expression “the relevant date” means, in a case where a
provisional manager is appointed, the date of his appointment, and, in a case where no such appointment
is made, the date of the winding up order.

        321. Report by official liquidator.—(1) Where the Court has made a winding up order and
appointed an official liquidator, such liquidator shall, as soon as practicable after receipt of the statement
to be submitted under section 320 and not later than sixty days, from the date of the winding up order
submit a report to the Court, containing the following particulars, namely.—

               (a)     the nature and details of the assets of the company including their location and
                       current value duly ascertained by a registered valuer;

               (b)     the cash balance in hand and in the bank, if any, and the negotiable securities,
                       if any, held by the company;

               (c)     the amount of authorised and paid up capital;




                                                 Page 215 of 401
               (d)     the existing and contingent liabilities of the company indicating particulars of the
                       creditors, stating separately the amount of secured and unsecured debts, and in the
                       case of secured debts, particulars of the securities given;

               (e)     the debts due to the company and the names, addresses and occupations of the
                       persons from whom they are due and the amount likely to be realised on account
                       thereof;

               (f)     debts due from contributories;

               (g)     details of trademarks and intellectual properties, if any, owned by the company;

               (h)     details of subsisting contracts, joint ventures and collaborations, if any;

               (i)     details of holding and subsidiary companies, if any;

               (j)     details of legal cases filed by or against the company;

               (k)     any other information which the Court may direct or the official liquidator may
                       consider necessary to include.

        (2)    The official liquidator shall also include in his report the manner in which the company was
promoted or formed and whether in his opinion any fraud has been committed by any person in its
promotion or formation, or by any director or other officer of the company in relation to the company
since its formation.

      (3)    The official liquidator shall also make a report on the viability of the business of the
company or the steps which, in his opinion, are necessary for maximising the value of the assets of the
company.

        (4)     The official liquidator may also, if he thinks fit or upon directions of the Court, make any
further report or reports.

       (5)     A certified copy of the reports aforesaid shall also be sent to the registrar simultaneously
with their submission to the Court.

       322. Court directions on report of official liquidator.—(1) The Court shall, on consideration
of the report of the official liquidator, fix a time limit within which the entire proceedings shall be
completed and the company be dissolved:

        Provided that the Court may, if it is of the opinion, at any stage of the proceedings, or on
examination of the reports submitted to it by the official liquidator and after hearing the official
liquidator, creditors or contributories or any other interested person, that it will not be advantageous or
economical to continue the proceedings, revise the time limit within which the entire proceedings shall
be completed and the company be dissolved.




                                                Page 216 of 401
        (2)     The Court may, on examination of the reports submitted to it by the official liquidator and
after hearing the official liquidator, creditors or contributories or any other interested person, order sale
of the company as a going concern or its assets or part thereof:

        Provided that the Court may where it considers fit, appoint a sale committee comprising such
creditors, promoters and officers of the company as the Court may decide to assist the official liquidator
in sale under this sub-section.

        (3)      Where a report is received from the official liquidator or the Commission or any person that
a fraud has been committed in respect of the company, the Court shall, without prejudice to the process
of winding up, order for investigation under section 257, and on consideration of the report of such
investigation it may pass order and give directions under sections 391 or 392 or direct the official
liquidator to file a criminal complaint against persons who were involved in the commission of fraud.

       (4)     The Court may order for taking such steps and measures, as may be necessary, to protect,
preserve or enhance the value of the assets of the company.

       (5)     The Court may pass such other order or give such other directions as it considers fit.

         323. Settlement of list of contributories and application of assets.— (1) As soon as may be
after making a winding up order, the Court shall settle a list of contributories, with power to rectify the
register of members and shall cause the assets of the company to be collected and applied in discharge
of its liabilities:

        Provided that, where it appears to the Court that it will not be necessary to make calls on or
adjust the rights of contributories, the Court may dispense with the settlement of a list of contributories.

        (2)     In settling the list of contributories, the Court shall distinguish between persons who are
contributories in their own right and persons who are contributories as being representatives of, or liable
for the debts of, others.

        324. Custody of company’s properties.—(1) Where a winding up order has been made or
where a provisional manager has been appointed, the official liquidator or the provisional manager, as the
case may be, shall, on the order of the Court, forthwith take into his custody or control all the property,
effects and actionable claims to which the company is or appears to be entitled to and take such steps
and measures, as may be necessary, to protect and preserve the properties of the company.

       (2)     On an application by the official liquidator or otherwise, the Court may, at any time after
the making of a winding up order, require any contributory for the time being on the list of contributories,
and any trustee, receiver, banker, agent, officer or other employee of the company, to pay, deliver,
surrender or transfer forthwith, or within such time as the Court directs, to the official liquidator, any
money, property or books and papers in his custody or under his control to which the company is or
appears to be entitled.




                                                 Page 217 of 401
        (3)    The promoters, directors, officers and employees, who are or have been in employment
of the company or acting or associated with the company shall extend full cooperation to the official
liquidator in discharge of his functions and duties.

       (4)    Notwithstanding anything contained in sub-section (1), all the property and effects of the
company shall be deemed to be in the custody of the Court from the date of the appointment of the
Provisional manager or the passing of order for the winding up of the company as the case may be.

       (5)      Where any person, without reasonable cause, fails to discharge his obligations under sub-
sections (2) or (3), he shall be punishable with imprisonment which may extend to two years or with fine
which may extend to five hundred thousand rupees, or with both.

        325. Power to require delivery of property.—Without prejudice to the obligation imposed
under any other provisions, the Court may, at any time after making a winding up order, require any
contributory for the time being on the list of contributories and any trustee, receiver, banker, agent,
officer or employee or past officer or employee or auditor of the company to pay, deliver, convey,
surrender or transfer forthwith, or within, such time as the Court directs, to the official liquidator any
money, property or books and papers including documents in his hands to which the company is prima
facie entitled.

       326. Power to summon persons suspected of having property of company.—(1) The Court
may, at any time after the appointment of a provisional manager or the making of winding up order,
summon before it any officer of the company or person known or suspected to have in his possession
any property or books or papers of the company, or known or suspected to be indebted to the company,
or any person whom the Court deems capable of giving information concerning the promotion,
formation, trade, dealings, books or papers, affairs or property of the company.

       (2)     The Court may examine a person summoned under sub-section (1) on oath concerning the
matters aforesaid, either by word of mouth or on written interrogatories, and may reduce his answers to
writing and require him to sign them.

       (3)      The Court may require a person summoned under sub-section (1) to produce any books
and papers in his custody or power relating to the company, but, where he claims any lien on books or
papers produced by him, the production shall be without prejudice to that lien, and the Court shall
have jurisdiction in the winding up to determine all questions relating to that lien.

       (4)     If any person so summoned, after being paid or tendered a reasonable sum for his
expenses, fails to come before the Court at the time appointed, not having a lawful impediment made
known to the Court at the time of its sitting and allowed by it, the Court may cause him to be apprehended
and brought before the Court for examination.

        (5)      If, on his examination, any officer or person so summoned admits that he is indebted to
the company, the Court may order him to pay to the provisional manager or, as the case may be, the
liquidator, at such time and in such manner as the Court may direct, the amount in which he is indebted,
or any part thereof, either in full discharge of the whole amount or not, as the Court thinks fit, with or
without costs of the examination.




                                               Page 218 of 401
        (6)    If, on his examination, any such officer or person admits that he has in his possession any
property belonging to the company, the Court may order him to deliver to the provisional manager or,
as the case may be, the liquidator that property or any part thereof, at such time, in such manner and on
such terms as the Court may direct.

       (7)     Orders made under sub-sections (5) and (6) shall be executed in the same manner as
decrees for the payment of money or for the delivery of property under the Code of Civil Procedure,
1908 (Act V of 1908), respectively.

        (8)     Any person making any payment or delivery in pursuance of an order made under sub-
section (5) or sub-section (6) shall by such payment or delivery be, unless otherwise directed by such
order, discharged from all liability whatsoever in respect of such debt or property.

        327. Power to order public examination of promoters, directors.— (1) When an order has
been made for winding up a company by the Court, and the official liquidator has made a report to the
Court stating that in his opinion a fraud or other actionable irregularity has been committed by any person
in the promotion or formation of the company or by any director or other officer of the company in
relation to the company since its formation, the Court may, after consideration of the report, direct that
such person, director or other officer shall attend before the Court on a day appointed by the Court for that
purpose, and be publicly examined as to the promotion or formation or the conduct of the business of the
company, or as to his conduct and dealings as director, manager or other officer thereof.

        (2)    The official liquidator shall take part in the examination, and for that purpose may, if
specially authorised by the Court in that behalf, employ such legal assistance as may be sanctioned by the
Court.

       (3)    Any creditor or contributory may also take part in the examination either personally or
by any person entitled to appear before the Court.

       (4)     The Court may put such questions to the person examined as the Court thinks fit.

       (5)    The person examined shall be examined on oath, and shall answer all such questions as
the Court may put or allow to be put to him.

       (6)     A person ordered to be examined under this section—

               (a)     shall, before his examination, be furnished at his own cost with a copy of the official
                       liquidator’ s report; and

               (b)     may at his own cost employ any person entitled to appear before the Court, who
                       shall be at liberty to put to him such questions as the Court may deem just for the
                       purpose of enabling him to explain or qualify any answer given by him:

                                Provided that if he is, in the opinion of the Court, exculpated from any
                       charges made or suggested against him, the Court may allow him such costs as in
                       its discretion it may think fit.




                                                 Page 219 of 401
        (7)     If any such person applies to the Court to be exculpated from any charges made or
suggested against him, it shall be the duty of the official liquidator to appear on the hearing of the
application and call the attention of the Court to any matters which appear to the official liquidator to be
relevant, and if the Court, after hearing any evidence given or witnesses called by the official liquidator,
grants the application, the Court may allow the applicant such costs as it may think fit.

       (8)     Notes of the examination shall be taken down in writing and shall be read over to or by,
and signed by, the person examined, and may thereafter be used in evidence against him and shall be
open to the inspection of any creditor or contributory at all reasonable times.

        (9)     The Court may, if it thinks fit, adjourn the examination from time to time.

        (10) An examination under this section may, if the Court so directs, and subject to any rules in
this behalf, be held before any officer of the Court, being an official referee, registrar, additional registrar
or deputy registrar.

        (11) The powers of the Court under this section as to the conduct of the examination, but not
as to costs may be exercised by the person before whom the examination is held by virtue of a direction
under sub-section (10).

        328. Power to arrest absconding contributory.—The Court, at any time either before or after
making a winding up order, on proof of probable cause for believing that a contributory is about to quit
Pakistan or otherwise to abscond, or to remove or conceal any of his property, for the purpose of evading
payment of calls or of avoiding examination respecting the affairs of the company, may cause the
contributory to be arrested and his books and papers and movable property to be seized, and kept safely
until such time as the Court may order.

        329. Power to order payment of debts by contributory.—(1) The Court may, at any time
after making a winding up order, make an order on any contributory for the time being settled on the list
of contributories to pay, in a manner directed by the order, any money due from him or from the estate of
the person whom he represents to the company, exclusive of any money payable by him or the estate by
virtue of any call in pursuance of this Act.

        (2)     The Court in making such an order may—

                (a)     in the case of an unlimited company, allow the contributory by way of set-off, any
                        money due to him or to the estate which he represents from the company on any
                        independent dealing or contract with the company, but not any money due to him
                        as a member of the company in respect of any dividend or profit; and

                (b)     in the case of a limited company, make to any director whose liability is unlimited
                        or to his estate the like allowance.

         (3)   In the case of any company, whether limited or unlimited, when all the creditors are paid
in full, any money due on any account whatever to a contributory from the company may be allowed to
him by way of set-off against any subsequent call.



                                                  Page 220 of 401
        330. Power of Court to make calls.—(1) The Court may, at any time after making a winding
up order, and either before or after it has ascertained the sufficiency of the assets of the company, make
calls on and order payment thereof by all or any of the contributories for the time being settled on the list
of the contributories to the extent of their liability, for payment of any money which the Court considers
necessary to satisfy the debts and liabilities of the company, and the costs, charges and expenses of
winding up, and for the adjustment of the rights of the contributories among themselves.

       (2)     In making the call the Court may take into consideration the probability that some of the
contributories may partly or wholly fail to pay the call.

        331. Power to order payment into bank.—(1) The Court may order any contributory,
purchaser or other person from whom any money is due to the company to pay the same into the account
of the official liquidator in a scheduled bank instead of to the official liquidator, and any such order may
be enforced in the same manner as if it had directed payment to the official liquidator.

        (2)    Information about the amount deposited shall be sent by the person paying it to the official
liquidator within three days of the date of payment.

        332. Regulation of account with Court.−All moneys, bills, notes and other securities paid
and delivered into the scheduled bank where the official liquidator of the company may have his account,
in the event of a company being wound up by the Court, shall be subject in all respect to the orders of the
Court.

       333. Order on contributory conclusive evidence.___(1) An order made by the Court on a
contributory shall, subject to any right of appeal, be conclusive evidence that the money, if any, thereby
appearing to be due or ordered to be paid is due.

       (2)     All other pertinent matters stated in the order shall be taken to be truly stated as against all
persons, and in all proceedings whatsoever.

        334. Power to exclude creditors not proving in time.−The Court may fix a time or times
within which creditors are to prove their debts or claims, or to be excluded from the benefit of any
distribution made before those debts are proved.

       335. Adjustment of rights of contributories.−The Court shall adjust the rights of the
contributories among themselves, and distribute any surplus among the persons entitled thereto.

         336. Power to order costs.—The Court may, in the event of the assets being insufficient to
satisfy the liabilities, make an order as to the payment out of the assets of the costs, charges and expenses
incurred in the winding up in such order of priority as the Court thinks just.

         337. Powers and duties of official liquidator.—(1) Subject to directions by the Court, if any,
in this regard, the official liquidator, in a winding up of a company, shall have the power—




                                                  Page 221 of 401
          (a)       to carry on the business of the company so far as may be necessary for the beneficial
                    winding up of the company;

          (b)       to do all acts and to execute, in the name and on behalf of the company, all deeds,
                    receipts and other documents 1[*******];

          (c)       to sell the immovable and movable property and actionable claims of the company
                    by public auction or private contract, with power to transfer such property to any
                    person or body corporate;

          (d)       to sell whole of the undertaking of the company as a going concern;

          (e)       to institute or defend any suit, prosecution or other legal proceeding, civil or
                    criminal, in the name and on behalf of the company;

          (f)       to invite and settle claim of creditors, employees or any other claimant and
                    distribute sale proceeds in accordance with priorities established under this Act;

          (g)       to draw, accept, make and endorse any negotiable instruments in the name and on
                    behalf of the company, with the same effect with respect to the liability of the
                    company as if such instruments had been drawn, accepted, made or endorsed by or
                    on behalf of the company in the course of its business;

          (h)       to obtain any professional assistance from any person or appoint any professional,
                    in discharge of his duties, obligations and responsibilities and for protection of the
                    assets of the company, appoint an agent to do any business which the official
                    liquidator is unable to do himself;

          (i)       to appoint an Advocate entitled to appear before the Court or such person as may
                    be prescribed to assist him in the performance of his duties;

          (j)       to take all such actions, steps, or to sign, execute and verify any paper, deed,
                    document, application, petition, affidavit, bond or instrument as may be
                    necessary__

                    (i)        for winding up of the company;

                    (ii)       for distribution of assets;

                    (iii)      in discharge of his duties and obligations and functions as official
                               liquidator; and

          (k)       to apply to the Court for such orders or directions as may be necessary for the
                    winding up of the company.
1 Omitted. by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.22




                                                 Page 222 of 401
        (2)    The exercise of powers by the official liquidator under sub-section (1) shall be subject to
the overall control of the Court, and any creditor or contributory or the registrar may apply to the Court
with respect to any exercise or proposed exercise of any of the said powers.

       (3)     Notwithstanding the provisions of sub-section (1), the official liquidator shall perform
such other duties as the Court may specify in this behalf.

        338. Liquidator to keep books containing proceedings of meetings.— The official
liquidator of a company which is being wound up by the Court shall, in order to reflect a correct and fair
view of` the administration of the company’s affairs, maintain proper books of accounts and also keep
the following books__

               (a)    register showing the dates at which notices were issued to the creditors and
                      contributories;

               (b)    minutes book of all proceedings and resolutions passed at any meeting of the
                      contributories or the creditors;

               (c)    register containing particulars of all transactions and negotiations made by him in
                      relation to the winding up of the company and the connected matters.

       339.    Liquidator’ s account.—(1) The official liquidator shall,__

               (a)    maintain proper and regular books of accounts including accounts of receipts and
                      payments made by him in such form and manner as may be prescribed;

               (b)    at the end of one hundred and eighty days from the date of winding up order,
                      prepare a report consisting of account of his receipts and payments and dealings
                      as liquidator, together with such further information as may be prescribed, which
                      shall be subjected to a limited scope review by the company’s auditor;

               (c)    present to the Court and file with the registrar a certified copy of such accounts
                      within thirty days from the close of half year. Such copies shall be open to the
                      inspection of any person on payment of prescribed fee;

               (d)    where the winding up is not concluded within one year from the date of winding up
                      order, within sixty days after the close of each year, prepare a statement of financial
                      position and the receipt and payment accounts, get it audited by the company’s
                      auditor and lay before the contributories in the general meeting in the same manner
                      as the annual accounts of a company are laid before the annual general meeting, in
                      terms of section 223 of this Act.

        (2)     The account and information as aforesaid shall be in the prescribed form, shall be made
in duplicate, and shall be verified by a declaration in the prescribed form.




                                                Page 223 of 401
        (3)     When the account and the books and papers have been audited, one copy thereof
alongwith the auditor’s report shall be filed and kept by the Court, and the other copy alongwith the
auditor’s report shall be delivered to the registrar for filing; and each copy shall be open to the inspection
of any person on payment of prescribed fee.

       (4)     The official liquidator shall cause a copy of the account to be sent by post to every creditor
and contributory:

               (a)     within thirty days in case of half yearly accounts, referred in clause (b) of sub-
                       section (1); and

               (b)     at least fifty days before the date of general meeting in case of clause (d) of sub-
                       section (1).

         (5)    The concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government may, by notification in the
official Gazette require that the accounts and information referred to in sub-section (1) shall be furnished
to an officer to be designated by it for the purpose and that such officer shall cause the accounts to be
audited; and, upon the publication of such notification, reference to “Court” in the preceding provisions
of this section shall be construed as a reference to such officer.

        340. Exercise and control of liquidator’s powers.—(1) Subject to the provisions of this Act,
the official liquidator of a company which is being wound up by the Court shall, in the administration
of the assets of the company and in the distribution thereof among its creditors, have regard to any
directions that may be given by resolution of the creditors or contributories at any general meeting.

        (2)     The official liquidator may summon general meetings of the creditors or contributories
for the purpose of ascertaining their wishes, and it shall be his duty to summon meetings at such times
as the creditors or contributories, by resolution, may direct, or whenever requested in writing to do so
by one-tenth in value of the creditors or contributories, as the case may be.

       (3)     Subject to the provisions of this Act, the official liquidator shall use his own discretion in
the administration of the assets of the company and in the distribution thereof among the creditors.

        (4)    If any person is aggrieved by any act or decision of the official liquidator, that person may
apply to the Court, and the Court may confirm, reverse or modify the act or decision complained of, and
make such order as it thinks just in the circumstances.

        341. Distribution by official liquidator.—Subject to any directions given by the Court, the
official liquidator shall, within thirty days of the coming into his hands of funds sufficient to distribute
among the creditors or contributories after providing for expenses of the winding up or for other
preferential payments as provided in this Act, distribute in accordance with the provisions of this Act:

       Provided that in case of company licenced under section 42 of this Act, if on a winding up, there
remains after the satisfaction of all debts and liabilities, any assets, those shall be transferred to another
company licenced under section 42 of this Act, preferably having similar or identical objects to those of
the company in the manner as may be specified and subject to such conditions as the Court may impose:




                                                 Page 224 of 401
        Provided further that such portion of the funds as may be required for meeting any claim against
the company which may be subjudice or subject matter of adjudication or assessment shall not be
distributed till the claim is finally settled:

        Provided also that any amounts retained as aforesaid shall be invested by the official liquidator
in Special Saving Certificates and the same shall be deposited by him with the Court and the distribution
thereof shall be made by him after the pending claims are settled:

        Provided also that in case of company licenced under section 42, if any of the assets is not
transferred in the manner provided in first proviso due to any reason, all such assets shall be sold and
proceeds thereof credited to the Investor Education and Awareness Fund formed under section 245.

       342. Dissolution of company.—(1) When the affairs of a company have been completely
wound up, or when the Court is of the opinion that the official liquidator cannot proceed with the winding
up of the company for want of funds and assets or any other reason whatsoever and it is just and
reasonable in the circumstances of the case that an order of dissolution of the company be made, the Court
shall make an order that the company be dissolved from the date of the order, and the company shall be
dissolved accordingly:

      Provided that such dissolution of the company shall not extinguish and right of, or debt due to the
company against or from any person.

         (2)    A copy of the order shall, within fifteen days of the making thereof, be forwarded by the
official liquidator to the registrar, who shall make in his books a minute of the dissolution of the company
and shall publish a notice in the official Gazette that the company is dissolved.

        (3)     If the official liquidator makes default in complying with the requirements of this
section, he shall be liable to a daily penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        343. Saving of other proceedings.—Any powers conferred on the Court by this Act shall be
in addition to, and not in derogation of, any existing power of instituting proceedings against any
contributory or debtor of the company, or the estate of any contributory or debtor, for the recovery of any
call or other sums.

                                   ENFORCEMENT OF ORDERS

        344. Power to enforce orders.—All orders made by a Court under this Act may be enforced
in the same manner in which decrees of such Court made in any suit may be enforced.

        345. Order made by any Court to be enforced by other Courts.−Any order made by a Court
for, or in the course of, winding up of a company shall be enforceable in any place in Pakistan, and in
the same manner in all respects as in such order had been made by a Court having jurisdiction in respect
of that company or a Court to whom the Court refers the order for enforcement.

       346. Mode of Dealing with Orders to be enforced by other Courts.−Where any order made
by one Court is to be enforced by another Court, a certified copy of the order so made shall be produced



                                                Page 225 of 401
to the proper officer of the Court required to enforce the same, and the production of such certified copy
shall be sufficient evidence of such order having been made; and thereupon the last mentioned Court
shall take the requisite steps in the matter for enforcing the order, in the same manner as if it were the
order of the Court enforcing the same.

      347. Circumstances in which company may be wound up voluntarily.—A company may
be wound up voluntarily

               (a)     if the company in general meeting passes a resolution requiring the company to be
                       wound up voluntarily as a result of the expiry of the period for its duration, if any,
                       fixed by its articles or on the occurrence of any event in respect of which the articles
                       provide that the company should be dissolved; or

               (b)     if the company passes a special resolution that the company be wound up
                       voluntarily;

and, in the subsequent provisions of this Part, the expression “resolution for voluntary winding up” means
a resolution passed under clause (a) or clause (b).

     348. Commencement of voluntary winding up.−A voluntary winding up shall be deemed to
commence at the time of the passing of the resolution for voluntary winding up.

       349. Effect of voluntary winding up on status of company.—In the case of voluntary
winding up, the company shall, from the commencement of the winding up, cease to carry on its
business, except so far as may be required for the beneficial winding up thereof:

       Provided that the corporate state and corporate powers of the company shall, notwithstanding
anything to the contrary in its articles, continue until it is dissolved.

        350. Notice of resolution to wind up voluntarily.__(1) Notice of any resolution for winding
up a company voluntarily shall be given by the company within ten days of the passing of the same by
advertisement in a newspaper in English and Urdu languages at least in one issue each of a daily
newspaper of respective language having wide circulation and a copy thereof shall be sent to the registrar
immediately thereafter.

       (2)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable to a daily penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        (3)   For the purpose of this section, a liquidator of a company shall be deemed to be an officer
of the company.

        351. Declaration of solvency in case of proposal to wind up voluntarily.—(1) Where it is
proposed to wind up a company voluntarily, its directors, or in case the company has more than three
directors, the majority of the directors, including the chief executive, may, at a meeting of the board
make a declaration verified by an affidavit to the effect that they have made a full inquiry into the affairs
of the company, and that having done so, they have formed the opinion that the company has no debts, or




                                                 Page 226 of 401
that it will be able to pay all its debts in full from the proceeds of assets within such period not exceeding
one year from the commencement of the winding up, as may be specified in the declaration.

       (2)     A declaration made as aforesaid shall have no effect for the purposes of this Act, unless—

               (a)     it is made within the five weeks immediately preceding the date of the passing of
                       the resolution for winding up the company and is delivered to the registrar for
                       registration before that date;

               (b)     it contains a declaration that the company is not being wound up to defraud any
                       person or persons; and

               (c)     it is accompanied by a copy of the report of the auditors of the company, prepared,
                       so far as the circumstances admit, in accordance with the provisions of this Act,
                       on the statement of financial position and profit and loss account of the company
                       for the period commencing from the date up to which the last such accounts were
                       prepared and ending with the latest practicable date immediately before the
                       making of the declaration.

        (3)    Where the company is wound up in pursuance of a resolution passed within the
period of five weeks after the making of the declaration, but its debts are not paid or provided for in full
within the period specified in the declaration; it shall be presumed, until the contrary is shown, that the
director did not have reasonable grounds for his opinion.

        (4)     Any director of a company making a declaration under this section without having
reasonable grounds for the opinion that the company will be able to pay its debts in full from the proceeds
of assets within the period specified in the declaration shall be liable to penalty of level 3 on the standard
scale.

        352. Distinction between members and creditors voluntary winding up.—A winding up in
the case of which a declaration under section 351 has been made is a members’ voluntary winding up and
a winding up in the case of which such a declaration has not been made is a creditors’ voluntary winding
up.

       353. Appointment of liquidator.—(1) In a members’ voluntary winding up, the company in
general meeting shall appoint one or more liquidators, whose written consent to act as such has been
obtained in advance, for the purpose of winding up the company’s affairs and distributing its assets.

       (2)     On the appointment of a liquidator all the powers of the board shall cease, except for the
purpose of giving notice of resolution to wind up the company and appointment of liquidator and filing
of consent of liquidator in pursuance of sections 351 and 363 or in so far as the company in general
meeting, or the liquidator sanctions the continuance thereof.

        (3)    The liquidator shall subject to the specified limits be entitled to such remuneration by way
of percentage of the amount realised by him by disposal of assets or otherwise, as the company in general




                                                 Page 227 of 401
meeting may fix having regard to the nature of the work done, experience, qualification of such liquidator
and size of the company:

       Provided that different percentage rates may be fixed for different types of assets and items.

       (4)    In addition to the remuneration payable under sub-section (3), the company in general
meeting may authorise payment of a monthly allowance to the liquidator for meeting the expenses of the
winding up for a period not exceeding one year from the date of the commencement of winding up.

       (5)     The remuneration fixed as aforesaid shall not be enhanced subsequently but may be
reduced by the Court at any time.

       (6)      If the liquidator resigns, is removed from office or otherwise ceases to hold office before
conclusion of winding up, he shall not be entitled to any remuneration and remuneration already received
by him, if any, shall be refunded by him to the company.

       (7)     The liquidator shall not resign or quit his office as liquidator before conclusion of the
winding up proceedings except for reasons of personal disability to the satisfaction of the members
and also be removed by a resolution in general meeting.

       (8)    No remuneration shall be payable to liquidator who fails to complete the winding up
proceedings within the prescribed period.

       354. Power to fill vacancy in office of liquidator.__(1) If a vacancy occurs by death,
resignation or otherwise in the office of any liquidator appointed by the company, the company in general
meeting may fill the vacancy by appointing a person who has given his written consent to act as liquidator.

        (2)    For that purpose a general meeting shall be convened by the out-going liquidator before
he ceases to act as liquidator except where the vacancy occurs by death, or where there were more
liquidators than one, by the continuing liquidator, and failing that may be convened by any contributory,
or by the Commission on the application of any person interested in the winding up of the company.

       (3)     The meeting shall be held in the manner provided by this Act or in such manner as may,
on application by any contributory or by the continuing liquidator, or any person interested in the winding
up be determined by the Commission.

       (4)     If default is made in complying with the provisions of this section, every person, including
the outgoing liquidator, who is in default, shall be liable to a daily penalty of level 1 on the standard
scale.

       355. Notice by liquidator of his appointment.—(1) The liquidator shall, within ten days after
his appointment, file with the registrar for registration a notice of his appointment in the specified form.

        (2)     If the liquidator fails to comply with this section, he shall be liable to a daily penalty of
level 1 on the standard scale.




                                                 Page 228 of 401
     356. Power of liquidator to accept shares as consideration for sale of property of
company.—(1) Where—

               (a)     a company (in this section called the “transferor company”) is proposed to be, or
                       is in the course of being, wound up altogether voluntarily; and

               (b)     the whole or a part of its business or property is proposed to be transferred or sold
                       to another body corporate, whether a company within the meaning of this Act or
                       not (in this section called “the transferee company”),

the liquidator of the transferor company may, with the sanction of a special resolution of that company
conferring on the liquidator either a general authority or an authority in respect of any particular
arrangement—

                       (i)     receive, by way of compensation or part compensation for the transfer
                               or sale, shares, policies, or other like interests in the transferee company,
                               for distribution among the members of the transferor company; or

                       (ii)    enter into any other arrangement whereby the members of the transferor
                               company may, in lieu of receiving cash, shares, policies, or other like
                               interests or in addition thereto, participate in the profits of, or receive any
                               other benefit from, the transferee company.

        (2)     Any sale or arrangement in pursuance of this section shall be binding on the members of
the transferor company.

        (3)      If any member of the transferor company who did not vote in favour of the special
resolution expresses his dissent therefrom in writing addressed to the liquidator and left at the registered
office of the company within seven days after the passing of the special resolution, he may require
the liquidator either__

               (a)     to abstain from carrying the resolution into effect; or

               (b)     to purchase his interest at a price to be determined by agreement or by arbitration
                       in the manner hereafter provided.

       (4)    If the liquidator elects to purchase the member’ s interest, the purchase money shall be
paid before the company is dissolved, and be raised by the liquidator in such manner as may be
determined by special resolution.

         (5)     A special resolution shall not be invalid for the purpose of this section by reason only that
it is passed before or concurrently with a resolution for voluntary winding up or for appointing liquidators;
but if an order is made within a year for winding up the company by or subject to the supervision of the
Court, the special resolution shall not be valid unless it is sanctioned by the Court.




                                                 Page 229 of 401
       (6)      The provisions of the Arbitration Act, 1940 (X of 1940), other than those restricting the
application of this Act in respect of the subject-matter of the arbitration, shall apply to all arbitrations in
pursuance of this section.

        357. Duty of liquidator where company turns out to be insolvent.− (1) Where the liquidator
is of the opinion that the company will be unable to pay its debts in full within the period stated in the
directors’ declaration under section 351, he shall forthwith summon a meeting of the creditors and
shall lay before the meeting a statement of the assets and liabilities of the company and such other
particulars as may be specified.

       (2)     Where sub-section (1) becomes applicable, the creditors may in their meeting held as
aforesaid decide to continue with the existing liquidator or appoint a different person as liquidator who
has consented to act as such and in that case the person so appointed shall be the liquidator.

       (3)     In the case of a different person being nominated, any director, member of the company
may, within fifteen days after the date on which the nomination was made by the creditors, apply to the
Court for an order either—

               (a)     directing that the person nominated as liquidator by the company shall be liquidator
                       instead of or jointly with the person nominated by the creditors, or

               (b)     appointing some other person to be liquidator instead of the person nominated by
                       the creditors.

        (4)     A return of convening the creditors meeting as aforesaid along with a copy of the notice
thereof and a statement of assets and liabilities of the company and the minutes of the meeting shall be
filed with the registrar within ten days of the date of the meeting.

         (5)    If the liquidator fails to comply with any of the requirements of this section, he shall be
liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

       358.    Duty of liquidator to call general meetings.__(1) The liquidator shall—

               (a)     summon and hold annual general meeting of the company within a period of sixty
                       days from the close of first year after the commencement of winding up, in the
                       manner provided under section 132;

               (b)     lay before the meeting audited accounts consisting of statement of financial position
                       and the receipt and payment accounts, auditors’ report and the liquidator’ s report
                       on the acts, dealings and the conduct of the company’s winding up during the
                       preceding period from the date of winding up; and

               (c)     forward by post to every contributory a copy of the accounts and the reports, as
                       referred to in clause (b).




                                                  Page 230 of 401
       (2)     A return of convening of each general meeting together with a copy of the notice,
accounts and the reports as aforesaid, the list of contributories as on the date of the meeting and the
minutes of the meeting shall be filed by the liquidator with the registrar within fifteen days of the date of
the meeting.

         (3)    If the liquidator fails to comply with this section, he shall be liable, in respect of each
failure, to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        359. Final meeting and dissolution.__(1) As soon as the affairs of a company are fully wound
up, the liquidator shall__

                (a)     prepare final accounts of the company, get the same audited; and also prepare a
                        report of the winding up, showing that the property and assets of the company have
                        been disposed of and its debts fully discharged and such other particulars; as may
                        be specified; and

                (b)     call a general meeting of the company for the purpose of laying the report and
                        accounts before it, and giving any explanation therefor.

         (2)    A copy of the report and accounts together with a copy of the auditor’s report and notice
of meeting shall be sent by post or courier or through electronic mode to each contributory of the company
at least twenty-one days before the meeting required to be held under this section.

       (3)     The notice of the meeting specifying the time, place and object of the meeting shall also
be published at least twenty-one days before the date of the meeting in the manner specified in section
350.

        (4)     Within one week after the meeting, the liquidator shall file with the registrar his final report
in the specified form.

        (5)     If a quorum is not present at the meeting, the liquidator shall in lieu of the return referred
to in sub-section (4), make a return that the meeting was duly summoned and that no quorum was present
there at, and upon such a return being made within one week after the date fixed for the meeting along
with a copy of his report and account in the specified manner, the provision of sub-section (4) as to the
making of the return shall be deemed to have been complied with.

        (6)      The registrar, on receiving the report and account and either the return mentioned in sub-
section (4) or the return mentioned in sub-section (5), shall, after such scrutiny as he may deem fit, register
them, and on the expiration of ninety days from such registration, the company shall be deemed to be
dissolved:

        Provided that, if on his scrutiny the registrar considers that the affairs of the company or the
liquidation proceedings have been conducted in a manner prejudicial to its interest or the interests of its
creditors and members or that any actionable irregularity has been committed, he may take action in
accordance with the provisions of this Act:




                                                  Page 231 of 401
       Provided further that the Court may on the application of the liquidator or of any other person
who appears to the Court to be interested, make an order deferring the date at which the dissolution of
the company is to take effect, for such time as the Court thinks fit.

         (7)    It shall be the duty of the person on whose application an order of the Court under the
foregoing proviso is made, within fourteen days after the making of the order, to deliver to the registrar
a certified copy of the order for registration, and, if that person fails so to do, he shall be liable to a daily
penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        (8)     If the liquidator fails to comply with any requirements of this section, he shall be liable
to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        360. Alternative provisions as to annual and final meetings in case of insolvency.— Where
section 357 has effect, sections 368 and 369 shall apply to the winding up, to the exclusion of sections
358 and 359 as if the winding up were creditors’ voluntary winding up and not a members’ voluntary
winding up:

        Provided that the liquidator shall not be required to summon a meeting of creditors under section
368 at the end of the first year from the commencement of the winding up, unless the meeting held under
section 362 has been held more than ninety days before the end of the year.

                           PROVISIONS APPLICABLE TO CREDITORS’
                                  VOLUNTARY WINDING UP

        361. Provisions applicable to creditors’ voluntary winding up.—The provisions contained
in sections 355 to 369, both inclusive, shall apply in relation to creditors’ voluntary winding up.

        362.    Meeting of creditors.—(1) The company shall___

                (a)     cause a meeting of its creditors to be summoned for a day not later than the
                        fourteenth day after the day on which there is to be held the company meeting at
                        which the resolution for voluntary winding up is to be proposed;

                (b)     cause the notices of the creditors’ meeting to be sent by post to the creditors
                        not less than seven days before the day on which that meeting is to be held; and

                (c)     cause notice of the creditors’ meeting to be advertised in a newspaper in English
                        and Urdu languages at least in one issue each of respective language having wide
                        circulation and a copy thereof shall simultaneously be sent to the registrar.

        (2)     The directors of the company shall—

                (a)     make out a statement of the position of the company’s affairs and assets and
                        liabilities together with a list of the creditors of the company, details of securities
                        held by them respectively along with the dates when such securities were held, the




                                                   Page 232 of 401
                       estimated amount of their claims to be laid before the meeting of creditors and such
                       other information as may be specified; and

               (b)     appoint one of their members to preside at the said meeting.

       (3)    It shall be the duty of the director appointed to preside at the meeting of creditors to attend
the meeting and preside there at.

       (4)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        363. Appointment of liquidator.__(1) The creditors and the company at their respective
meetings mentioned in sections 357 and 362 may nominate a person, who has given his written consent
to act as such, to be liquidator for the purpose of winding up the affairs and distributing the assets of the
company.

        (2)     If the creditors and company nominate different persons, the persons nominated by
the creditors shall be liquidator:

        Provided that any director, member or creditor of the company may, within fifteen days after the
date on which the nomination was made by the creditors, apply to the Court for an order either directing
that the person nominated as liquidator by the company shall be liquidator instead of or jointly with the
person nominated by the creditors or appointing some other person to be liquidator instead of the person
appointed by the creditors.

        (3)     If no person is nominated by the creditors, the person, if any, nominated by the company
shall be liquidator.

        (4)     If no person is nominated by the company, the person, if any, nominated by the creditors
shall be the liquidator.

       (5)    The liquidator shall not resign or quit his office as liquidator before conclusion of the
winding up proceedings except for reasons of personal disability to the satisfaction of the Court and
may also be removed by the Court for reasons to be recorded.

         (6)    Notice of appointment of liquidator as well as the resolution passed at a creditors’
meeting in pursuance of section 362 shall be given by the company to the registrar, along with the consent
of the liquidator to act as such, within ten days of the passing thereof.

        364. Fixing of liquidator’s remuneration.—(1) The liquidator shall subject to the specified
limits be entitled to such remuneration by way of percentage of the amount realised by him by disposal
of assets or otherwise, as the creditors in their meeting or the Court in terms of proviso to sub-section
(2) of section 317 as the case may be, may fix having regard to the nature of the work done, experience,
qualification of such liquidator and size of the company:

       Provided that different percentage rates may be fixed for different types of assets and items.



                                                 Page 233 of 401
       (2)     In addition to the remuneration payable under sub-section (1), the creditors in their
meeting or the Court may authorise payment of a monthly allowance to the liquidator for meeting the
expenses of the winding up for a period not exceeding one year from the date of the commencement
of winding up.

       (3)     The remuneration fixed as aforesaid shall not be enhanced subsequently but may be
reduced by the Court at any time.

       (4)    If the liquidator resigns, is removed from office or otherwise ceases to hold office before
conclusion of winding up, he shall not be entitled to any remuneration and the remuneration already
received by him, if any, shall be refunded by him to the company.

        365. Cessation of boards’ powers.—On the appointment of a liquidator, all the powers of the
board, chief executive and other officers shall cease, except for the purpose of giving notice of resolution
to wind up and appointment of the liquidator and filing of consent of the liquidator as required under this
Act, the creditors, in general meeting may sanction the continuance thereof.

        366. Power to fill vacancy in office of liquidator.—If a vacancy occurs, by death, resignation
or otherwise, in the office of a liquidator, other than a liquidator appointed by or by the direction of, the
Court, the creditors in their meeting may fill the vacancy by appointing a person who has given his
written consent to act as liquidator, and for this purpose the provisions of section 354 shall mutatis
mutandis apply.

        367. Application of section 356 to a creditors voluntary winding up.—The provisions of
section 356 shall apply in the case of a creditors voluntary winding up as in the case of member’s
voluntary winding up with the modification that the powers of the liquidator under the said section shall
not be exercised except with the sanction of the Court.

           368.   Duty of liquidator to call meeting of company and of creditors.___(1) The liquidator
shall___

                  (a)    summon and hold annual general meeting of the company and a meeting of the
                         creditors within a period of sixty days from the close of its financial year in the
                         manner provided under section 132;

                  (b)    lay before the meetings mentioned in clause (a), audited accounts consisting of
                         statement of financial position and the receipt and payment accounts, auditors’
                         report and the liquidator’s report on the acts, dealings and the conduct of the
                         company’s winding up during the preceding period from the date of winding up;
                         and

                  (c)    forward by post to every contributory a copy of the accounts and the reports, as
                         referred to in clause (b).




                                                 Page 234 of 401
       (2)     A return of convening of each general meeting together with a copy of the notice,
accounts and the reports as aforesaid, the list of contributories as on the date of the meeting and the
minutes of the meeting shall be filed by the liquidator with the registrar within fifteen days of the date of
the meeting.

       (3)     If the liquidator fails to comply with this section, he shall be liable to a penalty of level
1 on the standard scale.

        369. Final meeting and dissolution.___(1) As soon as the affairs of a company are fully wound
up, the liquidator shall—

                (a)     prepare final accounts of the company, get the same audited; and also prepare a
                        report of the winding up, showing that the property and assets of the company have
                        been disposed of and its debts fully discharged and such other particulars; as may
                        be specified;

                (b)     summon and hold general meeting of the company and a meeting of the creditors
                        within a period of sixty days from the close of its financial year in the manner
                        provided under section 132; and

                (c)     lay before the meetings mentioned in clause (a), audited accounts consisting of
                        statement of financial position and the receipt and payment accounts, auditors’
                        report and the liquidator’s report on the acts, dealings and the conduct of the
                        company’s winding up during the preceding period from the date of winding up.

         (2)    A copy of the report and accounts together with a copy of the auditor’s report and notice
of meeting shall be sent by post or courier or through electronic mode to each contributory of the company
at least twenty-one days before the meeting required to be held under this section.

       (3)     The notice of the meeting specifying the time, place and object of the meeting shall also
be published at least twenty-one days before the date of the meeting in the manner specified in section
350.

        (4)     Within one week after the meeting, the liquidator shall file with the registrar his final report
in the specified form.

        (5)     If a quorum (which for the purpose of this section shall be two persons) is not present at
either of such meetings, the liquidator shall in lieu of the return referred to in sub-section (4), make a
return that the meeting was duly summoned and that no quorum was present there at, and upon such a
return being made within one week after the date fixed for the meeting along with a copy of his report
and account in the specified manner, the provision of sub-section (4) as to the making of the return shall
be deemed to have been complied with.

        (6)      The registrar, on receiving the report and account and either the return mentioned in sub-
section (4) or the return mentioned in sub-section (5), shall, after such scrutiny as he may deem fit, register




                                                  Page 235 of 401
them, and on the expiration of ninety days from such registration, the company shall be deemed to be
dissolved:

        Provided that, if on his scrutiny the registrar considers that the affairs of the company or the
liquidation proceedings have been conducted in a manner prejudicial to its interest or the interests of its
creditors and members or that any actionable irregularity has been committed, he may take action in
accordance with the provisions of this Act:

       Provided further that the Court may on the application of the liquidator or of any other person
who appears to the Court to be interested, make an order deferring the date at which the dissolution of
the company is to take effect, for such time as the Court thinks fit.

         (7)    It shall be the duty of the person on whose application an order of the Court under the
foregoing proviso is made, within fourteen days after the making of the order, to deliver to the registrar
a certified copy of the order for registration, and, if that person fails so to do, he shall be liable to a daily
penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        (8)     If the liquidator fails to comply with any requirements of this section, he shall be liable
to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.




                                                   Page 236 of 401
              PROVISIONS APPLICABLE TO EVERY VOLUNTARY WINDING UP

         370. Distribution of property of company.—Subject to the provisions of this Act as to
preferential payments, the property of a company shall, on its winding up, be applied in satisfaction of its
liabilities pari passu and, subject to such application shall, unless the articles otherwise provide be
distributed among the members according to their rights and interests in the company.

       371. Application of sections 320 and 321 to voluntary winding up. ___The provisions of
sections 320 and 321 shall, so far as may be, apply to every voluntary winding up as they apply to winding
up by the Court except that references to—

               (a)     “the Court” shall be omitted;

               (b)     the “official liquidator” or the “provisional manager” shall be construed as
                       references to the liquidator; and

               (c)     the “relevant date” shall be construed as reference to the date of commencement of
                       the winding up; and

the report referred to in section 321 shall be submitted to the registrar instead of the Court.

       372.    Powers and duties of liquidator in voluntary winding up. ___ (1) The liquidator may___

               (a)     in the case of a members’ voluntary winding up, with the sanction of a special
                       resolution of the company, and, in the case of a creditors’ voluntary winding up, of
                       a meeting of the creditors, exercise any of the powers given by sub-section (1) of
                       section 337 to a liquidator in a winding up by the Court;

               (b)     without the sanction referred to in clause (a), exercise any of the other powers given
                       by this Act to the liquidator in a winding up by the Court;

               (c)     exercise the power of the Court under this Act of settling a list of contributories,
                       which shall be prima facie evidence of the liabilities of the persons named therein
                       to be contributories;

               (d)     exercise the powers of the Court of making calls;

               (e)     summon general meeting of the company and creditors for the purpose of
                       obtaining the sanction of the company by special resolution or for any other purpose
                       he may think fit.

        (2)     The exercise by the liquidator of the powers given by clause (a) of sub-section (1) shall
be subject to the control of the Court; and any creditor or contributory may apply to the Court with respect
to any exercise or proposed exercise of any of the power conferred by this section.




                                                 Page 237 of 401
       (3)     The liquidator shall pay the debts of the company and shall adjust the rights of the
contributories among themselves.

         (4)    The liquidator shall within thirty days of the coming into his hands of any funds sufficient
to distribute among the creditors or contributories after providing for expenses of the winding up or for
other preferential payments as provided in this Act, distribute in accordance with the provisions of this
Act:

       Provided that in case of company licenced under section 42 of this Act, if on a winding up, there
remains after the satisfaction of all debts and liabilities, any assets, those shall be transferred to another
company licenced under section 42 of this Act, preferably having similar or identical objects to those of
the company in the manner as may be specified:

        Provided further that such portion of the funds as may be required for meeting any claim against
the company which may be subjudice or subject matter of adjudication or assessment shall not be
distributed till the claim is finally settled:

        Provided also that any amounts retained as aforesaid shall be invested by the official liquidator
in Special Saving Certificates or in such other securities or instruments as may be specified and the
distribution thereof shall be made by him after the pending claims are settled:

        Provided also that in case of company licenced under section 42, if any of the assets is not
transferred in the manner provided in first proviso due to any reason, all such assets shall be sold and
proceeds thereof credited to the Investor Education and Awareness Fund formed under section 245.

        (5)    The winding up proceedings shall be completed by the liquidator within a period of one
year from the date of commencement of winding up:

        Provided that the Court may, on the application of the liquidator, grant extension by thirty days at
any time but such extension shall not exceed a period of one hundred and eighty days in all and shall be
allowed only for the reason that any proceedings for or against the company are pending in a court and
the Court shall also have the power to require expeditious disposal of such proceedings as it could under
section 337 if the company was being wound up by the Court.

        (6)    If an official liquidator is convicted of misfeasance, or breach of duty or other lapse or
default in relation to winding up proceedings of a company, he shall cease to be the official liquidator
of the company and shall also become disqualified, for a period of five years from such conviction, from
being the liquidator of, or to hold any other office including that of a director in any company and if he
already holds any such office he shall forthwith be deemed to have ceased to hold such office.

       (7)     When several liquidators are appointed, any power given by this Act may be exercised by
such one or more of them as may be determined at the time, of their appointment, or in default of such
determination, by any two or more of them.

       373. Power of Court to appoint and remove liquidator in voluntary winding up.—(1) If
from any cause whatever, there is no liquidator acting, the Court may appoint a liquidator in accordance




                                                 Page 238 of 401
with the provisions of section 315 who shall have the same powers, as are exercisable by an official
liquidator under sub-section (1) of section 337.

       (2)     The Court may, on cause shown, replace a liquidator on the application of any creditor or
contributory or the registrar or a person authorised by the Commission.

        (3)     The remuneration to be paid to the liquidator appointed under sub-section (1) or sub-
section (2) shall be fixed by the Court subject to the provisions of section 364.

        374. Notice by liquidator of his appointment.—(1) Every liquidator shall, within fourteen
days after his appointment, publish in the official Gazette, and deliver to the registrar for registration, a
notice of his appointment in the form specified.

        (2)     If the liquidator fails to comply with the requirements of sub-section (1), he shall be liable
to a daily penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

          375. Arrangement when binding on company and creditors.—(1) Any arrangement other
than the arrangement referred to in section 356 entered into between a company which is about to be, or
is in the course of being wound up and its creditors shall be binding on the company and on the creditors,
if it is sanctioned by a special resolution of the company and acceded to by the creditors who hold three-
fourths in value of the total amount due to all the creditors of the company.

       (2)     Any creditor or contributory may, within twenty-one days from the completion of the
arrangement, appeal to the Court against it, and the Court may thereupon, as it thinks just, amend, vary,
confirm or set aside the arrangement.

        376. Power to apply to Court to have questions determined or powers exercised.—(1) The
liquidator or any contributory or creditor may apply to the Court—

               (a)     to determine any question arising in the winding up of a company; or

               (b)     to exercise as respects the enforcing of calls, the staying of proceedings or any other
                       matter, all or any of the powers which the Court might exercise if the company
                       were being wound up by the Court.

       (2)     The liquidator or any contributory may apply to the Court specified in sub-section (3) for
an order setting aside any attachment, distress or execution put into force against the estate or effects of
the company after the commencement of the winding up.

       (3)     An application under sub-section (2) shall be made___

               (a)     if the attachment, distress or execution is levied or put into force by a Court, to such
                       Court; and

               (b)     if the attachment, distress or execution is levied or put into force by any other court,
                       to the court having jurisdiction to wind up the company.




                                                 Page 239 of 401
         (4)     The Court, if it is satisfied that the determination of the question or the required exercise
of power or the order applied for will be just and beneficial, may accede wholly or partially to the
application on such terms and conditions as it thinks fit, or may make such other orders on the application
as it thinks just.

        (5)      A copy of an order staying the proceedings in the winding up, made by virtue of this
section, shall forthwith be forwarded by the company, or otherwise as may be prescribed, to the registrar,
who shall make a minute of the order in his books relating to the company.

         377. Application of liquidator to Court for public examination of promoters, directors.—
The liquidator may make a report to the Court stating that in his opinion a fraud or any other actionable
irregularity has been committed by any person in the promotion or formation of the company or by any
officer of the company in relation to the company since its formation; and the Court may, after
considering the report, direct that person or officer shall attend before the Court on a day appointed by
it for that purpose, and be publicly examined as to the promotion or formation or the conduct of the
business of the company, or as to his conduct and dealings as officer thereof, in the manner provided for
such examination in the case of winding up of a company by the Court.

        378. Costs of voluntary winding up.—All costs, charges and expenses properly incurred in
the winding up, including the remuneration of the liquidator, shall subject to the rights of secured creditors,
if any, be payable out of the assets of the company in priority to all other claims.

       379. Saving for right of creditors and contributories.—The voluntary winding up of a
company shall not bar the right of any creditor or contributory to have it wound up by the Court, but in
the case of an application by a contributory, the Court must be satisfied that the rights of the
contributories will be prejudiced by a voluntary winding up.

        380. Power of Court to adopt proceedings of voluntary winding up.—Where a company is
being wound up voluntarily, and an order is made for winding up by the Court, the Court may, if it
thinks fit by the same or any subsequent order, provide for the adoption of all or any of the proceedings
in the voluntary winding up.

                     WINDING UP SUBJECT TO SUPERVISION OF COURT

        381. Power to order winding up subject to supervision.— When a company has passed a
resolution for voluntary winding up, the Court may of its own motion or on the application of any person
entitled to apply to the Court for winding up a company, make an order that the voluntary winding up
shall continue, but subject to such supervision of the Court, and with such liberty for creditors,
contributories or others to apply to the Court, and generally on such terms and conditions, as the Court
thinks just.

        382. Effect of petition for winding up subject to supervision.—A petition for the
continuance of a voluntary winding up subject to the supervision of the Court shall, for the purpose of
giving jurisdiction to the Court over suits and another legal proceedings, be deemed to be a petition for
winding up by the Court.




                                                  Page 240 of 401
       383. Court may have regard to the wishes of creditors and contributories.— The Court
may, in deciding between a winding up by the Court and a winding up subject to supervision, in the
appointment of liquidators, and in all other matters relating to the winding up subject to supervision, have
regard to the wishes of the creditors or contributories as proved to it by any sufficient evidence, but
subject to the provisions which would have been applicable had the company been wound up by the
Court.

        384. Power to replace liquidator.—Where an order is made for winding up subject to
supervision, the Court may on an application by any creditor or contributory or the registrar or a person
authorised by the Commission in this behalf, replace the liquidator who shall have the same powers, be
subject to the same obligations and in all respects stand in the same position as if he had been appointed
by the company.

        385. Effects of supervision order.— (1) Where an order is made for a winding up subject to
supervision, the liquidator may, subject to any restriction imposed by the Court, exercise all his powers,
without the sanction or intervention of the Court, in the same manner as if the company were being wound
up altogether voluntarily.

         (2)    Except as provided in sub-section (1), and save for the purposes of section 327 an order
made by the Court for a winding up subject to the supervision of the Court shall for all purposes including
the staying of suits and other proceedings, be deemed to be an order of the Court for winding up the
company by the Court, and shall confer full authority on the Court to make call or to enforce calls made
by the liquidator, and to exercise all other powers which it might have exercised if an order had been made
for winding up the company altogether by the Court.

        (3)     In the construction of the provisions whereby the Court is empowered to direct any act
or thing to be done to or in favour of the official liquidator, the expression “official liquidator” shall be
deemed to mean the liquidator conducting the winding up subject to the supervision of the Court.

        (4)   Unless otherwise directed by the Court, an order for winding up subject to supervision shall
not in any way affect the duties, obligations and liabilities of the liquidator as provided for in respect of
voluntary winding up.

       386. Appointment of voluntary liquidator as official liquidator in certain cases.— Where
an order has been made for the winding up of a company subject to supervision, and an order is
afterwards made for winding up by the Court, the Court shall by the last mentioned order, appoint the
voluntary liquidator, either provisionally or permanently, and either with or without the addition of any
other person, to be official liquidator in the winding up by the Court.

       387. Status of companies being wound up.—A company being wound up shall continue to
be a company for all purposes till its final dissolution in accordance with the provisions of this Act and,
unless otherwise specified, all provisions and requirements of this Act relating to companies shall
continue to apply mutatis mutandis in the case of companies being wound up:




                                                 Page 241 of 401
        Provided that, from the date of commencement of the winding up of a company, the official
liquidator or the liquidator shall be deemed to have taken the place of the board and chief executive of the
company, as the case may be.
                                 PROOF AND RANKING OF CLAIMS

        388. Debts of all description to be proved.—In every winding up (subject, in the case
of insolvent companies, to the application in accordance with the provisions of this Act or the law of
insolvency) all debts payable on a contingency, and all claims against the company, present or future,
certain or contingent, ascertained or sounding only in damages, shall be admissible to proof against
the company, a just estimate being made, so far as possible, of the value of such debts or claims as may
be subject to any contingency, or may sound only in damages, or for some other reason do not bear a
certain value.

         389. Application of insolvency rules in winding up of insolvent companies.— In the
winding up of an insolvent company the same rules shall prevail and be observed with regard to the
respective rights of secured and unsecured creditors and to debts provable and to the valuation of
annuities and future and contingent liabilities as are in force for the time being under the law of
insolvency with respect to the estates of persons adjudged insolvent; and all persons who in any such
case will be entitled to prove for and receive dividend out of the assets of the company may come in under
the winding up, and make such claims against the company as they respectively are entitled to by virtue
of this section.

      390.     Preferential payments. ___(1) In a winding up, there shall be paid in priority to all other
debts—
               (a)     all revenues, taxes, cesses and rates due from the company to the Federal
                       Government or a Provincial Government or to a local authority at the relevant date
                       and having become due and payable within the one year next before that date on
                       pari passu basis;

               (b)     all wages or salary (including wages payable for time or piece work and salary
                       earned wholly or in part by way of commission) of any employee in respect of
                       services rendered to the company;

               (c)     all accrued holiday remuneration becoming payable to any employee or in the case
                       of his death to any other person in his right, on the termination of his employment
                       before, or by the winding up order, or, as the case may be, the dissolution of the
                       company;

               (d)     unless the company is being wound up voluntarily merely for the purposes of
                       reconstruction or of amalgamation with another company, all amounts due, in
                       respect of contributions towards insurance payable during the one year next before
                       the relevant date, by the company as employer of any persons, under any other law
                       for the time being in force;

               (e)     unless the company has, at the commencement of the winding up, under such a
                       contract with insurers as is mentioned in section 14 of the Workmen’s




                                                Page 242 of 401
                       Compensation Act, 1923 (VIII of 1923), rights capable of being transferred to and
                       vested in the workman, all amounts due in respect of any compensation or liability
                       for compensation under the said Act in respect of the death or disablement of any
                       employee of the company:

                               Provided that where any compensation under the said Act is a weekly
                       payment, the amount payable under this clause shall be taken to be the amount of
                       the lump sum for which such weekly payment could, if redeemable, be redeemed,
                       if the employer made for that purpose under the said Act;

               (f)     all sums due to any employee from a provident fund, a pension fund, a gratuity fund
                       or any other fund for the welfare of the employees maintained by the company; and

               (g)     the expenses of any investigation held in pursuance of sections 256, 257 or 258,
                       in so far as they are payable by the company.

       (2)     Where any payment has been made___

               (a)     to an employee of a company on account of wages or salary; or

               (b)     to an employee of a company or, in the case of his death, to any other person in his
                       right, on account of accrued holiday remuneration,

out of money advanced by some person for that purpose, the person by whom the money was advanced
shall, in a winding up, have a right of priority in respect of the money so advanced and paid, up to the
amount by which the sum in respect of which the employee or other person in his right would have been
entitled to priority in the winding up has been diminished by reason of the payment having been made.

       (3)     The foregoing debts shall___

               (a)     rank equally among themselves and be paid in full, unless the assets are insufficient
                       to meet them, in which case they shall abate in equal proportion; and

               (b)     so far as the assets of the company available for payment of general creditors are
                       insufficient to meet them, have priority over the claims of holders of debentures
                       under any floating charge created by the company, and be paid accordingly out of
                       any property comprised in or subject to that charge.

        (4)    Subject to the retention of such sums as may be necessary for the costs and expenses of the
winding up, the foregoing debts shall be discharged forthwith so far as the assets are sufficient to meet
them and, in the case of the debts to which priority is given by clause (d) of sub-section (1), formal proof
thereof shall not be required except in so far as may be otherwise prescribed.

        (5)     In the event of a landlord or other person distraining or having distrained on any goods or
effects of the company within ninety days next before the date of winding up order, the debts to which




                                                Page 243 of 401
priority is given by this section shall be a first charge on the goods or effects so distrained on, or the
proceeds of the sale thereof:

        Provided that, in respect of any money paid under any such charge, the landlord or other person
shall have the same rights of priority as the person to whom the payment is made.

         (6)    For the purposes of this section___

                (a)    any remuneration in respect of a period of holiday or of absence from work on
                       medical grounds or other good cause shall be deemed to be wages in respect of
                       services rendered to the company during that period;

                (b)    the expression “accrued holiday remuneration” includes, in relation to any person,
                       all sums which by virtue either of his contract of employment or of any enactment
                       (including any order made or direction given under any enactment), are payable on
                       account of the remuneration which would, in the ordinary course, have become
                       payable to him in respect of a period of holiday had his employment with the
                       company continued until he became entitled to be allowed the holiday; and

                (c)    the expression “the relevant date” means—


                       (i)     in the case of a company ordered to be wound up by the Court, the date
                               of the appointment (or first appointment) of the provisional manager or, if
                               no such appointment was made, the date of the winding up order, unless
                               in either case the company had commenced to be wound up voluntarily
                               before that date; and

                       (ii)    in any other case, the date of the passing of the resolution for the voluntary
                               winding up of the company.
         391.   Avoidance of transfers. ___Except when an order to the contrary is passed by the
     ___
court.

                (a)    every transfer of shares and alteration in the status of a member made after the
                       commencement of winding up shall, unless approved by the liquidator, be void;

                (b)    any transfer or disposition of property, including actionable claims of the
                       company, not being a transfer or delivery made in the ordinary course of its
                       business or in favour of a purchaser or encumbrancer in good faith and for valuable
                       consideration, if made within a period of one year before the presentation of a
                       petition for winding up by the Court or the passing of a resolution for voluntary
                       winding up of the company, shall be void.

       392. Disclaimer of onerous property.—(1) Where any part of the property of a company
which is being wound up consists of___




                                                 Page 244 of 401
               (a)     land of any tenure, burdened with onerous covenants;

               (b)     shares or stocks in companies;

               (c)     any other property which is not saleable or is not readily saleable by reason of the
                       possessor thereof being bound either to the performance of any onerous act or to
                       the payment of any sum of money; or

               (d)     unprofitable contracts,

        the liquidator may, notwithstanding that he has endeavoured to sell or has taken possession of the
property or exercised any act of ownership in relation thereto or done anything in pursuance of the
contract, with the leave of the Court and subject to the provisions of this section, by writing signed by
him, at any time within one year after the commencement of the winding up or such extended period as
may be allowed by the Court, disclaim the property:

        Provided that, where any such property has not come to the knowledge of the liquidator within
thirty days after the commencement of the winding up, the power under this section of disclaiming the
property may be exercised at any time within one year after he has become aware thereof or such extended
period as may be allowed by the Court.

         (2)      The disclaimer shall operate to determine, as from the date of disclaimer, the rights,
interest and liabilities of the company in or in respect of the property disclaimed, but shall not, except so
far as is necessary for the purpose of releasing the company and the property of the company from
liability, affect the rights, interest or liabilities of any other person.

        (3)     The Court, before or on granting leave to disclaim, may require such notices to be given
to persons interested, and impose such terms as a condition of granting leave, and make such other order
in the matter as the Court considers just and proper.

        (4)     The liquidator shall not be entitled to disclaim any property in any case where an
application in writing has been made to him by any person interested in the property requiring him to
decide whether he will or will not disclaim and the liquidator has not, within a period of twenty-eight
days after the receipt of the application or such extended period as may be allowed by the Court, give
notice to the applicant that he intends to apply to the Court for leave to disclaim, and in case the property
is under a contract, if the liquidator after such an application as aforesaid does not within the said period
or extended period disclaim the contract, he shall be deemed to have adopted it.

        (5)     The Court may, on the application of any person who is, as against the liquidator, entitled
to the benefit or subject to the burden of a contract made with the company, make an order rescinding the
contract on such terms as to payment by or to either party of damages for the non-performance of the
contract, or otherwise as the Court considers just and proper, and any damages payable under the order to
any such person may be proved by him as a debt in the winding up.

       (6)    The Court may, on an application by any person who either claims any interest in any
disclaimed property or is under any liability not discharged under this Act in respect of any disclaimed




                                                 Page 245 of 401
property, and after hearing any such persons as it thinks fit, make an order for the vesting of the property
in, or the delivery of the property to, any person entitled thereto or to whom it may seem just that the
property should be delivered by way of compensation for such liability as aforesaid, or a trustee for
him, and on such terms as the Court considers just and proper, and on any such vesting order being
made, the property comprised therein shall vest accordingly in the person named therein in that behalf
without any conveyance or assignment for the purpose:

       Provided that where the property disclaimed is of a leasehold nature, the Court shall not make a
vesting order in favour of any person claiming under the company, whether as under-lessee or as
mortgagee or holder of a charge by way of demise, except upon the terms of making that person—

               (a)     subject to the same liabilities and obligations as those to which the company was
                       subject under the lease in respect of the property at the commencement of the
                       winding up; or

               (b)     if the Court thinks fit, subject only to the same liabilities and obligations as if the
                       lease had been assigned to that person at that date,

and in either event as if the lease had comprised only the property comprised in the vesting order, and
any mortgagee or under-lessee declining to accept a vesting order upon such terms shall be excluded
from all interest in, and security upon the property, and, if there is no person claiming under the company
who is willing to accept an order upon such terms, the Court shall have power to vest the estate and interest
of the company in the property in any person liable, either personally or in a representative character, and
either alone or jointly with the company, to perform the covenants of the lessee in the lease, free and
discharged from all estates, encumbrances and interests created therein by the company.

         (7)    Any person affected by the operation of a disclaimer under this section shall be deemed
to be a creditor of the company to the amount of the compensation or damages payable in respect of such
effect, and may accordingly prove the amount as a debt in the winding up.

       EFFECT OF WINDING UP ON ANTECEDENT AND OTHER TRANSACTIONS

        393. Fraudulent preference.—(1) Where a company has given preference to a person who is
one of the creditors of the company or a surety or guarantor for any of the debts or other liabilities of the
company, and the company does anything or suffers anything done which has the effect of putting that
person into a position which, in the event of the company going into liquidation, will be better than the
position he would have been in if that thing had not been done prior to one hundred and eighty days of
commencement of winding up, the Court, if satisfied that, such transaction is a fraudulent preference may
order as it may think fit for restoring the position to what it would have been if the company had not given
that preference.

       (2)     If the Court is satisfied that there is a preference transfer of property, movable or
immovable, or any delivery of goods, payment, execution made, taken or done by or against a company
within one hundred and eighty days before the commencement of winding up, the Court may order as
it may think fit and may declare such transaction invalid and restore the position.




                                                 Page 246 of 401
        394. Liabilities and rights of certain fraudulently preferred persons.—(1) Where, in the
case of a company which is being wound up, anything made or done after the commencement of this
Act, is invalid under section 393 as a fraudulent preference of a person interested in property
mortgaged or charged to secure the company’s debt, then (without prejudice to any rights or liabilities
arising apart from this provision) the person preferred shall be subject to the same liabilities and shall
have the same rights as if he had undertaken to be personally liable as surety for the debt to the extent
of the charge on the property or the value of his interest, whichever is less.

        (2)    The value of the said person’ s interest shall be determined as at the date of the
transaction constituting the fraudulent preference, and shall be determined as if the interest were free of
all encumbrances other than those to which the charge for the company’s debt was then subject.

        (3)    On any application made to the Court with respect to any payment on the ground that the
payment was a fraudulent preference of a surety or guarantor, the Court shall have jurisdiction to
determine any questions with respect to the payment arising between the person to whom the payment
was made and the surety or guarantor and to grant relief in respect thereof, notwithstanding that it is not
necessary so to do for the purposes of the winding up, and for that purpose may give leave to bring in
the surety or guarantor as a third party as in the case of a suit for the recovery of the sum paid.

        (4)     Sub-section (3) shall apply, with the necessary modifications, in relation to transactions
other than the payment of money as it applied in relation to such payments.

        395. Avoidance of certain attachments, executions.—(1) Where any company is being
wound up by or subject to the supervision of the Court, any attachment, distress or execution put in force
without leave of the Court against the estate or effects or any sale held without leave of the Court of any
of the properties of the company after the commencement of the winding up shall be void.

       (2)     Nothing in this section applies to proceedings by the Government.

        396. Effect of floating charge.—Where a company is being wound up, a floating charge on
the undertaking or property of the company created within one year immediately preceding the
commencement of the winding up shall, unless it is proved that the company immediately after the creation
of the charge was solvent, be invalid except to the amount of any cash paid to the company at the time of,
or subsequently to the creation of, and in consideration for, the charge, together with markup on that
amount at the rate of five percent per annum or part thereof or such other rate as may be notified by the
Commission in the official Gazette.

               OFFENCES ANTECEDENT TO OR IN COURSE OF WINDING UP

       397. Power of Court to assess damages against delinquent directors.—(1)If in the course
of winding up a company it appears that any person who has taken part in the promotion or formation of
the company or any past or present director, liquidator or officer of the company-

               (a)     has misapplied or retained or become liable or accountable for any money or
                       property of the company; or




                                                Page 247 of 401
               (b)     has been guilty of any misfeasance or breach of trust in relation to the company;

the Court may, on the application of the official liquidator or the liquidator or of any creditor or
contributory, made within the time specified in that behalf in sub-section (2), examine into the conduct
of the person, director, liquidator or officer aforesaid, and compel him to repay or restore the money or
property or any part thereof respectively, with surcharge at such rate as the Court thinks just, or to
contribute such sum to the assets of the company by way of compensation in respect of the
misapplication, retainer, misfeasance or breach of trust as the Court thinks just.

       (2)    An application under sub-section (1) shall be made within five years from the date of the
order for winding up, or of the first appointment of the liquidator in the winding up, or of the
misapplication, retainer, misfeasance or breach of trust, as the case may be, whichever is longer.

       (3)   This section shall apply notwithstanding that the matter is one for which the person
concerned may be criminally liable.

        398. Liability for fraudulent conduct of business.—(1) If in the course of the winding up of
a company it appears that any business of the company has been carried on with intent to defraud
creditors of the company or any other person, or for any fraudulent purpose, the Court, on the application
of the official liquidator or the liquidator or any creditor or contributory of the company, may, if it
thinks fit, declare that any persons who were knowingly parties to the carrying on of the business in
the manner aforesaid shall be personally responsible, without any limitation of liability, for all or any of
the debts or other liabilities of the company as the Court may direct.

        (2)      On the hearing of an application under sub-section (1), the official liquidator or the
liquidator, as the case may be, may himself give evidence or call witnesses.

        (3)    Where the Court makes any such declaration, it may give such further directions as it thinks
proper for the purpose of giving effect to that declaration; and, in particular, may make provision for
making that liability of any such person under the declaration a charge on any debt or obligation due
from the company to him, or on any mortgage or charge or any interest in any mortgage or charge on
any assets of the company held by or vested in him, or any company or person on his behalf, or any
person claiming as assignee from or though the person liable or any company or person acting on his
behalf, and may, from time to time, make such further order as may be necessary for the purpose of
enforcing any charge imposed under this sub-section.

       Explanation. ___For the purpose of this sub-section, the expression “assignee” includes any
person to whom or in whose favour, by the directions of the person liable, the debt, obligation, mortgage
or charge was created, issued or transferred or the interest was created, but does not include an assignee
for valuable consideration (not including consideration by way of marriage) given in good faith and
without notice of any of the matters on the ground of which declaration is made.

        (4)    Where any business of a company is carried on with such intent or for such purpose as is
mentioned in sub-section (1), every person who was a party to the carrying on of the business in the
manner aforesaid shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term which may extend to three years,
or with fine which may extend to one million rupees, or with both.




                                                Page 248 of 401
         (5)    This section shall apply, notwithstanding that the person concerned may be criminally
liable in respect of the matters on the ground of which the declaration is to be made.

        399. Liability under sections 397 and 398 to extend to partners or directors in firm or
body corporate.—Where an order under section 397 or a declaration under section 398 is or may be
made in respect of a firm or body corporate, the Court shall also have power to pass an order under
section 397 or make a declaration under section 398, as the case may be, in respect of any person who
was at the relevant time a partner in that firm or a director of that body corporate.

       400. Penalty for fraud by officers of companies which have gone into liquidation.— (1) If
any person, being at the time of the commission of the alleged offence an officer of a company which is
subsequently ordered to be wound up by the Court or which subsequently passes a resolution for
voluntary winding up—

              (a)     has, by false pretenses or by means of any other fraud, induced any person to give
                      credit to the company; or

              (b)     with intent to defraud creditors of the company, has made or caused to be made any
                      gift or transfer of or charge on, or has caused or connived at the levying of any
                      execution against, the property of the company; or

              (c)     with intent to defraud creditors of the company, has concealed or removed any part
                      of the property of the company since, or within sixty days before, the date of any
                      unsatisfied judgment or order for payment of money obtained against the company;

he shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term which may extend to three years, and shall also be
liable to a fine which may extend to one million rupees.

       (2)     Where the Court has passed an order of winding up of a company and prima facie
concludes that any of the offence provided in sub-section (1) has been committed, the Court may send a
reference for adjudication of offence under sub-section (1) to the court as provided under section 482.

         401. Liability where proper accounts not kept.—(1) If, where a company is being wound
up, it is shown that proper books of account were not kept by the company throughout the period of two
years immediately preceding the commencement of the winding up, or the period between the
incorporation of the company and the commencement of the winding up, whichever is the shorter, every
officer of the company who is in default shall, unless he shows that he acted honestly and that in the
circumstances in which the business of the company was carried on the default was excusable, be
punishable with imprisonment for a term which may extend to three years or with fine which may extend
to one hundred thousand rupees or with both.

       (2)     For the purpose of sub-section (1), proper books of account shall be deemed not to have
been kept in the case of a company, if there have not been kept___

              (a)     such books or accounts as are necessary to exhibit and explain the transactions and
                      financial position of the trade or business of the company, including books



                                              Page 249 of 401
                       containing entries from day to day in sufficient detail of all cash received and all
                       cash paid; and

               (b)     where the trade or business has involved dealings in goods, statement of the annual
                       stock takings and (except in the case of goods sold by way of ordinary retail trade)
                       of all goods sold and purchased, showing the goods and the buyers and sellers
                       thereof in sufficient detail to enable those goods and those buyers and sellers to be
                       identified.

        402. Penalty for falsification of books.—If any director, manager, officer, auditor or
contributory of any company being wound up destroys, mutilates, alters or falsifies or fraudulently
secrets any books, papers or securities, or makes or is privy to the making of any false or fraudulent entry
in any register, books or paper belonging to the company with intent to defraud or deceive any person,
he shall be liable to imprisonment for a term which may extend to three years, or with fine which may
extend to one million rupees, or with both.

         403. Prosecution of delinquent directors.—(1) If it appears to the Court in the course of
winding up by, or subject to the supervision of the Court that any past or present director, or other officer,
or any member, of the company has been guilty of any offence in relation to the company for which he
is criminally liable, the Court may, either on the application of any person interested in the winding up
or of its own motion, direct the liquidator either himself to prosecute the offender or to refer the matter
to the registrar.

        (2)     If it appears to the liquidator in the course of a voluntary winding up that any past or
present director, manager or other officer, or any member, of the company has been guilty of any offence
in relation to the company for which he is criminally liable, he shall forthwith report the matter to the
registrar and shall furnish to him such information and give to him such access to and facilities for
inspecting and taking copies of any documents, being information or documents in the possession or
under the control of the liquidator relating to the matter in question, as he may require.

         (3)     Where any report is made under sub-section (1) or (2) to the registrar, he may, if he thinks
fit, refer the matter to the Commission for further inquiry and the Commission may thereupon investigate
the matter and may, if it thinks it expedient, appoint one or more competent inspectors to investigate the
affairs of the company and to report thereon as if it were a case falling under clause (c) of section 256
and thereupon the provision contained in sections 259 to 273 shall mutatis mutandis apply in all respects.

        (4)    If on any report to the registrar under sub-section (2) it appears to him that the case is not
one in which proceedings ought to be taken by him, he shall inform the liquidator accordingly, giving
his reasons, and thereupon, subject to the previous sanction of the Court, the liquidator may himself take
proceedings against the offender.

        (5)    If it appears to the Court in the course of a voluntary winding up that any past or present
director, manager or other officer, or any member, of the company has been guilty as aforesaid, and that
no report with respect to the matter has been made by the liquidator to the registrar, the Court may, on
the application of any person interested in the winding up or of its own motion, direct the liquidator to




                                                 Page 250 of 401
make such a report and, on a report being made accordingly, the provisions of this section shall have
effect as though the report has been made in pursuance of the provisions of sub-section (1) or (2).

        (6)    If, where any matter is reported or referred to the registrar under this section, he considers
that the case is one in which a prosecution ought to be instituted, he shall report the matter to the
Commission, and the Commission may, after taking such legal advice as it thinks fit, direct the registrar
to proceed in accordance with sections 477 and 486:

       Provided that no report shall be made by the registrar under this sub-section without first giving
the accused person an opportunity of making a statement in writing to the registrar and of being heard
thereon.

        (7)    Notwithstanding anything contained in the Qanun-e-Shahadat Order, 1984 (P.O. No. Act
X of 1984), when any proceedings are instituted under this section it shall be the duty of the liquidator
and of every officer and agent of the company past and present (other than the defendant in the
proceedings) to give all assistance in connection with the prosecution which he is reasonably able to give,
and for the purposes of this sub-section the expression “agent” in relation to a company shall be
deemed to include any banker or legal adviser of the company and any person employed by the company
as auditor, whether that person is or is not an officer of the company.

        (8)     If any person fails or neglects to give assistance in manner required by sub-section (7), the
Court may, on the application of the registrar or the prosecutor, as the case may be, direct that person
to comply with the requirements of the said sub-section, and where any such application is made with
respect to a liquidator, the Court may, unless it appears that the failure or neglect to comply was due to
the liquidator not having in his hands sufficient assets of the company to enable him so to do, direct
that the cost of the application shall be borne by the liquidator personally.

        404. Penalty for false evidence.—If any person, upon any examination upon oath
authorised under this Act, or in any affidavit, disposition or solemn affirmation, in or about the winding
up of any company under this Act, or otherwise in or about any matter arising under this Act, intentionally
gives false evidence, he shall be liable to imprisonment for a term which may extend to three years, and
shall also be liable to a fine which may extend to one million rupees.

        405. Penal Provisions.—(1) If any person, being a past or present director, chief executive,
manager, auditor or other officer of a company which at the time of the commission of the alleged offence,
is being wound up, whether by or under the supervision of the Court or voluntarily or is subsequently
ordered to be wound up by the Court or subsequently passes a resolution for voluntary winding up—

               (a)     does not to the best of his knowledge and belief fully and truly discover to the
                       liquidator all the property, real and personal, of the company, and how and to whom
                       and for what consideration and when the company disposed of any part thereof,
                       except such part as has been disposed of in the ordinary way of the business of the
                       company; or




                                                 Page 251 of 401
(b)   does not deliver up to the liquidator, or as he directs, all such part of the real and
      personal property of the company as is in his custody or under his control, and
      which he is required by law to deliver up; or

(c)   does not deliver up to the liquidator, or as he directs, all books and papers in his
      custody or under his control belonging to the company which he is required by law
      to deliver up; or

(d)   within one year next before the commencement of the winding up or at any time
      thereafter, conceals any part of the property of the company to the value of one
      thousand rupees or upwards or conceals any debt due to or from the company; or

(e)   within one year next before the commencement of the winding up or at any time
      thereafter, fraudulently removes any part of the property of the company to the
      value of one thousand rupees or upward; or

(f)   makes any material omission in any statement relating to the affairs of the company;
      or

(g)   knowing or believing that a false debt has been proved by any person under the
      winding up, fails for the period of a month to inform the liquidator thereof; or

(h)   after the commencement of the winding up, prevents the production of any books
      or papers affecting or relating to the property or affairs of the company; or

(i)   within one year next before the commencement of the winding up or at any time
      thereafter, conceals, destroys, mutilates or falsifies, or is privy to the concealment,
      destruction, mutilation or falsification of, any book or paper affecting or relating
      to the property or affairs of the company; or

(j)   within one year next before the commencement of the winding up or at any time
      thereafter, makes or is privy to the making of any false entry in any book or paper
      affecting or relating to the property or affairs of the company; or

(k)   within one year next before the commencement of the winding up or at any time
      thereafter, fraudulently parts with, alters or makes any omission in, or is privy to
      the fraudulent parting with, altering or making any omission in, any document
      affecting or relating to the property or affairs of the company; or

(l)   after the commencement of the winding up or at any meeting of the creditors of the
      company within one year next before the commencement of the winding up,
      attempts to account for any part of the property of the company by fictitious loses
      or expenses; or

(m)   has within one year next before the commencement of the winding up or at any
      time thereafter, by any false representation or other fraud, obtained any property




                                Page 252 of 401
                       for or on behalf of the company on credit which the company does not subsequently
                       pay for; or

               (n)     within one year next before the commencement of the winding up or at any time
                       thereafter, under the false pretense that the company is carrying on its business,
                       obtains on credit, for or on behalf of the company, any property which the company
                       does not subsequently pay for; or

               (o)     within one year next before the commencement of the winding up or at any time
                       thereafter, pawns, pledges or disposes of any property of the company which has
                       been obtained on credit and has not been paid for, unless such pawning, pledging
                       or disposing is in the ordinary way of the business of the company; or

               (p)     is guilty of any false representation or other fraud for the purpose of obtaining the
                       consent of the creditors of the company or any of them to an agreement with
                       reference to the affairs of the company or to the winding up;

 he shall be punishable, in the case of the offences mentioned respectively in clauses (m), (n) and (o) of
 this sub-section, with imprisonment for a term which may extend to five years, and, in the case of any
 other offence, with imprisonment for a term which may extend to three years and shall also be liable to
 fine which may extend to five million rupees in each case and the liquidator may, with the permission
 of the Court, file a complaint before the Court as provided under section 482 for adjudication of offence:

         Provided that it shall be a good defence, to a charge under any of clauses (b), (c), (d), (f), (n) and
(o), if the accused proves that he had no intent to defraud, and to a charge under any of clauses (a), (h),
(i) and (j), if he proves that he had no intent to conceal the state of affairs of the company or to defeat the
law.
         (2)      Where any person pawns, pledges or disposes of any property in circumstances which
amount to an offence under clause (o) of sub-section (1) every person who takes in pawn or pledge or
otherwise receives the property knowing it to be pawned, pledged or disposed of in such circumstances as
aforesaid shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term which may extend to three years, and shall
also be liable to a fine which may extend to one million rupees.

                      SUPPLEMENTARY PROVISIONS AS TO WINDING UP

       406. Liquidator to exercise certain powers subject to sanction.—(1) The liquidator may,
with the sanction of the Court when the company is being wound up by the Court or subject to the
supervision of the Court, and with the sanction of a special resolution of the company in the case of a
voluntary winding up, do the following things or any of them___

               (a)     pay any classes of creditors in full;

               (b)     make any compromise or arrangement with creditors or persons claiming to be
                       creditors or having or alleging themselves to have any claim, present or future,
                       whereby the company may be rendered liable;




                                                  Page 253 of 401
               (c)    compromise any calls and liabilities to calls, debts, and liabilities, capable of
                      resulting in debts, and all claims, present or future, certain or contingent subsisting
                      or supposed to subsist between the company and a contributory or alleged
                      contributory or other debtor or person apprehending liability to the company, and
                      all questions in any way relating to or affecting the assets or liabilities or the winding
                      up of the company, on such terms as may be agreed, and take any security for the
                      discharge of any such calls, debt, liability or claim, and give a complete discharge
                      in respect thereof.

        (2)     The exercise by the liquidator of the powers under sub-section (1) shall be subject to the
control of the Court, and any creditor or contributory may apply to the Court with respect to any exercise
or proposed exercise of any of these powers.

        407. Meetings to ascertain wishes of creditors or contributories.—(1) In all matter relating
to the winding up of a company, the Court—

               (a)    shall have regard to the wishes of creditors or contributories of the company, as
                      proved to it by any sufficient evidence;

               (b)    may, if it thinks fit for the purpose of ascertaining those wishes, direct meetings of
                      the creditors or contributories to be called, held and conducted in such manner as
                      the Court directs; and

               (c)    may appoint a person to act as chairman of any such meeting and to report the result
                      thereof to the Court.

        (2)     When ascertaining the wishes of creditors, regard shall be had to the value of each
creditor’s debt.

      (3)    When ascertaining the wishes of contributories, regard shall be had to the number of votes
which may be cast by each contributory.

      408. Documents of company to be evidence.—Where any company is being wound up, all
books and papers of the company and of the liquidators, shall, as between the contributories of the
company, be prima facie evidence of the truth of all matters purporting to be recorded therein.

        409. Summary disposal of certain suits by liquidators.—Notwithstanding anything
contained in the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (Act V of 1908), a liquidator desiring to recover any debt
due to the company may apply to the Court in which the proceedings are pending that the same be
determined summarily, and the Court may determine it on affidavits but when the Court deems it just and
expedient, either on an application made to it in this behalf or of its own motion, it may set down any
issue or issues for hearing on other evidence also and pass such orders for discovery of particulars as it
may do in a suit.

      410. Limitation.—Notwithstanding anything contained in the Limitation Act (IX of 1908), in
computing the time within which a liquidator may file a suit for the recovery of any debt due to the




                                                 Page 254 of 401
company, the period which elapses between the making of the petition for liquidation and the assumption
of charge by the liquidator, or a period of one year, whichever be greater, shall be excluded.

        411. Court fees.—(1) Notwithstanding anything contained in the Court- fees Act, 1870 (VII of
1870), or in the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (Act V of 1908), where sufficient funds are not available
with the liquidator and it is necessary to file a suit for the recovery of a debt due to the company, no
court-fee stamp need be affixed on the plaint.

      (2)    If the liquidator succeeds in the suit, the Court shall calculate the amount of court- fee
which would have been paid by the liquidator if he had not been permitted to sue under sub-section (1),
and such amount shall be recoverable by the Court from any party ordered by the decree to pay the
same.

         (3)     Where the liquidator does not succeed, the court-fee shall be payable by him out of other
assets, if any, whenever realised.

        412. Inspection of documents.—(1) After an order for a winding up by or subject to the
supervision of the Court, the Court may make such order for inspection by creditors and contributories
of the company of its documents as the Court thinks just, and any documents in the possession of the
company may be inspected by creditors or contributories accordingly.

     (2)    The order as aforesaid may, in the case of voluntary winding up, be made by the
Commission.
       (3)     Nothing in sub-section (1) shall be taken as excluding or restricting any rights conferred
by any law for the time being in force—

               (a)    on the Federal Government or a Provincial Government; or

               (b)    on the Commission or any officer thereof; or

               (c)    on an y person acting under the authority of any such Government or the
                      Commission or officer thereof; or

               (d)    on the registrar.

        413. Disposal of books and papers of company.—(1) Subject to any rules made under sub-
section (3), when a company has been wound up and is about to be dissolved, the books and papers of
the company and of the liquidators may be disposed of as follows, that is to say—

               (a)    in the case of a winding up by or subject to the supervision of the Court in such way
                      as the Court directs;
               (b)    in the case of a members voluntary winding up, in such way as the company by
                      special resolution directs; and




                                               Page 255 of 401
                    (c) in the case of a creditors ‘ voluntary winding up, in such a way, as the creditors
                        of the company may direct.
        (2)     After the expiry of 1 [five years] from the dissolution of the company no responsibility
shall rest on the company, or the liquidators, or any person to whom the custody of the books and papers
has been committed, by reason of any book or paper not being forthcoming to any person claiming to be
interested therein.
       1
        [(3) The Commission may, as specified by regulations prevent the destruction of books and
papers of a company which has been wound up.]
       (4)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale.
        414. Power of Court to declare dissolution of company void.—(1) Where a company has
been dissolved, the Court may at any time within two years of the date of the dissolution, on an
application being made for the purpose by the liquidator of the company or by any other person who
appears to the Court to be interested, make an order, upon such terms as the Court thinks fit, declaring
the dissolution to have been void, and thereupon such proceedings may be taken as might have been taken
if the company had not been dissolved.
         (2)    It shall be the duty of the person on whose application the order was made, within fifteen
days after the making of the order, to file with the registrar a certified copy of the order, and if that
person fails so to do he shall be punishable a daily penalty specified in level 1 on the standard scale.
       415. Information as to pending liquidations.—(1) Where a company is being wound up, if
the winding up is not concluded within one year after its commencement, the liquidator shall, once in each
half year and at intervals of not more than one hundred and eighty days, or such shorter period as may
be prescribed, until the winding up is concluded, file in the Court or with the registrar, as the case may
be, a statement in the prescribed form and containing the prescribed particulars with respect to the
accounts, proceedings in and position of the liquidation alongwith the report of auditors.

        (2)     Any person stating himself in writing to be a creditor or contributory of the company shall
be entitled, by himself or by his agent, at all reasonable times, on payment of the prescribed fee, to inspect
the statement, and to receive a copy thereof or extract therefrom; but any person untruthfully so stating
himself to be a creditor or contributory shall be deemed to be guilty of an offence under section 182 of
the Pakistan Penal Code, 1860 (Act XLV of 1860), and shall be punishable accordingly on the
application of the liquidator.

        (3)    When the statement is filed in the Court a copy shall simultaneously be filed by the
liquidator with the registrar and shall be kept by him along with the other records of the company.

       (4)     If a liquidator fails to comply with the requirements of this section, he shall be liable to a
penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        416. Payments by liquidator into bank.—(l) Every liquidator of a company shall, in such
manner as may be prescribed, pay and keep all moneys received by him or which become available with
him or come under his control in his capacity as such in a special account opened by him in that behalf
in a scheduled bank in the name of the company.
       1
           Subs. by Act No. XXVII of 2020, s.5.




                                                  Page 256 of 401
         (2)     If any such liquidator at any time retains or allows any money to be not so paid and kept as
aforesaid or utilises otherwise for more than three days a sum exceeding ten thousand rupees or such
other amount as the Court may on the application of the liquidator authorise him to retain then he shall
pay surcharge on the amount so retained at the rate of two percent per month or part thereof and shall be
liable to (a) disallowance of all or such part of his remuneration as the Court may think just; (b) to make
good any loss suffered by the company personally and (c) be removed from the office by the Court of
its own motion or on application of the registrar or a creditor or contributory of the company, and shall
also be liable personally for any loss occasioned by the default.

      (3)      No liquidator shall pay into his personal account or any account other than the liquidation
account of the particular company in liquidation any sums received by him as liquidator.

         (4)     Every liquidator who makes default in complying with the provisions of this section
shall, in addition to his other liabilities, be punishable with imprisonment for a term which may extend to
three years and with fine which may extend to the amount of loss caused to the company or wrongful
gain or five hundred thousand rupees, whichever is higher.

        417. Unclaimed dividends and undistributed assets to be paid to the account maintained
under section 244.—(1) Without prejudice to the provision of section 244, where any company is being
wound up, if the liquidator has in his hands or under his control any money of the company representing
unclaimed dividends or undistributed assets payable to any contributory which have remained unclaimed
or undistributed for one hundred and eighty days after the date on which they became payable the
liquidator shall forthwith deposit the said money in the account to be maintained under section 244 of this
Act and the liquidator shall, on the dissolution of the company, similarly pay into the said account any
money representing unclaimed dividends or undistributed assets in his hands at the date of dissolution.

        (2)    The liquidator shall when making any payment referred to in sub-section (1) furnish to
the Commission a statement in the specified form setting forth in respect of all sums included in such
payment the nature of the sums, the names and last known addresses of the persons entitled to participate
therein, the amount to which each is entitled and the nature of his claim thereto, and such other particulars
as may be specified, alongwith the official receipt of the receipt of the State Bank of Pakistan or National
Bank of Pakistan, as the case may be.

        (3)    The receipt of the State Bank of Pakistan or National Bank of Pakistan, as the case may
be, for any money paid to it under sub-section (1) shall be an effectual discharge of the liquidator in
respect thereof.

        (4)    The liquidator shall, when filing a statement in pursuance of sub-section (1) of section
415 indicate the sum of money which is payable to the State Bank of Pakistan or National Bank of
Pakistan, as the case may be, under sub-section (1) which he has had in his hands or under his control
during the one hundred and eighty days preceding the date to which the said statement is brought down
and shall within fourteen days of the date of filing the said statement, pay that sum into the account
maintained under section 244.




                                                 Page 257 of 401
        (5)  Any person claiming to be entitled to any money paid into the account maintained under
section 244 may apply to the Commission for payment thereof in the manner prescribed under said
section.

        (6)     Any liquidator retaining any money which should have been paid by him into the account
maintained under section 244 shall, in addition to such money, pay surcharge on the amount retained at
the rate of two per cent per month or part thereof and shall also be liable to pay any expenses or losses
occasioned by reason of his default and he shall also be liable to disallowance of all or such part of his
remuneration as the Court may think just and to be removed from his office by the Court on an
application by the Commission.

        418. Books of accounts and other proceedings to be kept by liquidators.—(1) Every
liquidator shall maintain at the registered office proper books of accounts in the manner required in the
case of companies under section 220 and the provisions of that section shall apply mutatis mutandis to
companies being wound up.

      (2)     Every liquidator shall also keep at the registered office proper books and papers in the
manner required under section 338.

       (3)    Any creditor or contributory may, subject to the control of the Court, inspect any books
and papers kept by the liquidator under sub-section (l) and (2).

        (4)   The concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government may alter or add to any
requirements of this section by a general or special order in which case the provisions so altered or added
shall apply.

       (5)    If any liquidator contravenes any provisions of this section, he shall be punishable with
imprisonment for a term, which may extend to two years and with fine, which may extend to five hundred
thousand rupees.

        419. Application of provisions relating to audit.—The provisions of this Act relating to audit
of accounts, rights, powers, duties, liabilities and report of auditors of companies and the duties of
companies and their officers as applicable to companies shall apply mutatis mutandis to companies being
wound up, books of account and books and papers kept by the liquidator and his statements of accounts
subject as follows—

               (a)     all reference therein to officers of the company shall include references to the
                       liquidator;

               (b)     the appointment of auditor shall be made by the Court, members or creditors, as the
                       case may be, who appointed the liquidator, who shall also fix his remuneration
                       which shall be paid by the liquidator from the funds of the company:

                               Provided that if no appointment of auditor is made by the members or
                       creditors, as the case may be, the liquidator shall apply to the Commission who
                       shall make the appointment and fix his remuneration.




                                                Page 258 of 401
        420. Enforcement of duty of liquidator to make return.—(1) If any liquidator who has
made any default in complying with any provision of this Act or committed any other irregularity in the
performance of his duties fails to make good the default or undo the irregularity, as the case may be,
within thirty days after the service on him of a notice requiring him to do so, the Court may of its own
motion or on an application made to it by any contributory or creditor of the company or by the registrar,
make an order directing the liquidator and any other person involved to make good the default or undo
the irregularity or otherwise make amends as the circumstances may require, within such time as may be
specified in the order:

       Provided that, where an application under this section is made by the registrar, the Court shall
dispose of the same within fourteen days of the submission thereof.

       (2)     Any such order may provide that all costs of, and incidental to, the application shall be
borne by the liquidator.

       (3)    Nothing in this section shall be taken to prejudice the operation of any enactment
imposing penalty on a liquidator in respect of any such default or irregularity as aforesaid.

        421. Notification that a company is in liquidation.—(1) Where a company is being wound
up, whether by or under the supervision of the Court or voluntarily, every advertisement, notice, invoice,
order for goods, business letter or other communication or document issued by or on behalf of the
company or a liquidator of the company or a receiver or manager of the property of the company, being
a document on or in which the name of the company appears, shall contain a statement that the company
is being wound up and about the mode of its winding up.

       (2)    If default is made in complying with this section, the company and any of the following
persons who authorises or permits the default, namely, any officer of the company, any liquidator of the
company and any receiver or manager, shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

        422. Court or person before whom affidavit may be sworn.—(1) Any affidavit required
to be sworn under the provisions or for the purposes of this Part may be sworn—

               (a)     in Pakistan, before any Court, judge, or person lawfully authorised to take and
                       receive affidavits; and

               (b)     elsewhere before a Pakistan Consul or Vice-Consul.

        (2)     All courts, judges, justices, commissioners, and persons acting judicially in Pakistan shall
take judicial notice of the seal or stamp or signature, as the case may be, of any such court, judge, person,
Consul or Vice-Consul, attached, appended or subscribed to any such affidavit or to any other document
to be used for the purposes of this Part.

       423. Power to make rules.—(1) The Supreme Court may, in consultation with the Courts
or, where the Supreme Court advises the Federal Government to do so, the Federal Government may in
consultation with the Courts, from time to time, make rules, consistent with this Act, concerning the mode
of proceedings to be held for winding up a company in a Court and in the courts subordinate thereto, and



                                                 Page 259 of 401
for voluntary winding up (both members and creditors), for the holding of meetings of creditors and
members in connection with proceedings under section 279 of this Act, and for giving effect to the
provisions as to the reduction of the capital and the scheme of reorganisation of a company and generally
for all applications to be made to the Court and all other proceedings or matters coming within the purview
or powers or duties of the Court under the provisions of this Act and shall make rules providing for all
matters relating to the winding up of companies which, by this Act, are to be prescribed.

        (2)      Without prejudice to the generality of the foregoing powers, such rules may enable or
require all or any of the powers and duties conferred and imposed on the Court by this Act in respect of
the matters following, to be exercised or performed by the official liquidator, and subject to control of the
Court, that is to say, the powers and duties of the Court in respect of—

               (a)     holding and conducting meetings to ascertain the wishes of creditors and
                       contributories;

               (b)     settling lists of the contributories and rectifying the register of members where
                       required, and collecting and applying the assets;

               (c)     requiring delivery of property or documents to the liquidator;

               (d)     making calls;

               (e)     fixing a time within which debts and claims must by proved:

                               Provided that the official liquidator shall not, without the special leave of
                       the Court, rectify the register of members, and shall not make any call without the
                       special leave of the Court.

        424. Inactive Company.—(1) Where a company, other than a listed company, is formed for a
future project or to hold an asset or intellectual property and has no significant accounting transaction,
such a company or an inactive company may make an application to the registrar in such manner as may
be specified for obtaining the status of an inactive company.

       Explanation.—For the purposes of this section—

               (a)     “inactive company” means a company, other than a listed company, which has not
                       been carrying on any business or operation, or has not made any significant
                       accounting transaction during the last two financial years;

               (b)     “significant accounting transaction” means any transaction other than—

                       (i)     payments made by it to fulfill the requirements of this Act or any other law;

                       (ii)    allotment of shares to fulfill the requirements of this Act; and

                       (iii)   payments for maintenance of its office and records.




                                                 Page 260 of 401
        (2)    The registrar on consideration of the application shall allow the status of inactive company
to the applicant and issue a certificate in such form as may be specified to that effect.

        (3)     The registrar shall maintain a register of inactive companies in such form as may be
specified.

        (4)    In case of a company which has not filed financial statements or annual returns for two
financial years consecutively, the registrar shall issue a notice to that company and enter the name of
such company in the register maintained for inactive companies.

        (5)     An inactive company shall have such minimum number of directors, file such
documents as may be specified by the Commission through regulations to the registrar to retain its inactive
status in the register and pay such annual fee as prescribed in the Seventh Schedule and may become an
active company on an application made in this behalf accompanied by such documents as may be
specified by the Commission through regulations on payment of such fee as prescribed in the Seventh
Schedule.

      (6)    The registrar shall strike off the name of an inactive company from the register of inactive
companies, which has failed to comply with the requirements of this section.

        (7)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale and in case false or misleading information
has been given to obtain the status of an inactive company, the directors and other officers of the company
in default shall be liable to imprisonment for a term which may extend to three years.

       425. Registrar may strike defunct company off register.—(1) Where the registrar has
reasonable cause to believe that a company is not carrying on business or is not in operation, he may
send to the company by post a letter inquiring whether the company is carrying on business or is in
operation.

        (2)   If the registrar does not within fifteen days of sending the letter receive any answer thereto,
he may send to the company by registered post another letter referring to the first letter, and stating that
no answer thereto has been received and that, if an answer is not received to the second letter within thirty
days from the date thereof, a notice will be published in the newspaper with a view to striking the name
of the company off the register.

        (3)    If the registrar either receives an answer from the company to the effect that it is not
carrying on business or is not in operation, or does not within fifteen days after sending the second letter
receive any answer, he may publish in the newspaper having wide circulation, and send to the company
by post a notice that, at the expiration of thirty days from the date of that notice, the name of the company
mentioned therein will, unless cause is shown to the contrary, be struck off the register and the company
will be dissolved.

        (4)     Without prejudice to any other provisions, if, in any case where a company is being wound
up, the registrar has reasonable cause to believe either that no liquidator is acting or that the affairs of the
company are fully wound up, and the returns required to be made by the liquidator have not been made



                                                  Page 261 of 401
for a period of three consecutive months after notice by the registrar demanding the returns has been
sent by post to the company, or to the liquidator at his last known place of business, the registrar may
publish in the newspaper having wide circulation and send to the company a like notice as is provided in
the last preceding sub-section.

        (5)     At the expiration of the time mentioned in the notice the registrar may, unless cause to the
contrary is previously shown by the company or the liquidator, as the case may be, strike its name off the
register, and shall publish notice thereof in the official Gazette, and, on the publication in the official
Gazette of this notice, the company shall be dissolved:

       Provided that the liability criminal, civil or otherwise (if any) of every director, officer, liquidator
and member of the company shall continue and may be enforced as if the company had not been
dissolved:

      Provided further that nothing in this section shall affect the powers of the Court to wind up a
company the name of which has been struck off the register.

         (6)     If a company or any member or creditor thereof feels aggrieved by the company having
been struck off the register, the Court, on the application of the company or a member or creditor made
before the expiry of three years from the publication in the official Gazette of the notice aforesaid, may,
if satisfied that the company was at the time of the striking off carrying on business or in operation, or
otherwise that it is just that the company be restored to the register, order the name of the company to be
restored to the register and, upon the filing of a certified copy of such order with the registrar, the company
shall be deemed to have continued in existence as if its name had not been struck off, and the Court may
by the order give such directions and make such provisions as seem just for placing the company and all
other persons in the same position as nearly as may be as if the name of the company had not been struck
off.

        (7)      A letter or notice under this section may be addressed to the company at its registered
office, or if no office has been registered, to the care of some director, chief executive or other officer of
the company whose name and address are known to the registrar or if no such address is known to the
registrar, may be sent to each of the persons who subscribed the memorandum, addressed to him at the
address mentioned in the memorandum.

        (8)      The provisions of this section shall not apply to a company which has any known assets
and liabilities, and such company shall be proceeded against for winding up.

         (9)    If due to inadvertence or otherwise the name of any company which has any assets and
liabilities or which has been in operation or carrying on business or about whose affairs any enquiry or
investigation may be necessary has been struck off the register, the registrar may, after such enquiries as
he may deem fit, move the Commission to have the name of the company restored to the register and
thereupon the Commission may, if satisfied that it will be just and proper so to do, order the name of the
company to be restored and shall exercise the powers of the Court in the manner provided in sub-section
(6).




                                                  Page 262 of 401
       (10) The provisions of this section shall mutatis mutandis apply to a company established
outside Pakistan but having a place of business in Pakistan as they apply to a company registered in
Pakistan.

        426. Easy exit of a defunct company.—(1) A company which ceases to operate and has no
known assets and liabilities, may apply to the registrar in the specified manner, seeking to strike its name
off the register of companies on payment of such fee mentioned in the Seventh Schedule.

        (2)     After examination of the application, the registrar on being satisfied, may publish a notice
in terms of sub-section (3) of section 425 of this Act, in the Official Gazette stating that at the expiration
of ninety days from the date of that notice, unless cause is shown to the contrary, the name of the applicant
company will be struck off the register of companies and the company will be dissolved. Such notice shall
also be posted on the Commission’ s website.

        (3)     At the expiration of the time mentioned in the notice, the registrar may, unless any
objection to the contrary is received by him, strike its name off the register, and shall publish a notice
thereof in the official Gazette, and, on the publication of such notice, the company shall stand dissolved:

        Provided that the liability criminal, civil or otherwise (if any) of every director, officer and member
of the company shall continue and may be enforced as if the company had not been dissolved.

                                                  PART XI

                         WINDING UP OF UNREGISTERED COMPANIES

       427. Meaning of “unregistered company”.—For the purposes of this Part, the expression
“unregistered company” shall not include a railway company incorporated by Act of Parliament of the
United Kingdom or by a Pakistan law, nor a company registered under any previous Companies Act or
under this Act, but save as aforesaid, shall include any partnership, association or company consisting of
more than seven members.

       428. Winding up of unregistered companies.—(1) Subject to the provisions of this Part, any
unregistered company may be wound up under this Act, and all the provisions of this Act with respect to
winding up shall apply to an unregistered company, with the following exceptions and additions—

               (a)     an unregistered company shall, for the purpose of determining the Court having
                       jurisdiction in the matter of the winding up, be deemed to be registered in the
                       Province where its principal place of business is situated or, if it has a principal
                       place of business situate in more than one Province then in each Province where
                       it has a principal place of business; and the principal place of business situate in
                       the Province in which proceedings are being instituted shall, for all the purposes of
                       the winding up, be deemed to be the registered office of the company;

               (b)     no unregistered company shall be wound up under this Act voluntarily or subject
                       to supervision of the Court;




                                                  Page 263 of 401
(c)   the circumstances in which an unregistered company may be wound up are as
      follows (that is to say) —
      (i)      if the company is dissolved, or has ceased to carry on business or is carrying
               on business only for the purpose of winding up its affairs;

      (ii)     if the company is unable to pay its debts;

      (iii)    if the Court is of opinion that it is just and equitable that the company should
               be wound up;

(d)   an unregistered company shall, for the purposes of this Act, be deemed to be unable
      to pay its debts—

      (i)     if a creditor, by assignment or otherwise, to whom the company is indebted
              in a sum exceeding fifty thousand rupees then due, has served on the
              company, by leaving at its principal place of business, or by delivering to the
              secretary, or some director, manager or principal officer of the company, or
              by otherwise serving in such manner as the Court may approve or direct, a
              demand under his hand requiring the company to pay the sum so due, and
              the company has for thirty days after the service of the demand neglected to
              pay the sum, or to secure or compound for it to the satisfaction of the
              creditor;

      (ii)    if any suit or other legal proceeding has been instituted against any member
              for any debt or demand due or claimed to be due, from the company or from
              him in his character of member, and notice in writing of the institution of the
              suit or other legal proceeding having been served on the company by leaving
              the same at its principal place of business or by delivering it to the secretary,
              or some director, manager or principal officer of the company or by
              otherwise serving the same in such manner as the Court may approve or
              direct, the company has not within fifteen days after service of the notice
              paid, secured or compounded for the debt or demand, or procured the suit or
              other legal proceeding to be stayed, or indemnified the defendant to his
              reasonable satisfaction against the suit or other legal proceeding, and against
              all costs, damages and expenses to be incurred by him by reason of the same;

      (iii) if execution or other process issued on a decree or order obtained in any
            Court or other competent authority in favour of a creditor against the
            company, or any member thereof as such, or any person authorised to be
            sued as nominal defendant on behalf of the company, is returned unsatisfied
            in whole or in part;

      (iv) if it is otherwise proved to the satisfaction of the Court that the company is
           unable to pay its debts; and, in determining whether a company is unable to
           pay its debts, the Court shall take into account the contingent and prospective
           liabilities of the company and its solvency.



                                  Page 264 of 401
       (2)     Nothing in this Part shall affect the operation of any enactment which provides for any
partnership, association or company being wound up, or being wound up as a company or as an
unregistered company, under any previous Companies Act:

     Provided that references in any such enactment to any provision contained in any previous
Companies Act shall be read as references to the corresponding provision (if any) of this Act.

        (3)     Where a company incorporated outside Pakistan which has been carrying on business
in Pakistan ceases to carry on business in Pakistan, it may be wound up as an unregistered company under
this Part, notwithstanding that it has been dissolved or otherwise ceased to exist as a company under or
by virtue of the laws of the country under which it was incorporated.

         429. Contributories in winding up of unregistered companies.—(1) In the event of an
unregistered company being wound up, every person shall be deemed to be a contributory who is liable
to pay or contribute to the payment of any debt or liability of the company or to pay or contribute to the
payment of any sum for the adjustment of the rights of the members among themselves, or to pay or
contribute to the payment of the cost and expenses of winding up the company, and every contributory
shall be liable to contribute to the assets of the company all sums due from him in respect of any such
liability as aforesaid.

       (2)     In the event of any contributory dying or being adjudged insolvent, the provisions of this
Act with respect to the legal representatives and heirs of deceased contributories, and to the assignees of
insolvent contributories, shall apply.

       430. Power to stay or restrain proceedings.—The provisions of this Act with respect to
staying and restraining suits and legal proceedings against a company at any time after the presentation
of a petition for winding up and before the making of a winding up order shall, in the case of an
unregistered company where the application to stay or restrain is by a creditor; extend to suits and legal
proceedings against any contributory of the company.

        431. Suits stayed on winding up order.—Where an order has been made for winding up an
unregistered company, no suit or other legal proceedings shall be proceeded with or commenced against
any contributory of the company in respect of any debt of the company, except by leave of the Court, and
subject to such terms as the Court may impose.

        432. Directions as to property in certain cases.—If an unregistered company has no power
to sue and be sued in a common name, or if for any reason it appears expedient, the Court may, by the
winding up order, or by any subsequent order, direct that all or any part of the property, movable or
immovable, including all interests and rights in, to and out of property, movable and immovable, and
including obligations and actionable claims as may belong to the company or to trustees on its behalf, is
to vest in the official liquidator by his official name and thereupon the property or any part thereof
specified in the order shall vest accordingly; and the official liquidator may, after giving such indemnity
(if any) as the Court may direct, bring or defend in his official name any suit or other legal proceeding
relating to that property, or necessary to be brought or defended for the purposes of effectually winding
up the company and recovering its property.




                                                Page 265 of 401
        433. Provisions of this part cumulative.—The provisions of this Part with respect to
unregistered companies shall be in addition to, and not in derogation of, any provisions hereinbefore, in
this Act contained with respect to winding up of companies by the Court and the Court or official
liquidator may exercise any powers or do any act in the cases of unregistered companies which might
be exercised or done by it or him in winding up companies formed and registered under this Act; but an
unregistered company shall not, except in the event of its being wound up, be deemed to be a company
under this Act, and then only to the extent provided by this Part.
                                                        PART XII

                               COMPANIES ESTABLISHED OUTSIDE PAKISTAN

      PROVISIONS AS TO ESTABLISHMENT OF PLACES OF BUSINESS IN PAKISTAN

        434. Application of this Part to foreign companies.—This Part shall apply to all foreign
companies, that is to say, companies incorporated or formed outside Pakistan which, after the
commencement of this Act, establish a place of business within Pakistan or which have, before the
commencement of this Act, established a place of business in Pakistan and continue to have an
established either a place of business within Pakistan or conduct business in Pakistan through an agent
or any other means at the commencement of this Act.
        435. Documents to be delivered to registrar by foreign companies.—(1) Every foreign
company which, after the commencement of this Act, establishes a place of business in Pakistan shall,
within thirty days of the establishment of the place of business or conduct of business activity, deliver
to the registrar—

                    (a)        a certified copy of the charter, statute or memorandum and articles of the company,
                               or other instrument constituting or defining the constitution of the company, and
                               if the instrument is not written in the English or Urdu language, a certified
                               translation thereof in the English or Urdu language;

                    (b)        the full address of the registered or principal office of the company;

                    (c)        a list of the directors, chief executive and secretary (if any) of the company;
                    1
                        [(d)   a return showing the full present and former names and surnames, present and
                               former nationality, full address in Pakistan and such other particulars, as may be
                               specified, of the principal officer of the company in Pakistan by whatever name
                               called; and
                    (e)        the full present and former names and surnames, full addresses and such other
                               particulars as may be specified of some one or more persons resident in Pakistan
                               authorised to accept on behalf of the company service of process and any notice
                               or other document required to be served on the company together with his consent
                               to do so; and]
                    (f)
                  the full address of that office of the company in Pakistan which is to be deemed its
                  principal place of business in Pakistan of the company.
___________________________________________________________________________________
1Subs.by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.23




                                                        Page 266 of 401
       Explanation. — For the purposes of this section the term “conduct of business activity” includes
any business to be undertaken by a foreign company by virtue of its memorandum and articles of
association or as licensed or authorized by any law.
         (2) The list referred to in clause (c) of sub-section (1) shall contain the following particulars,
that is to say—

                   (a)        with respect to each director 1[and chief executive] —

                              (i)       in the case of an individual, his present and former name and surname in
                                        full, his usual residential address, his nationality, and if that nationality is
                                        not the nationality of origin, his nationality of origin, and his business
                                        occupation, if any, and any other directorship which he holds;

                              (ii)      in the case of a body corporate, its corporate name and registered or
                                        principal office; and the full name, address, nationality and nationality of
                                        origin, if different from that nationality, of each of its director;

                   (b)        with respect to the secretary, or where there are joint secretaries, with respect to
                              each of them—

                              (i)       in the case of an individual, his present and former name and surname, and
                                        his usual residential address;

                              (ii)      in the case of a body corporate, its corporate name and registered or
                                        principal office:

                                                Provided that, where all the partner in a firm are joint secretaries of
                                        the company, the name and principal office of the firm may be stated
                                        instead of the particulars mentioned in clause (b).

        (3)     Every foreign company, other than a company mentioned in sub-section (1) shall, if it has
not delivered to the registrar before the commencement of this Act the documents and particulars
specified in section 451 of the Companies Ordinance, 1984 (XLVII of 1984), shall continue to be subject
to the obligation to deliver those documents and particulars and be liable to penalties in accordance with
the provisions of that Ordinance.
       1
       [(4) The registrar shall maintain a register of foreign companies on paper or in any electronic
form under this Act in such form and manner as may be specified.]



       1
           Ins. and added by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.23




                                                            Page 267 of 401
       436. Return to be delivered to registrar by foreign companies whose documents
altered.—If any alteration is made or occurs in—

               (a)     the charter, statute or memorandum and articles of a foreign company or any such
                       instrument as is referred to in section 435;

               (b)     the address of the registered or principal office of the company;

               (c)     the directors, chief executive or secretary or in the particulars contained in the
                       list referred to in section 435;

               (d)     the principal officer referred to in section 435;

               (e)     the name or addresses or other particulars of the persons authorised to accept
                       service of process, notices and other documents on behalf of the company as
                       referred to in the preceding section 435, or

               (f)     the principal place of business of the company in Pakistan;

the company shall, within thirty days of the alteration, deliver to the registrar for registration a return
containing the specified particulars of the alteration and in the case of change in persons authorised to
accept service of process, notices and other documents on behalf of the company, also his consent to do
so.

        437. Accounts of foreign companies.—(1) Every foreign company shall in every year make
out and file with the registrar, together with a list of Pakistani members and debenture- holders and of
the places of business of the company in Pakistan—

               (a)     such number of copies of financial statements, not being less than three, as may be
                       specified, in such form, audited by such person, containing such particulars and
                       including or having annexed or attached thereto such documents (including, in
                       particular documents relating to every subsidiary of the company) as nearly as may
                       be as under the provisions of this Act it would, if it were a company formed and
                       registered under this Act, be required to file in accordance with the provisions of
                       this Act, in respect of the company’s operations in Pakistan as if such operations
                       had been conducted by a separate public company formed and registered in
                       Pakistan under this Act; and

               (b)     in a case where, by the law for the time being in force of the country in which the
                       company is incorporated, such company is required to file with the public authority
                       an annual statement of financial position and profit and loss accounts, also such
                       number of copies of that statement of financial position and profit and loss account
                       together with any documents annexed thereto as may be specified, and if the same
                       is not in the English language a certified translation thereof in the English language;
                       or




                                                 Page 268 of 401
               (c)     in a case where a company is not required to file with the public authority of the
                       country in which the company is incorporated an annual statement of financial
                       position and profit and loss account as referred to in clause (b), the specified number
                       of copies, not being less than three, of the statement of financial position and profit
                       and loss account and the report of auditors and other documents annexed thereto,
                       in such form and manner as under the provisions of this Act it would, if it had been
                       a public company within the meaning of this Act, be required to make out and lay
                       before the company in general meeting.

        (2)    The period within which the documents, returns or reports referred to in sub-section (1) are
to be filed with the registrar shall be a period of forty five days from the date of submission of such
documents or returns to the public authority of the country of incorporation or within one hundred and
eighty days of the date up to which the relevant accounts are made up, whichever is earlier.

       438.    Certain obligations of foreign companies.—Every foreign company shall—

               (a)     maintain at its principal place of business in Pakistan, or, if it has only one place of
                       business in Pakistan, in that place of business, a register of Pakistani members and
                       debenture-holders, directors and officers, which shall be open to inspection and
                       copies thereof supplied as in the case of similar registers maintained by a company
                       under this Act;

               (b)     in every prospectus inviting subscriptions for its shares or debentures in Pakistan,
                       state the country in which the company is incorporated;

               (c)     conspicuously exhibit on the outside of every place where it carries on business in
                       Pakistan the name of the company and the country in which the company is
                       incorporated in letter easily legible in English or Urdu characters and also, if any
                       place where it carries on business is beyond the local limits of the ordinary original
                       civil jurisdiction of a Court, in the characters of one of the vernacular language
                       used in that place;

               (d)     cause the name of the company and of the country in which the company is
                       incorporated mentioned in legible English or Urdu characters in all bill-heads and
                       letter papers, and in all notices, advertisements, documents and other official
                       publications of the company; and

               (e)     if the liability of the members of the company is limited, cause notice of that fact
                       to be stated in legible English or Urdu characters in every prospectus inviting
                       subscriptions for its shares, and in all bill-heads and letter papers, notices,
                       advertisements and other official publications of the company in Pakistan, and
                       to be exhibited on the outside of every place where it carries on business in
                       Pakistan.

     439. Power of the Commission to require information from foreign companies.—(1) The
Commission may, at any time, call upon a foreign company to furnish information of shareholding




                                                 Page 269 of 401
including beneficial ownership or such other information or document, as may be required for the
purposes of this Act or in connection with any inspection, inquiry or investigation and it shall be the duty
of the company and its officers to furnish such information or document within specified time.

        (2)   Any person who fails to provide any information or document required under sub-section
(1) shall commit an offence liable to a penalty of level 3 on standard scale.

       440. Service on foreign company.—Any process, notice or other document required to be
served on such company as is referred to in this Part shall be deemed to be sufficiently served if addressed
to any person whose name has been so filed with the registrar as aforesaid and left at or sent by post to
the address which has been so filed:

       Provided that—

               (a)     where any such company makes default in delivering to the registrar the name
                       and address of a person resident in Pakistan who is authorised to accept on behalf
                       of the company service of process, notices or other documents; or

               (b)     if at any time all the persons whose names and addresses have been so filed are
                       dead or have ceased to so reside, or refuse to accept service on behalf of the
                       company or for any reason cannot be served;

a document may be served on the company against an acknowledgement or by post or courier service
to, any place of business established by the company in Pakistan or through electronic means or in any
other manner as may be specified.

         441. Company’s failure to comply with this part not to affect its liability under
contracts.— Any failure by a foreign company to comply with any of the requirement or section 435 or
section 436 shall not affect the validity of any contract, dealing or transaction entered into by the
company or its liability to be sued in respect thereof; but the company shall not be entitled to bring any
suit, claim any set-off, make any counter-claim or institute any legal proceeding in respect of any such
contract, dealing or transaction, until it has complied with the provisions of section 435 and section 436.

       442. Provisions relating to names, inquiries to apply to foreign companies.—The
provisions of sections 10 to 13 relating to names and changes in the names of companies shall, as far as
applicable, also apply to companies to which this Part applies; and the power of inspection, inquiries and




                                                Page 270 of 401
investigation conferred by this Act on the registrar and the Commission in respect of companies shall
likewise extend to such companies.

       443. Intimation of ceasing to have place of business to be given.—(1) Any company to
which this Part applies shall at least thirty days before it intends to cease to have any place of business
in Pakistan, —

               (a)     give a notice of such intention to the registrar; and

               (b)     publish a notice of such intention at least in two daily newspapers circulating in the
                       Province or Provinces in which such place or places of business are situate.

        (2)     As from the date of intention to cease to have any place of business in Pakistan stated in
the notice referred to in sub-section (1), unless the said date is by a similar notice altered, the obligation
of the company to delivery any document to the registrar shall cease, provided it has no other place of
business in Pakistan.

        444. Penalties.—(1)If any foreign company fails to comply with any of the provisions of this
Part, except section 439, the company, and every officer or agent of the company who authorises or
permits the default, shall be liable to a penalty of level 1 on the standard scale.

         (2)   If a foreign company or any of its directors or other persons as referred in section 439
fails to comply with the provisions of said section, shall be liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard
scale.

       445.    Interpretation of provisions of this Part.—For the purposes of this Part—

               (a)     the expression “certified” means certified in the specified manner to be a true copy
                       or a correct translation;

               (b)     the expression “director”, in relation to a company includes any person in
                       accordance with whose directives or instructions the directors of the company are
                       accustomed to act;

               (c)     the expression “place of business” includes a branch, management, share transfer
                       or registration office, factory, mine or other fixed place of business, but does not
                       include an agency unless the agent has, and habitually exercise, a general authority
                       to negotiate and conclude contracts on behalf of the company or maintains a stock
                       of merchandise belonging to the company from which he regularly fills orders on its
                       behalf:

               Provided that: —

                       (i)     a company shall not be deemed to have an established place of business in
                               Pakistan merely because it carries on business dealings in Pakistan through




                                                 Page 271 of 401
                              a bona fide broker or general commission agent acting in the ordinary
                              course of his business as such;

                       (ii)   the fact that a company has a subsidiary which is incorporated, resident, or
                              carrying on business in Pakistan (whether through an established place of
                              business or otherwise) shall not of itself constitute the place of business of
                              that subsidiary an established place of business of the company; and

               (d)     the expression “secretary” includes any person occupying the position of
                       secretary, by whatever name called.

                                             PROSPECTUS

        446. Issue of prospectus.—No person shall issue, circulate or distribute in Pakistan any
prospectus offering for subscription securities of a foreign company or soliciting deposits of money,
whether the company has or has not established, or when formed will or will not establish, a place of
business in Pakistan unless authorised to do so by the Commission under the relevant law or as may be
specified.

        447. Restriction on canvassing for sale of securities.—(1) No person shall go from house to
house offering securities of a foreign company for subscription or purchase to the public or any member
of the public.

       Explanation. —In this sub-section, “house” shall not include an office used for business
purposes.

       (2)      Any contravention or default in complying with requirement of this section shall be an
offence liable to a penalty of level 3 on the standard scale.

       448. Registration of charges.—(1) The provision of sections 100 to 112 both inclusive, shall
extend to charges on properties in Pakistan which are created, and to charges on property in Pakistan
which is acquired, by a foreign company which has an established place of business in Pakistan:

      Provided that references in the said sections to the registered office of the company shall be
deemed to be reference to the principal place of business in Pakistan of the company:

        Provided further that, where a charge is created outside Pakistan or the completion of the
acquisition of property takes place outside Pakistan, clause (a) of the proviso to sub-section (1) and sub-
section (4) of section 100 shall apply as if the property wherever situated were situated outside Pakistan.

        (2)     Where a company to which this section applies creates, or has created at any time before
establishing a place of business in Pakistan, a charge on any property otherwise registerable under this
Act it shall register the same with the registrar in accordance with the provisions of this Act—

               (a)     within thirty days of the establishment of a place of business in Pakistan; or




                                                Page 272 of 401
               (b)     if the charge was created before the commencement of this Act and subsisted
                       immediately before such commencements, within ninety days thereof.

        449. Notice of appointment of receiver.—The provisions of section 113 and 114 shall mutatis
mutandis apply to the case of all foreign companies having an established place of business in Pakistan and
the provisions of section 220 shall apply to such companies to the extent of requiring them to keep at
their principal place of business in Pakistan the books of account required by that section with respect to
money received and expended, sales and purchases made, and assets and liabilities in relation to its
business in Pakistan:

        Provided that references in the said section to the registered office of the company shall be deemed
to be reference to the principal place of business in Pakistan of the company.

       450. Notice of liquidation.—(1) If a foreign company having an established place of business
in Pakistan goes into liquidation in the country of its incorporation, it shall—

               (a)     within thirty days give notice thereof to the registrar, and simultaneously publish
                       a notice at least in two daily newspapers circulating in the Province or Provinces
                       or the part of Pakistan not forming part of a Province, as the case may be, in which
                       its place or places of business are situated and furnish to the registrar within thirty
                       days of the conclusion of the liquidation proceedings all returns relating to the
                       liquidation and the liquidation account in respect of such portion of the
                       company’s affairs as relates to its business in Pakistan; and
               (b)     cause, in legible letters, a statement to appear, on every invoice, order, bill-head,
                       letter paper, notice of other publication in Pakistan, to the effect that the company
                       is being wound up in the country of its incorporation.

        (2)     Where a company to which this section applies has been dissolved, or has otherwise ceased
to exist, no person shall, after the date of such dissolution or cessation, carry on, or purport to carry on,
any business in Pakistan in the name or on behalf of such company.

         (3)     Nothing in this section shall be construed as preventing a company to which this section
applies from being wound up in Pakistan in accordance with the provisions of this Act, notwithstanding
that it has neither been dissolved nor otherwise ceased to exist in the country of its incorporation.

                                                PART XIII

                                                GENERAL

       451. Certification of Shariah compliant companies and Shariah compliant securities.—
(1) No company shall claim that it is a Shariah compliant company unless it has been declared Shariah
compliant in such form and manner as may be specified.

        (2)    No person shall claim that a security, whether listed or not, is Shariah compliant unless
it has been declared Shariah compliant in such form and manner as may be specified.



                                                 Page 273 of 401
       (3)      For the purposes of sub-section (1) and (2), no company shall appoint or engage any
person for Shariah compliance, Shariah advisory, or Shariah audit unless that person meets the fit and
proper criteria and fulfills such terms and conditions as may be specified:

        Provided that the person already appointed or engaged by a company for the purpose of sub-
section 3 shall have 180 days to meet the fit and proper criteria and fulfill such terms and conditions as
may be specified.

        (4)      Every person who is responsible for contravention of this section shall without prejudice
to other liabilities be liable to a penalty not exceeding level 3 on the standard scale.


       (5)     Nothing in sub-section (1) and (3) shall apply to a banking company or any other company
which is required to follow the Shariah governance framework prescribed by the State Bank of Pakistan.

        452. Companies’ Global Register of Beneficial Ownership.—(1) Every substantial
shareholder or officer of a company incorporated under the Company law, who is citizen of Pakistan
within the meaning of the Citizenship Act, 1951 (II of 1951), including dual citizenship holder whether
residing in Pakistan or not having shareholding in a foreign company or body corporate shall report to
the company his shareholding or any other interest as may be notified by the Commission, on a specified
form within thirty days of holding such position or interest.

         Explanation.—For the purposes of this section the expression “foreign company” means a
company or body corporate incorporated or registered in any form, outside Pakistan regardless of the fact
that it has a place of business or conducts any business activity or has a liaison office in Pakistan or not.

        (2)     The company shall submit all the aforesaid information received by it during the year to
the registrar along with the annual return.

        (3)    Any investment in securities or other interest as may be notified in sub-section (1) by a
company incorporated under this Act, in a foreign company or body corporate or any other interest shall
also be reported to the registrar along with the annual return.

        (4)    All the above information shall be reported to the registrar through a special return on a
specified form within sixty days from the commencement of this Act and thereafter in accordance with
the sub-section (2).

        (5)     Any contravention or default in complying with requirements of this section shall be an
offence liable to a fine of level 1 on the standard scale and the registrar shall make an order specifying
time to provide information under sub-section (1) and (3).

        (6)      Any person who fails to comply with the direction given under sub-section (5) by the
registrar shall be punishable with imprisonment which may extend to three years and with fine upto five
hundred thousand rupees or both.

       (7)     The Commission shall keep record of the information in the Companies’ Global Register
of Beneficial Ownership.



                                                 Page 274 of 401
       (8)    The Commission shall provide the information maintained under sub-section (7) to the
Federal Board of Revenue or to any other agency, authority and court.

       453. Prevention of offences relating to fraud, money laundering and terrorist
financing.___(1) Every officer of a company shall endeavor to prevent the commission of any fraud,
offences of money laundering including predicated offences as provided in the Anti-Money Laundering
Act, 2010 (VII of 2010) with respect to affairs of the company and shall take adequate measures for the
purpose.

        (2)   Whosoever fails to comply with the provisions of this section shall be liable to
punishment of imprisonment for a term which may extend to three years and with fine which may extend
to one hundred million rupees:

        Provided that where any such officer has taken all reasonable measures available under the
applicable laws within his capacity to prevent commission of such offence, shall not be liable under this
section.

       Provided further that the punishment provided under this section shall be in addition to any
punishment attracted due to active involvement of such officer in commission of an offence of money
laundering under Anti- Money Laundering Act, 2010 (VII of 2010).

        454. Free Zone Company.—(1) A company incorporated for the purpose of carrying on
business in the export processing zone or an area notified by the Federal Government as free zone, shall
be eligible to such exemptions from the requirements of this Act as may be notified in terms of section
459.

        (2)    The Commission may, for the protection of foreign investors and to secure foreign
investment, restrict the disclosure of information maintained by the registrar regarding promoters,
shareholders and directors of the company incorporated under sub-section (1), who are foreign nationals
unless such disclosure of information is authorized by the company in writing:

        Provided that the restriction of non-disclosure contained in this section shall not apply to the
revenue authorities collecting tax, duties and levies or requirement or obligation under international
law, treaty or commitment of the Government.

        (3)    A company formed for the purposes stated in sub-section (1) may be dispensed with the
words “Private Limited” or “Limited” as the case may be, and called as the “Free Zone Company” having
the parenthesis and alphabets “FZC” at the end of its name.

      (4)      A Free Zone Company shall pay the annual renewal fee as specified in the Seventh
Schedule.

        455. Filing of documents through intermediaries.—(1) A person may, for the purpose of
filing of documents under this Act, avail services of intermediary as may be specified.




                                               Page 275 of 401
        (2)     An intermediary intending to provide services in terms of sub-section (1) must possess
the requisite qualification and be registered with the Commission in the manner as may be specified.

       (3)   The registration as intermediary under this section shall be liable to be cancelled by the
Commission on such grounds and in such manner as may be specified after providing an opportunity of
being heard.

       456. Acceptance of advances by real estate companies engaged in real estate projects.—
(1) Notwithstanding anything contained in this Act or any other law, any company which invites
advances from public for real estate project shall comply with the provisions of this section in addition to
those provided in the other provisions of this Act.

       (2)     A company engaged in real estate project shall___

               (a)     not announce any real estate project, unless it has obtained the approval of the
                       Commission and all necessary approvals, permissions or NOCs etc., of the
                       concerned authorities required as per applicable general, special and local laws,
                       having jurisdiction over area under which the real estate project is being developed
                       or undertaken to the satisfaction of the Commission and subject to such additional
                       disclosure requirements as may be notified;

               (b)     not make any publication or advertisement of real estate projects, unless it has
                       obtained the approval of the Commission and all necessary approvals, permissions
                       or NOCs etc., of the concerned authorities required as per applicable general,
                       special and local laws, having jurisdiction over area under which the real estate
                       project is being developed or undertaken to the satisfaction of the Commission and
                       subject to such additional disclosure requirements as may be notified;

               (c)     not accept any advances or deposits in any form whatsoever against any booking to
                       sell or offer for sale or invite persons to purchase any land, apartment or building,
                       as the case may be, in any real estate project or part of it, unless it has obtained the
                       approval of the Commission and all necessary approvals, permissions or NOCs, of
                       the concerned authorities required as per applicable general, special and local laws,
                       having jurisdiction over area under which the real estate project is being developed
                       or undertaken to the satisfaction of the Commission and subject to such additional
                       disclosure requirements as may be notified;

               (d)     not accept a sum against purchase of the apartment, plot or building, as the case
                       may be, as an advance payment from a person without first entering into a written
                       agreement for sale with such person except nominal fee for application;

               (e)     maintain and preserve such books of account, records and documents in the
                       manner as may be specified;

               (f)     deposit any sum obtained from the allottees, from time to time, in a separate escrow
                       account opened in the name of the project as may be specified;




                                                 Page 276 of 401
               (g)     comply with any directions notified by the Commission and accounting
                       framework as may be notified; and

               (h)     do or not to do any act or activity as may be specified.

        (3)     For the purposes of this section the escrow accounts shall be dedicated exclusively for
carrying out the project and no attachment shall be imposed on the payment of such escrow accounts for
the benefit of creditors of the real estate company except for the purpose of project and the real estate
company shall recognize its income in accordance with International Financial Reporting Standards
notified by the Commission.

        (4)     The Commission shall provide copy of any returns or information submitted by real estate
company free of cost to the concerned authority, on their request, to enable such authority to regulate
real estate project under its jurisdiction in accordance with the applicable laws.

       (5)      The conditions laid down under this section shall be in addition to and not in derogation
of requirement of law and concerned authority under whose jurisdiction the project is being undertaken
by the real estate company shall continue to exercise its authority in a manner provided in the relevant
law.

       (6)      Any person who contravenes the provisions of this section shall be guilty of an offence
which is liable to a penalty of level 3 on the standard scale.

       Explanations. ___For the purposes of this section the___

               (i)     expression “real estate project” shall include projects for the development and
                       construction of residential or commercial buildings or compounds and shall not
                       include other construction project;

               (ii)    expression “authority” shall include authority created or prescribed under any law
                       which has powers to give permission for planning and development of real estate
                       project in specific area.

       457. Agriculture Promotion Companies.—(1) Notwithstanding anything contained in this
Act or any other law for the time being in force, any person, having its Principal line of business related
to produce for agriculture promotion or managing produce as collateral or engaged in any activity
connected with or related to any Produce or other related activities may establish Agriculture Promotion
Company under this section in such form and manner and subject to such terms, conditions and limitations
as may be specified.

       Explanation.—For the purpose of this section:

               (a)     “Agriculture Promotion Company” includes a Producer Company or a
                       Collateral Management Company involved in Produce or any other company or
                       class of companies or corporate body or any other entity as the concerned Minister-




                                                Page 277 of 401
                      in-Charge of the Federal Government may, by notification in the official Gazette
                      specify as Agriculture Promotion Company under this section;


               (b)    “Produce” means—

                      (i)     produce of farmers, arising from agriculture (including animal husbandry,
                              forest products, re-vegetation, bee raising and farming plantation products),
                              or from any other activity or service which promotes the farming business;
                              or

                      (ii)    any product resulting from any of the above activities, including by-
                              products of such products;

                      (iii)   any activity which is intended to increase the production of anything
                              referred to in above sub-clauses or improve the quality thereof;

        (2)     Producer Company means any company, with or without share capital, formed under
this section by farmers and engaged in any activity connected with or related to any Produce including the
following matters___

               (a)    production, harvesting, procurement, grading, pooling, handling, marketing,
                      selling, export of produce of the members or import of goods or services for their
                      benefit;

               (b)    processing including preserving, drying, distilling, brewing, canning and
                      packaging of produce of its members;

               (c)    rendering technical services, consultancy services, training research; and
                      development and all other activities for the promotion of the interests of its
                      Members;

               (d)    arranging insurance of produce; and

               (e)    financing of procurement, processing, marketing, extending of credit facilities
                      including microfinance subject to such terms and conditions as may be specified,
                      or any other financial services to its members;

       (3)     Every Producer Company shall deal primarily with the produce of its members for
carrying out any of its activities.

       (4)    For the purposes of this section, member of a Producer Company means farmers as
promoters and sponsors of a Producer Company and farmers admitted to membership after registration
in accordance with requirements as specified in the regulations.




                                               Page 278 of 401
       (5)    Collateral Management Company means any company formed under this section to
engage in the activity of managing produce as collateral, including but not limited to the following
matters:

                 (a)       warehousing, i.e. provision of quality storage and preservation services for a range
                           of agricultural commodities;

                 (b)       issuance of credible warehouse receipts for agricultural commodity financing; and

                 (c)       stock audit and verification services;

       (6)      If an Agriculture Promotion Company or Collateral Management Company or Producer
Company or their members indulges in any activity which is prejudicial to the interests of farmers,
members, lending institutions, commodity exchange, consumers, or other stakeholders, shall be liable to
a penalty of level 3 on the standard scale.

       (7)     Any dues outstanding against agriculture promotion company under this section shall be
recoverable as arrears of land revenue.
        (8)   Notwithstanding any provision of this section, the Government or any institution or
authority owned and controlled by the Government may form an Agriculture Promotion Company.

       458. Power to give exemptions by the Federal Government.—Notwithstanding anything
contained in this Act or any other law, the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government
may, by notification in the official Gazette exempt companies under sections 454, 456 and 457 from
any provisions of law for the time being in force.
       1
         [458A. Measures for greater ease of doing business.— Notwithstanding anything contained in
this Act or in any other law for the time being in force, the Commission may implement measures for
providing greater ease of doing business, improving regulatory quality and efficiency and facilitating
innovation and the use of technology in conducting business by the corporate sector, including but not
limited to-
        (a) formalizing existing practices through regulations and implementing other measures for
attaining international standards of regulatory quality and efficiency for greater ease of doing business;

        (b) specifying modes and procedures for enabling greater ease of entry into and exit from the
market to startup companies;
        (c) constituting special task groups from the corporate sector for encouraging the use of financial
technology in the conduct of business;
        (d) creating environments for testing and examining the impact of innovation, new processes or
technologies outside the existing regulatory framework including but not limited to crowdfunding, digital
assets, open application programming interface (APIs), smart contracts, cloud based solutions and
allowing the establishment and use of regulatory sandboxes;


       1Ins.by Act No. XXXVII of 2021, s.24




                                                    Page 279 of 401
       (e) encouraging the use of technology for providing and meeting regulatory reporting
requirements, risk assessment, customer due diligence, the issuance of suspicious transaction reports,
keeping records and such other requirements as may be specified to meet anti-money laundering and
counter-terrorism financing standards;

        (f) improving regulatory compliance and specifying proportionate data-driven standards for the
corporate sector to take measures for cyber-security, data sovereignty and algorithm supervision;

       (g) specifying exemptions and incentives under the prevailing laws with the object of fostering
innovation, promoting startups and entrepreneurship ecosystem in line with international best practices;

       (h) improving regulatory monitoring, reporting and compliance requirements; and

        (i)    prescribing such other frameworks as may be notified by the Commission for stimulating
innovation and financial inclusion in the conduct of business by the corporate sector through the use of
financial technology, regulatory technology and supervisory technology:

        Provided that the Commission may take such other measures prior to the issuance of regulations
as it may deem fit through guidelines, policy papers, frameworks or any other modes or mechanisms.]

        459. Quota for persons with disabilities in the public interest companies.— Every public
interest company, employing one hundred or more employees shall ensure special quota for employment
of persons with disabilities of two percent or such higher percentage as may be specified or required under
the applicable Federal and Provincial law:

        Provided that in case of any conflict between this Act and any other Federal or Provincial law
for persons with disabilities, the later shall apply.

        460. Valuation by registered valuers.—(1) Where a valuation is required to be made in
respect of any property, stocks, shares, debentures, securities or goodwill or any other assets (herein
referred to as the assets) or net worth of a company or its liabilities under the provisions of this Act, it
shall be valued by a person having such qualifications and experience and registered as a valuer in such
manner, on such terms and conditions as may be specified.

       (2)     The valuer appointed under sub-section (1) shall—

               (a)     make an impartial, true and fair valuation of any assets which may be required to
                       be valued;

               (b)     exercise due diligence while performing the functions as valuer ; and

               (c)     not undertake valuation of any assets in which he has a direct or indirect interest or
                       becomes so interested at any time before submission of the report.

       (3)    The valuer shall prepare his report in such manner and applying such approaches, as may
be specified.




                                                Page 280 of 401
        (4)     If a valuer contravenes the provisions of this section or the regulations made thereunder,
the valuer shall be liable to a penalty of level 2 on the standard scale:

       Provided that if the valuer has contravened such provisions with the intention to defraud the
company, its members or creditors, he shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term which may
extend to one year and with fine which may extend to five hundred thousand rupees.

       (5)     Where a valuer has been convicted under sub-section (4), he shall be liable to—

               (a)     refund the remuneration received by him to the company; and

               (b)     pay for damages to the company or to any other person for loss arising out of
                       incorrect or misleading statements of particulars made in his report.

       (6)     The registration as valuer under this section shall be liable to be cancelled by the
Commission on such grounds and in such manner as may be specified after providing an opportunity
of being heard.

        461. Security clearance of shareholder and director.—The Commission may require the
security clearance of any shareholder or director or other office bearer of a company or class of
companies as may be notified by the concerned Minister-in-charge of the Federal Government.

                               REGISTRATION OFFICES AND FEES

      462. Registration offices.—(1) For the purposes of the registration of companies and other
work under this Act, there shall be offices at such places as the Commission thinks fit.

        (2)  The Commission may appoint such registrars as it thinks necessary for the registration of
companies and performing other duties under this Act, and may make regulations with respect to their
duties.

        (3)    While performing their functions and duties under this Act, all registrars shall observe and
follow the order and instructions of the Commission.

      (4)    The Commission may direct a seal or seals to be prepared for the authentication of
documents required for or connected with the registration of companies.

        (5)    Any person may, in the manner as may be specified, inspect the documents kept by the
registrar and may require a certified copy of certificate of incorporation or any other certificate of any
company, or a copy or extract of any other document or register maintained by the registrar or any part
thereof on payment of the fees specified in the Seventh Schedule.

       (6)     A copy of or an extract from any document filed or lodged, whether in electronic or
physical form, with the Commission or the registrar under this Act or the rules or regulations made
thereunder or supplied or issued by the Commission or the registrar and certified to be a true copy thereof




                                                Page 281 of 401
or extract therefrom under the hand and seal of an officer of the Commission or the registrar, shall be
admissible in evidence in any proceedings as of equal validity as the original document.

       (7)     Where a document is filed or lodged, whether in electronic or physical form, with
the Commission or the registrar, the Commission or the registrar shall not be liable for any loss or damage
suffered by any person by reason of any error or omission of whatever nature arising or appearing in
any document obtained by any person under the e-service or in physical form under this Act or the rules
or regulations made thereunder, if such error or omission was made in good faith and in the ordinary
course of the discharge of the duties of the Commission or the registrar or occurred or arose as a result
of any defect or breakdown in the service or in the equipment used for the provision of the e- service.

        (8)     Wherever any act is by this Act directed to be done to or by the registrar it shall, until the
Commission otherwise directs, be done to or by the existing Registrar of Companies or in his absence
to or by such person as the Commission may for the time being authorise; but, in the event of the
Commission altering the constitution of the existing registration offices or any of them, any such act
shall be done to or by such officer and at such place with reference to the local situation of the registered
offices of the companies to be registered as the Commission may appoint.

        463. Production of documents kept by registrar.—(1) No process for compelling the
production of any document or register kept by the registrar shall issue from any court except with the
special leave of that court for reasons to be recorded; and any such process, if issued, shall bear thereon a
statement that it is issued with the special leave of the court so granted and state the reasons for grant of
such leave.

        (2)     A copy of, or extract from, any document or register kept and registered at any of the
offices for the registration of companies under this Act, certified to be a true copy under the hand of the
registrar (whose official position it shall not be necessary to prove) shall, in all legal proceedings, be
admissible in evidence as of equal validity with the original document.

        (3)    Notwithstanding anything contained in any other law, no one shall, without the
permission of the Commission in writing, take over or remove any original document or register from
the custody of the registrar.

        464. Registrar not to accept defective documents.—(1) Where, in the opinion of the
registrar, any document required or authorised by or under this Act to be filed or registered with the
registrar___

               (a)     contains any matter contrary to law, or does not otherwise comply with the
                       requirements of law;

               (b)     is not complete owing to any defect, error or omission;

               (c)     is insufficiently legible or is written upon paper which is not durable; or


               (d)     is not properly authenticated;




                                                 Page 282 of 401
the registrar may require the company to file a revised document in the form and within the period to be
specified by him.

        (2)    If the company fails to submit the revised document within the specified period, the
registrar may refuse to accept or register the document and communicate his decision in writing to the
company.

        (3)     Subject to the provisions of sub-sections (4) and (5), if the registrar refuses to accept any
document for any of the reasons aforesaid, the same shall not be deemed to have been delivered to him in
accordance with the provisions of this Act unless a revised document in the form acceptable to the
registrar is duly delivered within such time, or such extended time, as the registrar may specify in this
behalf.

       (4)    If registration of any document is refused, the company may either supply the deficiency
and remove the defect pointed out or, within thirty days of the order of refusal, prefer an appeal___

               (a)     where the order of refusal has been passed by an additional registrar, a joint
                       registrar, an additional joint registrar, a deputy registrar, an assistant registrar or
                       such other officer as may be designated by the Commission, to the registrar; and


               (b)     where the order of refusal has been passed, or upheld in appeal, by the registrar, to
                       the Commission.

       (5)     An order of the Commission under sub-section (4) shall be final and shall not be called in
question before any court or other authority.

        (6)    If a document has been accepted for record and its data or any of the information contained
therein or any of the supporting documents subsequently found to be defective or incorrect or false or
forged, the registrar concerned may for special reasons to be recorded in writing, after obtaining such
evidence as he may deem appropriate, allow the rectification in such document or allow the filing of a
revised document in lieu thereof.

        (7)     If a document has been accepted for record and its data or any of the information contained
therein or any of the supporting documents subsequently found to be defective or incorrect which is not
possible of rectification or false or forged or it was accepted by mistake, the registrar concerned may for
special reasons to be recorded in writing, after obtaining such evidence as he may deem appropriate cancel
the recording thereof.

        465. Special return to rectify the data.—(1) The Commission or the registrar may at any
time, by a general or specific order, require a company or class of companies or all the companies to file
a special return signed by all the directors to rectify the record.

       (2)     The information provided in the special return filed under this section shall be a conclusive
evidence of all the relevant facts and shall not be called in question by any of the person who has signed
it.




                                                 Page 283 of 401
       (3)    The persons who have signed the special return shall be responsible for the loss caused to
any person on account of incorrect information provided in the return filed under this section.

         (4)    A company shall inform the registrar about any change of more than twenty five percent
in its shareholding or membership or voting rights in a manner as may be specified by the Commission.


        466. Jurisdiction in the disputes relating to shareholding and directorship.— The registrar
shall have no jurisdiction to determine the rights of the parties relating to shareholding and directorship.

       467. Approval of transfer of shares by the agents licenced by the Commission.—(1) In case
of companies to be notified for the purpose, before making any application for registration of the transfer
of shares to the board the transferor and the transferee shall appear before the agent licenced by the
Commission under this section; who shall record the statement of both the parties and forward a certified
copy of the statement so recorded to the company for further necessary action in such form and manner
and subject to such conditions as may be specified:

       Provided that the provision of this sub-section shall not apply to transfer or transmission of shares
by operation of law.

       (2)     The agent licenced under this section shall maintain complete record of all the
statements recorded by him including the documents submitted by the parties, for a period of ten years.

        (3)    The licence under this section may be granted by the Commission in the manner and
subject to such conditions, and to the persons having such qualification and infrastructure, as may be
specified.

        (4)    An agent licenced under this section shall be responsible for the loss caused to any person
due to any fault on his part, as determined by the Court while deciding a case under section 126.

       (5)     The agent licenced under this section may charge the fee for the services rendered by him,
not exceeding the limit notified by the Commission.

        (6)      The Commission may at any time revoke a licence granted under this section on being
satisfied that the agent has failed to comply with any of the terms or conditions to which the licence is
subject:

       Provided that, before a licence is so revoked, the Commission shall give to the agent notice in
writing of its intention to do so, and shall afford the association an opportunity to be heard.

       468. Acceptance of documents presented after prescribed time.—(1) Notwithstanding
anything contained in section 479, where any document required under this Act to be filed or registered
with the registrar is presented after the expiry of the prescribed period, the registrar may accept the same,
on payment of the fee as specified below___

               (a)     within ninety days, a fee equivalent to two times;



                                                 Page 284 of 401
               (b)     within one hundred and eighty days, a fee equivalent to three times;

               (c)     within one year, a fee equivalent to four times;

               (d)     within two years, a fee equivalent to five times;

of the prescribed fee payable in respect thereof:

      Provided that nothing contained in this sub-section shall be applicable to the public interest
company.

       (2)      No such document as aforesaid shall be deemed to have been filed with the registrar until
the specified fee, has been paid in full.

       (3)     The acceptance of the document by the registrar under sub-section (1) shall not absolve
the defaulting company or other person concerned of any other liability arising from the default in
complying with the requirements of this Act:

       Provided that no proceeding shall be initiated against the company or any of its officers on account
of delay in filing of any document required under this Act to be filed or registered with the registrar
which is presented by the company or other person concerned on the payment of fee as specified under
sub-section (1) and within the period as specified therein.

      469. Fees.—(1) There shall be paid in respect of the several matters mentioned in the Seventh
Schedule the several fees therein, for the time being, specified fees as the Commission may direct:

        Provided that, in the case of resolutions to which section 150 applies, not more than one fee shall
be required for the filing of more resolutions than one passed in the same meeting if such resolutions are
filed with the registrar at the same time.

       (2)     All fees paid in pursuance of this Act shall be accounted for to the Commission.

        (3)      Any document required or authorised by this Act to be filed by a company with the
registrar shall not be deemed to have been so filed until the fee payable in respect thereof has been duly
paid and either the original receipt or other proof acceptable to the registrar has been furnished to him.

        470. Power to specify fees chargeable by companies.—The maximum limits of fees to be
paid to or charged by companies and liquidators from members, creditors or other persons for supply
of copies of documents, inspection of records and other services as are required to be provided under this
Act shall be such as may be specified.

      471. Filing of documents electronically.—(1) The Commission may provide any means or
mode for filing, any document, return or application required to be filed, lodged or submitted with the
Commission or the registrar under this Act or the rules or regulations made thereunder electronically.




                                                Page 285 of 401
       (2)    Any additional information or document required to be submitted along with any
document to be filed under this Act shall also be submitted through electronic means including in a
scanned form.

        (3)    Any document to be submitted electronically shall be authenticated by the companies by
affixing electronic signature or advanced electronic signature, as required under the Electronic
Transactions Ordinance, 2002, (LI of 2002).

         (4)    From the date appointed by the Commission through notification in the official Gazette
any document, return or application required to be filed, lodged or submitted with the Commission or
the registrar under this Act or the rules or regulations made thereunder, shall only be lodged, filed or
submitted electronically through e-service or any other means or service provided by the Commission
for this purpose:

        Provided that the Commission may relax the requirement of this section for a company or class
of companies, for such document, return or application and for such time as may be notified from time
to time.

        472. Destruction of physical record.—The record of the companies including the statutory
returns and applications, maintained by the registrar and the Commission under this Act or the company
law shall be preserved for such period as the Commission may determine and may be destroyed in the
manner as may be specified:

        Provided further that the physical record converted into electronic form in terms of first proviso,
shall be admissible as an evidence in all legal proceedings and for all purposes.

        473. Supply of documents, information, notices to the members electronically.— (1)
After a date notified by the Commission, the information, notices and accounts or any other document
to be provided by the company to its members under this Act, shall only be provided electronically on
the email address provided by the members.

       (2)     A member requiring the supply of any of the document mentioned in sub-section (1) in
physical form shall bear the cost as fixed by the company.

        474. Enforcing compliance with provisions of Act.—(1) If a company, having made default
in complying with any provision of this Act or committed any other irregularity fails to make good the
default or undo the irregularity, as the case may be, within thirty days after the service of a notice on the
company requiring it to do so, the Commission may, of its own motion or on an application made to it
by any member or creditor of the company or a reference by the registrar and, in the case of a listed
company, besides other persons as aforesaid, on a reference by the securities exchange, make an order
directing the company and any officer thereof, as the case may be, to make good the default or undo the
irregularity or otherwise make amends, as the circumstances may require, within such time as may be
specified in the order.

        (2)    Any such order may provide that all costs of and incidental to the application or reference
shall be borne by the company or by an officer of the company responsible for the default.




                                                 Page 286 of 401
       (3)    Nothing in this section shall be taken to prejudice the operation of any enactment
imposing penalties on a company or its officers in respect of any such default as aforesaid.

         475. Power of Court trying offences under Act to direct compliance with the
provisions.—The Court, the Commission, the registrar or other officer trying an offence for a default in
compliance with any provisions or requirements of this Act may, at any time during the pendency of the
trial or at the time of passing final order, direct, without prejudice to any liability, any officer, auditor or
employee of the company in respect of which the default has been committed to undo the irregularity
including but not limited to unwinding the unlawful transaction or to comply with the said provisions or
requirements within such time as may be specified in the order.

                                 LEGAL PROCEEDINGS, OFFENCES

        476. Offences to be cognizable.—Notwithstanding anything contained in the Code of
Criminal Procedure, 1898 (V of 1898) or any other law, save as expressly provided otherwise in this Act
or in the Eighth Schedule, any offence in which punishment of imprisonment is provided under this Act
shall be cognizable by the Commission only and shall be proceeded in accordance with section 38 of the
Securities and Exchange Commission of Pakistan Act, 1997 (XLII of 1997) and this Act.

       477. Complaint to the court by the Commission, registrar, member or creditor in case
of certain offences.—(1) Offences provided in the Eighth Schedule under this Act which is alleged to
have been committed by any company or any officer or auditor or any other person shall not be taken
cognizance by the court, except on the complaint in writing of___

                (a)     the Commission through its authorised officer or the registrar; or

                (b)     in the case of a company having a share capital, by a member or members holding
                        not less than five percent of the issued share capital of the company or a creditor or
                        creditors of the company having interest equivalent in amount to not less than five
                        percent of the issued share capital of the company; or

                (c)     in the case of a company not having a share capital, by any member or creditor
                        entitled to present a petition for winding up of the company:

                              Provided that nothing in this sub-section shall apply to a prosecution by a
                        company of any of its officers or employees:

                               Provided further that the complaint filed under this section shall not require
                        formal procedure as provided under section 38 of the Securities and Exchange
                        Commission of Pakistan Act, 1997 (XLII of 1997) and such complaint shall be
                        taken cognizance by the court in accordance with Chapter XVI of Code of Criminal
                        Procedure, 1898 (Act V of 1898).




                                                  Page 287 of 401
        (2)     Sub-section (1) shall not apply to any action taken by the liquidator of a company in
respect of any offence alleged to have been committed in respect of any of the matters included in Part-X
or in any other provision of this Act relating to the winding up to companies.

      (3)     A liquidator of a company shall not be deemed to be an officer of the company within the
meaning of sub-section (1).

        478. Penalty to be imposed by the Commission.—Wherever a penalty is provided for any
offence, contravention of or default in complying with, any of the provisions of this Act, rules or
regulations made under this Act such penalty shall be imposed by the Commission after providing a
reasonable opportunity of hearing to the party.

       479. Adjudication of offences and standard scale of penalty.—(1) There shall be a
standard scale of penalty for offences under this Act, which shall be known as “the standard scale”.

       (2)     The standard scale consists of___

               Level                  Limit of penalty                    Per day penalty during which
                                                                          the default continues
               1                      Upto Rs. 25,000                     Upto Rs. 500

               2                      Upto Rs. 500,000                    Upto Rs. 1,000

               3                      Upto Rs. 100 million                Upto Rs. 500,000

        (3)   Where a penalty is provided for any offence, contravention of, or default in
complying with, any of the provisions of this Act or a directive of the Commission or the registrar or other
authority empowered to issue a directive under any provisions of this Act, it shall be adjudged and
imposed—

               (a)     where any person shall be liable to a penalty of level 1, by the officer who is
                       incharge of the company registration office in which the company is registered:

                               Provided that the Commission and the registrar shall have concurrent
                       jurisdiction under this clause;

               (b)     where any person shall be liable to a penalty of level 2, by the registrar designated
                       for the purpose:

                               Provided that the Commission shall have concurrent jurisdiction under this
                       clause; and

               (c)     where any person shall be liable to a penalty of level 3, by the Commission or an
                       officer authorised by it.




                                                Page 288 of 401
        (4)    Notwithstanding anything contained in sub-section (2), the Commission may, by an
order in writing empower any officer to exercise the powers conferred by the said sub-section in respect
of any case or class of cases, either to the exclusion of, or concurrently with, any other officer.

       (5)     The penalty as aforesaid shall be imposed after giving the person concerned an
opportunity to show cause why he should not be punished for the alleged offence, contravention, default
or non-compliance and, if he so requests, after giving him an opportunity of being heard personally or
through such person as may be specified.

        (6)     The penalty imposed under this section by the Commission, the registrar designated for the
purpose or the officer incharge of the company registration office, shall be without prejudice to any other
action for the violation or contravention as provided under the relevant provision of this Act.

        480. Appeal against order passed by officer of the Commission.—Any person aggrieved
by any order passed under this Act may, within thirty days of such order, except as otherwise provided
in this Act, prefer an appeal to—

               (a)     the registrar designated by the Commission against the order passed by an
                       additional registrar, a joint registrar, an additional joint registrar, a deputy registrar
                       or an assistant registrar or such other officer as may be designated by the
                       Commission; and

               (b)     officer authorized by the Commission where the order has been passed or upheld
                       by the registrar designated under clause (a) by the Commission.

        481. Appeal before the Appellate Bench.—Any person aggrieved by an order passed by the
registrar or an officer authorized by the Commission under section 480, may prefer an appeal to the
Appellate Bench of the Commission under section 33 of the Securities and Exchange Commission of
Pakistan Act, 1997 (XLII OF 1997):

       Provided that no appeal shall lie against—

               (a)     an administrative direction given by a Commissioner or an officer of the
                       Commission;

               (b)     a sanction provided or decision made by a Commissioner or an officer of the
                       Commission to commence legal proceedings; and

               (c)     an interim order which does not dispose of the entire matter.

       482. Adjudication of offences involving imprisonment.—Notwithstanding anything
contained in the Code of Criminal Procedure, 1898 (Act V of 1898), no court other than court of sessions
or such other court as may be notified under section 37 of the Securities and Exchange Commission of
Pakistan Act, 1997(XLII of 1997), shall take cognizance of any offence punishable with imprisonment
or imprisonment in addition to fine under this Act.




                                                  Page 289 of 401
        483. Powers of the Commission in relation to enquiries and proceedings.—(1) The
Commission, an authorised officer or the registrar, as the case may be, shall, for the purposes of a
proceeding or enquiry in exercise of its or his powers and discharge of functions, have the same powers
as are vested in a Court under the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (Act V of 1908), while trying a suit, in
respect of the following matters, namely—

               (a)     summoning and enforcing the attendance of any witness and examining him on
                       oath or affirmation;

               (b)     compelling the discovery or production of any document or other material object;

               (c)     receiving evidence on affidavit; and

               (d)     issuing commissions for the examination of witnesses and documents.

        (2)     Any proceeding before the Commission, an authorised officer or registrar, as the case
may be, shall be deemed to be a judicial proceeding within the meaning of section 193 and section 228
of the Pakistan Penal Code, 1860 (Act XLV of 1860), and the Commission, an authorised officer or
registrar shall be deemed to be a civil court for the purposes of section 195 and Chapter XXXV of the
Code of Criminal Procedure, 1898 (Act V of 1898).

        484. Procedure for trial of a corporate body.—(1) In any proceedings against a body
corporate for an offence against any provisions of this Act a notice to show cause or appear may be sent
to or served on the body corporate by registered post or in any other manner laid down for the service of
summons issued by a court under the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (Act V of 1908), at its registered
office, or if there is no registered office at its principal place of business in Pakistan and where no such
office is known to exist or is not functioning, at the address of the chief executive or any director or
officer of the body corporate.

        (2)     On service of the notice referred to in sub-section (1), it shall be the duty of the chief
executive and other officers of the company to show cause or appear before the Court, Commission,
registrar, other officer or authority himself or by a counsel or by an officer or other authorised
representative of the body corporate who may be in a position to answer the charge as may be specified
in the notice.

       (3)     Where a body corporate does not appear in the manner aforesaid, the Court,
Commission, registrar or officer trying the offence, as the case may be, may either issue a directive to the
chief executive or other officer of the body corporate as is referred to in sub-section (2) to appear
personally and answer the charge, or, at its or his direction, proceed to hear and decide the case in the
absence of the body corporate.

        485. Recovery of penalty.—Any sum adjudged, penalty imposed by the Commission or the
registrar in exercise of powers under this Act or any rules or any regulations made thereunder or directed
to be paid, shall be recovered in accordance with section 42B of the Securities and Exchange Commission
of Pakistan Act, 1997(XLII of 1997).




                                                Page 290 of 401
      486. Prosecution of offences by the Commission.—All prosecution conducted by the
Commission under this Act shall be made in the manner as provided in section 38 of Securities and
Exchange Commission of Pakistan Act, 1997(XLII of 1997).

        487. Appeal against acquittal.—Notwithstanding anything contained in the Code of
Criminal Procedure, 1898 (Act V of 1898), the Commission may, in any case arising out of this Act,
direct any officer of the Commission or authorize any other person, either by name or by virtue of his
office, to present an appeal from an order of acquittal passed by the court other than a Court and an
appeal presented by such prosecutor or other person shall be deemed to have been validly presented to
the appellate court.

        488. Payment of compensation in cases of frivolous or vexatious prosecution.— (1) In
respect of any case instituted upon the complaint of a member or creditor against the company or any
officer thereof under section 477, the following provisions shall apply instead of the provisions of section
250 of the Code of Criminal Procedure, 1898 (Act V of 1898).

       (2)      If the Court, officer, Commission or registrar by whom any such case is heard discharges
or acquits all or any of the accused, and is of opinion that the accusation against them or any of them
was false and either frivolous or vexatious, the Court, officer, Commission or registrar, as the case may
be, may by its or his order of discharge or acquittal, if the member or creditor upon whose complaint the
accusation was made is present, call upon him forthwith to show cause why he should not pay
compensation to such accused, or to each or any of such accused when there is more than one, or if such
member or creditor is not present, direct the issue of a summons to him to appear and show cause as
aforesaid.

        (3)     The Court, officer, Commission or registrar, as the case may be, shall record and consider
any cause which such member or creditor may show; and if it or he is satisfied that the accusation was
false and either frivolous or vexatious, it or he may, for reasons to be recorded, direct that compensation
to such amount as it may determine be paid by such member or creditor, as the case may be, to the
accused or to each or any of them not exceeding one million rupees in all.

        (4)     In default of payment of the compensation ordered under sub-section (3), the member
or creditor ordered to pay such compensation shall suffer simple imprisonment for a term not exceeding
one year, and shall also be liable to a fine not exceeding one hundred thousand rupees.

        (5)    When any person is imprisoned under sub-section (4), the provisions of sections 68 and
69 of the Pakistan Penal Code, 1860 (Act XLV of 1860) shall, so far as may be, apply.

       (6)     No person who has been directed to pay compensation under this section shall, by reason
of such order, be exempted from any civil or criminal liability in respect of the complaint made by him:

       Provided that any amount paid to an accused person under this section shall be taken into account
in awarding compensation to such person in any subsequent civil suit relating to the same matter.




                                                Page 291 of 401
       (7)    A complainant who has been ordered to pay compensation under sub-section (3) may
appeal from the order, in so far as it relates to the payment of compensation, as if such complainant had
been convicted on a trial.

       (8)     Where an order for payment of compensation to an accused person is made, the amount
of compensation recovered shall not be paid to him before the period allowed for the presentation of the
appeal under sub-section (7) has elapsed; or, if an appeal is presented, before the appeal has been decided.

       (9)     Nothing contained in the Code of Criminal Procedure, 1898 (Act V of 1898) or anything
contained in this section shall be applicable to the authorized officer of the Commission or the registrar
and all actions by such officer or registrar shall deemed to be validly done in good faith and no
compensation or suit for damages shall lie, whatsoever.

        489. Application of fines or penalties.—(1) The Court, officer, Commission or registrar
imposing any fine or penalty under this Act may direct that the whole or any part thereof shall be applied
in or towards___

               (a)     payment of costs of the proceedings;

               (b)     rewarding the person on whose information the fine or penalty is recovered; and

               (c)     payment to an aggrieved party of compensation for any loss caused by the offence.

        (2) Any amount recovered as fine or penalty which is not applied as aforesaid shall be accounted
for in accordance with section 40AA of the Securities and Exchange Commission of Pakistan Act, 1997
(XLII of 1997).

          490. Production and inspection of books where offence suspected.—(1) Without
prejudice to the powers otherwise exercisable by the Commission or any of its authorised officers or
registrar, or person under this Act, the Court in Chambers may, on an application made by a public
prosecutor or the Attorney-General for Pakistan or the Advocate-General of the Province or an officer
authorised by the Commission in this behalf or by a special public prosecutor appointed under section
38 of the Securities and Exchange Commission of Pakistan Act, 1997 (XLII of 1997) or by the registrar,
if it is shown that there is reasonable cause to believe that any person has, while he was an officer of a
company, committed an offence in connection with the management of the company’s affairs, and that
evidence of the commission of the offence is to be found in any books or papers of or under the control
of the company or any officer or agent of the company, make an order—

               (a)     authorising any person named therein to inspect the said books or papers or any
                       of them for the purpose of investigating, and obtaining evidence of the
                       commission of, the offence; or




                                                Page 292 of 401
               (b)     requiring the chief executive of the company or such other officer thereof or person
                       as may be named in the order, to produce the said books or papers or any of them
                       to a person, and at a place and time, named in the order.

        (2)     Sub-section (1) shall apply also in relation to any books or papers of a person carrying
on the business of banking so far as they relate to the company’s affairs, as it applies to any books or
papers of or under the control of the company, except that no such order as is referred to in clause (b)
thereof shall be made by virtue of this sub-section.

       (3)     No appeal shall lie from a decision under this section.

        491. Power to require limited company to give security for costs.—Where a limited
company is plaintiff or petitioner in any suit or other legal proceeding, the Court having jurisdiction in the
matter may, if it appears that there is reason to believe that the company will be unable to pay the costs
of the defendant if successful in his defence, require sufficient security to be given for those costs, and
may stay all proceedings until the security is given.

         492. Power of Court to grant relief in certain cases.—(1) If in any criminal proceeding for
negligence, default, breach of duty or breach of trust against a person to whom this section applies, it
appears to the Court, hearing the case that that person is or may be liable in respect of the negligence,
default, breach of duty or breach of trust, but that he has acted honestly and reasonably, and that having
regard to all the circumstances of the case, including those connected with his appointment, he ought
fairly to be excused for the negligence, default, breach of duty or breach of trust, the Court, may relieve
him, either wholly or partly, from his liability on such terms as the Court may think fit.

        (2)     Where any person to whom this section applies has reason to apprehend that any claim
will or might be made against him in respect of any negligence, default, breach of duty, or breach of
trust, he may apply to the Court for relief, and the Court on any such application shall have the same
power to relieve him as if proceedings against that person for negligence, default, breach of duty or
breach of trust had been brought before the Court.

       (3)     The persons to whom this section applies are the following namely—

               (a)     directors of a company;

               (b)     chief executive of a company;

               (c)     officers of a company;

               (d)     persons employed by a company as auditors, whether they are or are not officers of
                       the company;

               (e)     liquidator of a company.




                                                  Page 293 of 401
        (4)     The Court shall not grant any relief to any person under sub-section (1) or sub-section (2)
unless it by notice served in the manner specified by it requires the Commission or the registrar and such
other person, if any, as it thinks necessary to show cause why such relief should not be granted.

       493. Enforcement of orders of Court.—Any order made by the Court under this Act may
be enforced in the same manner as a decree made by a Court in a suit.

       494. Enforcement of orders of Court by other courts.—(1) Where any order made by the
Court is required to be enforced by another Court, a certified copy of the order shall be produced to the
proper officer of the Court required to enforce the order.

       (2)     The production of such certified copy shall be sufficient evidence of the order.

       (3)     Upon the production of such certified copy, the Court shall take the requisite steps for
enforcing the order, in the same manner as if it had been made by itself.

         495. Protection of acts done in good faith.—No suit, prosecution or other legal proceeding
shall lie against the Government or the Commission or any officer of Government or the Commission
or the registrar or any other person in respect of anything which is in good faith done or intended to be
done in pursuance of this Act or any rules or regulations or orders made thereunder or in respect of the
publication by or under the authority of the Government, Commission or such officer of any report, paper
or proceedings.

      496. Penalty for false statement, falsification, forgery, fraud, deception.—(1)
Notwithstanding anything contained in the Criminal Procedure Code, 1898, (V of 1898) or any other law,
whoever in relations to affairs of the company or body corporate___

               (a)     makes a statement or submit any document in any form, which is false or incorrect
                       in any material particular, or omits any material fact, knowing it to be material, in
                       any return, report, certificate, statement of financial position, profit and loss
                       account, income and expenditure account, offer of shares, books of account,
                       application, information or explanation required by or for the purposes of any of
                       the provisions of this Act or pursuant to an order or direction given under this Act
                       with an intention to defraud, or cheat the Commission or to obtain incorporation
                       or to avoid any penal action for an offence under this Act or administered
                       legislation;

               (b)     makes any false entry or omits or alter any material particular from books, paper or
                       accounts with an intent to defraud, destroy, alter or falsifies any books of account
                       belonging to or in his possession shall commit an offence of falsification of account;

               (c)     submit, present or produce any forged or fabricated document, knowingly to be
                       forged or fabricated, to the Commission for the purposes of cheating or cheating by
                       personation or to obtain any wrongful gain or wrongful loss or to avoid any penal
                       action for an offence under this Act or administered legislation; or




                                                Page 294 of 401
               (d)     employ any scheme, artifice or practice in the course of business of the company to
                       defraud or deceive general public;

shall be punishable with imprisonment which shall not be less than one year but which may extend to
seven years and shall also be liable to fine which shall not be less than the amount involved in the fraud
but may extend to three times the amount involved in the offence:

        Provided further that in case of offence involves public interest, the term of imprisonment under
this section shall not be less than three years along with fine.

       Explanation.—For the purpose of this section___

               (i)     “fraud” in relation to affairs of the company or body corporate shall mean doing
                       a thing with an intent to defraud other person;

               (ii)    “wrongful gain” means the gain by unlawful means of property to which the person
                       gaining is not legally entitled;

               (iii)   “wrongful loss” means the loss by unlawful means of property to which the person
                       losing is legally entitled.

               (iv)    “cheating, cheating by personation, falsification of accounts or forgery or forgery
                       for the purposes of cheating” shall have the same meanings as assign to it in
                       Pakistan Penal Code, 1860 (XLV of 1860).

       (2)     All offences under this section shall be non-bailable and non- compoundable.

        497. Penalty for wrongful withholding of property.—(1) Any director, chief executive or
other officer or employee or agent of a company who wrongfully obtains possession of any property of
the company, or having any such property in his possession wrongfully withholds it or wilfully applies
it to purposes other than those expressed or directed in the articles and authorised by this Act shall, on
the complaint of the company or any creditor or contributory thereof or a memorandum placed on record
by the registrar or an officer subordinate to him, be punishable with a fine not exceeding one million
rupees and may be ordered by the Court, or officer, Commission or registrar or the concerned Minister-
in-Charge of the Federal Government trying the offence, to deliver up or refund within a time to be fixed
by the said Court, officer, Commission or registrar or the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal
Government any such property improperly obtained or wrongfully withheld or wilfully misapplied and
any gain or benefit derived therefrom.

       (2)      Whoever fails to comply with an order under sub-section (1), shall be punishable with
imprisonment for a term which may extend to three years and shall also be liable to a fine which may
extend to five hundred thousand rupees.

        498. Liability of directors for allotment of shares for inadequate consideration.— (1)
Any director, creditor or member of a company may apply to the Court for a declaration that any shares
of the company specified in the application have been allotted for inadequate consideration.




                                               Page 295 of 401
        (2)      Every director of the company who is a party to making the allotment of such shares shall
be liable, jointly and severally with his co-directors, to make good to the company the amount by which
the consideration actually received by the company for the shares is found by the Court, after full inquiry
into the circumstances of the transaction, to be less than the consideration that the company ought to have
received for such shares, if it is proved, as to any such first mentioned director, that such director___

               (a)     had knowledge that the consideration so received by the company was inadequate;
                       or

               (b)     failed to take reasonable steps to ascertain whether such consideration so received
                       by the company was in fact adequate.

        499. Punishment for non-compliance of directive of Court.—(1) Where any directive is
given or order is issued by the Court, the officer, the Commission, the registrar or the concerned Minister-
in-Charge of the Federal Government under any provision of this Act, non-compliance thereof within
the period specified in such direction or order shall render every officer of the company or other person
responsible for non-compliance thereof punishable, in addition to any other liability, shall be liable to a
penalty of level 3 on the standard scale.

        (2)      If non-compliance or failure continues after conviction under sub-section (1), the officer
or other person who is a party to such non-compliance or failure shall be liable to punishment with
imprisonment which may extend to one year and fine not exceeding ten thousand rupees for every day
after the first during which such non-compliance continues, and shall further cease to hold office in the
company and be disqualified from holding any office in any company for a period of five years.

         500. Penalty for carrying on ultra vires business.—If any business or part of business carried
on or any transaction made, by a company is ultra vires of the company shall be an offence and every
person who acted as a director or officer of the company and is responsible for carrying on such business
shall be liable to a penalty of level 3 on the standard scale, and shall also be personally liable for the
liabilities and obligations arising out of such business or transaction.

        501. Penalty for improper use of word “Limited”.—If any person or persons trade or carry
on business under, or otherwise use or display, any name or title of which the word “Limited” or the
words “(Private) Limited” or “(Guarantee) Limited” or “(SMC-Private) Limited” or any contraction or
imitation thereof is or are the last word or words, that person or each of those persons shall, unless duly
incorporated with limited liability or as a private limited company or with the liability of members
limited by guarantee, as the case may be, be liable to a penalty of level 3 on the standard scale.

        502. Penalty where no specific penalty is provided.—If a company or any other person
contravenes or fails to comply with any provision of this Act or any condition, limitation or restriction
subject to which any approval, sanction, consent, confirmation, recognition, direction or exemption in
relation to any matter has been accorded, given or granted, for which no punishment is provided
elsewhere in this Act, the company and every officer of the company who is in default or such other
person shall be liable to a penalty of level 3 on the standard scale.




                                                Page 296 of 401
        503. Power to accord approval subject to conditions.—(1) Where the Commission or
registrar is required or authorised by any provision of this Act—

               (a)     to accord approval, sanction, consent, confirmation or recognition to or in relation
                       to any matter;

               (b)     to give any direction in relation to any matter; or

               (c)     to grant any exemption in relation to any matter,

then, in the absence of anything to the contrary contained in such or any other provision of this Act, the
Commission or registrar may accord, give or grant such approval, sanction, consent, confirmation,
recognition, direction or exemption subject to such conditions, limitations or restrictions as the
Commission or registrar may think fit to impose and may, in the case of contravention of any such
condition, limitation or restriction, rescind or withdraw such approval, sanction, consent, confirmation,
recognition, direction or exemption.

       (2)     Save as otherwise expressly provided in this Act, every application which may be or is
required to be made to the Commission or registrar under any provision of this Act—

               (a)     in respect of any approval, sanction, consent, confirmation or recognition to be
                       accorded by the Commission or registrar, or in relation to, any matter; or

               (b)     in respect of any direction or exemption to be given or granted by the Commission
                       or registrar to or in relation to any other matter; or

               (c)     in respect of any other matter;

shall be accompanied by fee specified in the Seventh Schedule.

      504. Delegation of powers.—The concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government
may, by notification in the official Gazette, direct that all or any of his powers and functions under this
Act may, subject to such limitations, restrictions or conditions, if any, as he may from time to time
impose, be exercised or performed by the Commission or an officer specified for the purpose.

        505. Application of Act to companies governed by special enactments.—(1) The provisions
of this Act shall apply—

               (a)     to insurance companies, except in so far as the said provisions are inconsistent with
                       the provisions of the Insurance Ordinance, 2000 (XXXIX of 2000);

               (b)     to banking companies, except in so far as the said provisions are inconsistent with
                       the provisions of the Banking Companies Ordinance, 1962 (LVII of 1962);




                                                Page 297 of 401
               (c)     to modaraba companies and modarabas, except in so far as the said provisions are
                       inconsistent with the provisions of the Modaraba Companies and Modaraba
                       (Floatation and Control ) Ordinance, 1980 (XXXI of 1980);

               (d)     to any other company governed by any special enactment for the time being in
                       force, except in so far as the said provisions are inconsistent with the provisions of
                       such special enactments.

         (2)   The provisions of sections 130, 132, 220 to 239, 247 to 267, 270 and 271 shall mutatis
mutandis apply to listed companies or corporations established by any special enactment for the time
being in force whose securities are listed and in the said sections the expression “company” shall include
a listed company so established:

        Provided that the Commission may, by notification in the official Gazette, direct that the
provisions of any of the aforesaid sections specified in the notification shall, subject to such conditions,
if any, as may be so specified, not apply to any listed company or securities so specified.

                     SCHEDULES, TABLES, FORMS AND GENERAL RULES

       506. Forms.—The forms in the schedules or forms as near thereto as circumstances admit
and such other forms as may be prescribed in the rules or specified through regulations shall be used in all
matters to which those forms refer.

      507. Power to alter schedules.—(1) The concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal
Government may, by notification, in the official Gazette, alter or add to, the Sixth and Eighth Schedules.

        (2)     The Commission may, by notification in the official Gazette, alter or add to any of the
tables, regulations, requirements, forms and other provisions contained in any of the schedules except
Sixth and Eighth Schedules, and such alterations or additions shall have effect as if enacted in this Act and
shall come into force on the date of the notification, unless the notification otherwise directs.

       508. Power of the Federal Government to make rules.—(1) In addition to the powers
conferred by any other section, the Federal Government may, by notification in the official Gazette, make
rules—

               (a)     for the matters which by this Act are to be prescribed;

               (b)     for establishment and regulating the activities of any company or class of
                       companies; and

               (c)     generally to carry out the purposes of this Act:

       Provided that, before making any such rule, the draft thereof shall be published by the concerned
Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government in the official Gazette for eliciting public opinion thereon
within a period of not less than fourteen days from the date of publication.




                                                 Page 298 of 401
        (2)      Any rule made under sub-section (1) may provide that a contravention thereof shall be
punishable with a penalty which may extend to five million rupees and, where the contravention is a
continuing one, with a further penalty which may extend to one hundred thousand rupees for every day
after the first during which such contravention continues.

        509. Repeal and savings.—(1) The Companies Ordinance, 1984 (XLVII of 1984), hereinafter
called as repealed Ordinance, shall stand repealed, except Part VIIIA consisting of sections 282A to 282N,
from the date of coming into force of this Act and the provisions of the said Part VIIIA along with all
related or connected provisions of the repealed Ordinance shall be applicable mutatis mutandis to Non-
banking Finance Companies in a manner as if the repealed Ordinance has not been repealed:

       Provided that repeal of the repealed Ordinance shall not___

               (a)    affect the incorporation of any company registered or saved under repealed
                      Ordinance; or

               (b)    revive anything not in force at the time at which the repeal take effect; or

               (c)    affect the previous operation of the repealed Ordinance or anything duly done or
                      suffered thereunder; or

               (d)    affect any right, privilege, obligation or liability acquired, accrued or incurred under
                      the said repealed Ordinance; or

               (e)    affect any penalty imposed, forfeiture made or punishment awarded in respect of
                      any offence committed under the repealed Ordinance; or

               (f)    affect any inspection, investigation, prosecution, legal proceeding or remedy in
                      respect of any obligation, liability, penalty, forfeiture or punishment as aforesaid,
                      and any such inspection, investigation, prosecution, legal proceedings or remedy
                      may be made, continued or enforced and any such penalty, forfeiture or punishment
                      may be imposed, as if this Act has not been passed.

       (2)     Notwithstanding the repeal of the repealed Ordinance—
               (a)    any document referring to any provision of the repealed Ordinance shall be
                      construed as referring, as far as may be, to this Act, or to the corresponding
                      provision of this Act;

               (b)    all rules, regulations, notification, guideline, circular, directive, order (special or
                      general) or exemption issued, made or granted under the repealed Ordinance shall
                      have effect as if it had been issued, made or granted under the corresponding
                      provision of this Act unless repealed, amended or substituted under this Act;

               (c)    any official appointed and any body elected or constituted under repealed
                      Ordinance shall continue and shall be deemed to have been appointed, elected or
                      constituted, as the case may be, under the corresponding provision of this Act;



                                                Page 299 of 401
               (d)     all funds and accounts constituted or maintained under the repealed Ordinance shall
                       be deemed to be in continuation of the corresponding funds and accounts
                       constituted or maintained under this Act;

               (e)     every mortgage and charge recorded in any register or book maintained at any
                       office under the repealed Ordinance shall be deemed to have be recorded in the
                       register or book maintained under the corresponding provisions of this Act;

               (f)     any licence, certificate or document issued, made or granted under the repealed
                       Ordinance shall be deemed to have been issued, made or granted under this Act and
                       shall, unless cancelled, in pursuance of any provisions of this Act, continue to be
                       inforce until the date specified in the licence, certificate or documents.

       (3)     The mention of particular matters in this section or in any other section of this Act shall
not prejudice the general application of section 6 of the General Clauses Act, 1897 (X of
       1897), with regard to the effect of repeals.

       (4)     After the commencement of this Act, the expression Companies Ordinance, 1984 (XLVII
of 1984) and any referring sections thereof, used in any law for the time being in force including all
administered legislation and rules, regulations and guidelines made thereunder, shall be read as
Companies Act, 2017 along with corresponding provisions of Companies Act, 2017 unless the context
requires otherwise.

        510. Power to issue directives, circulars, guidelines.—(1) The Commission may issue such
directives, prudential requirements, codes, guidelines, circulars or notifications as are necessary to carry
out the purposes of this Act and the rules and regulations made under this Act.

       (2)     Any person, who obstructs or contravenes or does not comply with any directive,
prudential requirements, codes, circulars or notifications, given under this section shall be liable to a
penalty of level 3 on the standard scale.

      511. Power of the Commission to permit use of Urdu words of abbreviations.— The
Commission may, by notification in the official Gazette, permit use of an Urdu equivalent of any English
word or term required to be used pursuant to or for the purposes of this Act or an abbreviation of any
such word or term instead of such word or term.

       512. Power to make regulations.—(1) The Commission may, by notification in the official
Gazette, make such regulations as may be necessary to carry out the purposes of this Act:

        Provided that the power to make regulations conferred by this section shall be subject to the
condition of previous publication and before making any regulations the draft thereof shall be published
in the manner considered most appropriate by the Commission for eliciting public opinion thereon within
a period of not less than fourteen days from the date of publication.

        (2)    Any regulation made under sub-section (1) may provide that a contravention thereof
shall be punishable with a penalty which may extend to five million rupees and, where the contravention



                                                Page 300 of 401
is a continuing one, with a further penalty which may extend to one hundred thousand rupees for every
day after the first during which such contravention continues.

       513. Validation of laws.—(1) All amendments made to the Companies Ordinance, 1984
(XLVII of 1984) or any administered legislation through various Finance Acts shall be deemed to have
been validly made from the date of commencement of such Acts.

        (2)    Notwithstanding anything contained in any other law, all orders made, proceedings taken
and acts done, rules, regulations, instructions, notifications and other legal instruments made at any time
before the promulgation of companies Ordinance, 1984 (XLVII of 1984) or any administered legislation,
including appeals decided by the Appellate Bench of the Commission or authorization of investigation,
enquiry and inspection by the Federal Government, the Commission or any officer of the Commission
under delegated authority, the registrar or any other officer having authority under the law in exercise or
purported exercise of powers under amendments made to Companies Ordinance, 1984 (XLVII of 1984)
or any administered legislation through various Finance Acts, and that have now been promulgated as
well as affirmed in terms of sub-section (1) of this section, are declared and affirmed to have been and
shall be deemed to have always been, validly made, decided, taken or done.

       514. Former registration offices and registers continued.—(1) The offices existing at the
commencement of this Act for registration of companies shall be continued as if they had been established
under this Act.

        (2)    Any books of account, book or paper, register or document kept under the provisions of
any previous law relating to companies shall be deemed part of the books of accounts, book or paper,
register or document to be kept under this Act.

        515. Removal of difficulty.—If any difficulty arises in giving effect to any provision of this
Act, the concerned Minister-in-Charge of the Federal Government may, by notification in the official
Gazette make such provisions as may appear to it to be necessary for the purpose of removing the
difficulty.

                                         __________________




                                                Page 301 of 401
                                            FIRST SCHEDULE
                                                 TABLE A
                                           (See sections 2 and 36)

                                                   PART I

       REGULATIONS FOR MANAGEMENT OF A COMPANY LIMITED BY SHARES

                                             PRELIMINARY

       1.      (1) In these regulations—

               (a)     “section” means section of the Act;

               (b)     “the Act” means the Companies Act, 2017; and

               (c)     “the seal” means the common seal or official seal of the company as the case may
                       be.

        (2)     Unless the context otherwise requires, words or expressions contained in these
regulations shall have the same meaning as in this Act; and words importing the singular shall include
the plural, and vice versa, and words importing the masculine gender shall include feminine, and words
importing persons shall include bodies corporate.

                                                 BUSINESS

      2.      The directors shall have regard to the restrictions on the commencement of business
imposed by section 19 if, and so far as, those restrictions are binding upon the company.

                                                  SHARES

         3.      In case of shares in the physical form, every person whose name is entered as a member
in the register of members shall, without payment, be entitled to receive, within thirty days after allotment
or within fifteen days of the application for registration of transfer, a certificate under the seal specifying
the share or shares held by him and the amount paid up thereon:

        Provided that if the shares are in book entry form or in case of conversion of physical shares and
other transferable securities into book-entry form, the company shall, within ten days after an application
is made for the registration of the transfer of any shares or other securities to a central depository,
register such transfer in the name of the central depository.

        4.      The company shall not be bound to issue more than one certificate in respect of a share
or shares in the physical form, held jointly by several persons and delivery of a certificate for a share to
one of several joint holders shall be sufficient delivery to all.




                                                  Page 302 of 401
        5.      If a share certificate in physical form is defaced, lost or destroyed, it may be renewed
on payment of such fee, if any, not exceeding one hundred rupees, and on such terms, if any, as to
evidence and indemnity and payment of expenses incurred by the company in investigating title as the
directors think fit.
        6.      Except to the extent and in the manner allowed by section 86, no part of the funds of the
company shall be employed in the purchase of, or in loans upon the security of, the company’s shares.

                               TRANSFER AND TRANSMISSION OF SHARES
        7.     The instrument of transfer of any share in physical form in the company shall be executed
both by the transferor and transferee, and the transferor shall be deemed to remain holder of the share
until the name of the transferee is entered in the register of members in respect thereof.

       8.      Shares in physical form in the company shall be transferred in the following form, or in
any usual or common form which the directors shall approve:—

                                             Form for Transfer of Shares
                                     (First Schedule to the Companies Act, 2017)
 I……………... s/o ........................r/o...................... (hereinafter called “the transferor”) in consideration
 of      the        sum        of        rupees         ............................  paid to   me   by.....…………….........
 s/o........................r/o...................... (hereinafter called “the transferee”), do hereby transfer to the said
 transferee....................the               share            (or            shares)   with    distinctive    numbers
 from………….....to...................inclusive, in the.............................Limited, to hold unto the said
 transferee, his executors, administrators and assigns, subject to the several conditions on which I held
 the same at the time of the execution hereof, and I, the said transferee, do hereby agree to take the said
 share (or shares) subject to the conditions aforesaid.

 As witness our hands this.................. day of.............................., 20.....

 Signature …………………                                                            Signature …………………
 Transferor                                                                   Transferee
 Full Name, Father’ s / Husband’ s Name                                       Full Name, Father’ s / Husband’ s Name
 CNIC Number (in case of foreigner, Passport                                  CNIC Number (in case of foreigner,
 Number)                                                                      Passport Number)
 Nationality                                                                  Nationality
 Occupation and usual Residential Address                                     Occupation and usual Residential
                                                                              Address
                                                                              Cell number
                                                                              Landline number, if any
                                                                              Email address

 Witness 1:                                                                   Witness 2:

 Signature………………..date…………                                                    Signature…………..….date…………
 Name, CNIC Number and FullAddress                                            Name, CNIC Number and Full Address




                                                            Page 303 of 401
                 Bank Account Details of Transferee for Payment of Cash Dividend
               (Mandatory in case of a listed company or optional for any other company)

        It is requested that all my cash dividend amounts declared by the company, may be credited into
the following bank account:

         Tile of Bank Account
         Bank Account Number
         Bank’s Name
         Branch Name and
         Address

       It is stated that the above mentioned information is correct and that I will intimate the changes in
the above-mentioned information to the company and the concerned Share Registrar as soon as these
occur.


……………………………….
Signature of the Transferee(s)

        9.      (1) Subject to the restrictions contained in regulation 10 and 11, the directors shall not
refuse to transfer any share unless the transfer deed is defective or invalid. The directors may also suspend
the registration of transfers during the ten days immediately preceding a general meeting or prior to the
determination of entitlement or rights of the shareholders by giving seven days’ previous notice in the
manner provided in the Act. The directors may, in case of shares in physical form, decline to recognise
any instrument of transfer unless—

               (a)     a fee not exceeding fifty rupees as may be determined by the directors is paid to
                       the company in respect thereof; and

               (b)     the duly stamped instrument of transfer is accompanied by the certificate of the
                       shares to which it relates, and such other evidence as the directors may reasonably
                       require to show the right of the transferor to make the transfer.

        (2)     If the directors refuse to register a transfer of shares, they shall within fifteen days after
the date on which the transfer deed was lodged with the company send to the transferee and the transferor
notice of the refusal indicating the defect or invalidity to the transferee, who shall, after removal of such
defect or invalidity be entitled to re-lodge the transfer deed with the company:

        Provided that the company shall, where the transferee is a central depository the refusal shall be
conveyed within five days from the date on which the instrument of transfer was lodged with it notify
the defect or invalidity to the transferee who shall, after the removal of such defect or invalidity, be
entitled to re-lodge the transfer deed with the company.




                                                 Page 304 of 401
                                   TRANSMISSION OF SHARES

        10.     The executors, administrators, heirs, or nominees, as the case may be, of a deceased sole
holder of a share shall be the only persons recognised by the company to deal with the share in accordance
with the law. In the case of a share registered in the names of two or more holders, the survivors or
survivor, or the executors or administrators of the deceased survivor, shall be the only persons recognised
by the company to deal with the share in accordance with the law.

       11.     The shares or other securities of a deceased member shall be transferred on application
duly supported by succession certificate or by lawful award, as the case may be, in favour of the
successors to the extent of their interests and their names shall be entered to the register of members.

        12.     A person may on acquiring interest in a company as member, represented by shares, at any
time after acquisition of such interest deposit with the company a nomination conferring on a person,
being the relatives of the member, namely, a spouse, father, mother, brother, sister and son or daughter,
the right to protect the interest of the legal heirs in the shares of the deceased in the event of his death, as
a trustee and to facilitate the transfer of shares to the legal heirs of the deceased subject to succession to
be determined under the Islamic law of inheritance and in case of non-Muslim members, as per their
respective law.

        13.     The person nominated under regulation 12 shall, after the death of the member, be deemed
as a member of company till the shares are transferred to the legal heirs and if the deceased was a director
of the company, not being a listed company, the nominee shall also act as director of the company to
protect the interest of the legal heirs.

        14.    A person to be deemed as a member under regulation 11, 12 and 13 to a share by reason
of the death or insolvency of the holder shall be entitled to the same dividends and other advantages to
which he would be entitled if he were the registered holder of the share and exercise any right conferred
by membership in relation to meetings of the company.

                                   ALTERATION OF CAPITAL

        15.     The company may, by special resolution—

                (a)     increase its authorised capital by such amount as it thinks expedient;

                (b)     consolidate and divide the whole or any part of its share capital into shares of larger
                        amount than its existing shares;

                (c)     sub-divide its shares, or any of them, into shares of smaller amount than is fixed by
                        the memorandum;




                                                  Page 305 of 401
               (d)     cancel shares which, at the date of the passing of the resolution in that behalf, have
                       not been taken or agreed to be taken by any person, and diminish the amount of
                       its share capital by the amount of the share so cancelled.

         16.     Subject to the provisions of the Act, all new shares shall at the first instance be offered
to such persons as at the date of the offer are entitled to such issue in proportion, as nearly as the
circumstances admit, to the amount of the existing shares to which they are entitled. The offer shall be
made by letter of offer specifying the number of shares offered, and limiting a time within which the
offer, if not accepted, will deem to be declined, and after the expiration of that time, or on the receipt of
an intimation from the person to whom the offer is made that he declines to accept the shares offered, the
directors may dispose of the same in such manner as they think most beneficial to the company. The
directors may likewise so dispose of any new shares which (by reason of the ratio which the new shares
bear to shares held by persons entitled to an offer of new shares) cannot, in the opinion of the directors,
be conveniently offered under this regulation.

       17.     The new shares shall be subject to the same provisions with reference to transfer,
transmission and otherwise as the shares in the original share capital.

       18.     The company may, by special resolution—

               (a)     consolidate and divide its share capital into shares of larger amount than its existing
                       shares;

               (b)     sub-divide its existing shares or any of them into shares of smaller amount than is
                       fixed by the memorandum of association, subject, nevertheless, to the provisions of
                       section 85;

               (c)     cancel any shares which, at the date of the passing of the resolution, have not been
                       taken or agreed to be taken by any person.

       19.     The company may, by special resolution, reduce its share capital in any manner and with,
and subject to confirmation by the Court and any incident authorised and consent required, by law.

                                     GENERAL MEETINGS

        20.    The statutory general meeting of the company shall be held within the period required
by section 131.

         21.     A general meeting, to be called annual general meeting, shall be held, in accordance with
the provisions of section 132, within sixteen months from the date of incorporation of the company and
thereafter once at least in every year within a period of one hundred and twenty days following the close
of its financial year.

       22.   All general meetings of a company other than the statutory meeting or an annual general
meeting mentioned in sections 131 and 132 respectively shall be called extraordinary general meetings.




                                                 Page 306 of 401
        23.    The directors may, whenever they think fit, call an extra-ordinary general meeting, and
extra-ordinary general meetings shall also be called on such requisition, or in default, may be called by
such requisitionists, as provided by section 133. If at any time there are not within Pakistan sufficient
directors capable of acting to form a quorum, any director of the company may call an extra-ordinary
general meeting in the same manner as nearly as possible as that in which meetings may be called by the
directors.

       24.    The company may provide video-link facility to its members for attending general
meeting at places other than the town in which general meeting is taking place after considering the
geographical dispersal of its members:

        Provided that in case of listed companies if the members holding ten percent of the total paid up
capital or such other percentage of the paid up capital as may be specified, are resident in any other city,
the company shall provide the facility of video-link to such members for attending annual general meeting
of the company, if so required by such members in writing to the company at least seven days before the
date of the meeting.

                     NOTICE AND PROCEEDINGS OF GENERAL MEETINGS

        25.     Twenty-one days’ notice at the least (exclusive of the day on which the notice is served
or deemed to be served, but inclusive of the day for which notice is given) specifying the place, the day
and the hour of meeting and, in case of special business, the general nature of that business, shall be
given in manner provided by the Act for the general meeting, to such persons as are, under the Act or the
regulations of the company, entitled to receive such notice from the company; but the accidental omission
to give notice to, or the non-receipt of notice by, any member shall not invalidate the proceedings at any
general meeting.

        26.     All the business transacted at a general meeting shall be deemed special other than the
business stated in sub-section (2) of section 134 namely; the consideration of financial statements and
the reports of the board and auditors, the declaration of any dividend, the election and appointment of
directors in place of those retiring, and the appointment of the auditors and fixing of their remuneration.

        27.     No business shall be transacted at any general meeting unless a quorum of members
is present at that time when the meeting proceeds to business. The quorum of the general meeting shall
be—

               (a)     in the case of a public listed company, not less than ten members present personally,
                       or through video-link who represent not less than twenty-five per cent of the total
                       voting power, either of their own account or as proxies;

               (b)     in the case of any other company having share capital, two members present
                       personally, or through video-link who represent not less than twenty-five per cent
                       of the total voting power, either of their own account or as proxies.

      28.      If within half an hour from the time appointed for the meeting a quorum is not present,
the meeting, if called upon the requisition of members, shall be dissolved; in any other case, it shall



                                                Page 307 of 401
stand adjourned to the same day in the next week at the same time and place, and, if at the adjourned
meeting a quorum is not present within half an hour from the time appointed for the meeting, the
members present, being not less than two, shall be a quorum.

        29.     The chairman of the board of directors, if any, shall preside as chairman at every general
meeting of the company, but if there is no such chairman, or if at any meeting he is not present within
fifteen minutes after the time appointed for the meeting, or is unwilling to act as chairman, any one of
the directors present may be elected to be chairman, and if none of the directors is present, or willing to
act as chairman, the members present shall choose one of their number to be chairman.

        30.     The chairman may, with the consent of any meeting at which a quorum is present (and
shall if so directed by the meeting), adjourn the meeting from time to time but no business shall be
transacted at any adjourned meeting other than the business left unfinished at the meeting from which the
adjournment took place. When a meeting is adjourned for fifteen days or more, notice of the adjourned
meeting shall be given as in the case of an original meeting. Save as aforesaid, it shall not be necessary to
give any notice of an adjournment or of the business to be transacted at an adjourned meeting.

       31.     (1) At any general meeting a resolution put to the vote of the meeting shall be decided on
a show of hands unless a poll is (before or on the declaration of the result of the show of hands) demanded.
Unless a poll is so demanded, a declaration by the chairman that a resolution has, on a show of hands,
been carried, or carried unanimously, or by a particular majority, or lost, and an entry to that effect in the
book of the proceedings of the company shall be conclusive evidence of the fact, without proof of the
number or proportion of the votes recorded in favour of, or against, that resolution.

       (2)   At any general meeting, the company shall transact such businesses as may be notified
by the Commission, only through postal ballot.

       32.     A poll may be demanded only in accordance with the provisions of section 143.

        33.    If a poll is duly demanded, it shall be taken in accordance with the manner laid down
in sections 144 and 145 and the result of the poll shall be deemed to be the resolution of the meeting at
which the poll was demanded.

        34.    A poll demanded on the election of chairman or on a question of adjournment shall be
taken at once.

       35.     In the case of an equality of votes, whether on a show of hands or on a poll, the
chairman of the meeting at which the show of hands takes place, or at which the poll is demanded, shall
have and exercise a second or casting vote.

        36.    Except for the businesses specified under sub-section (2) of section 134 to be conducted
in the annual general meeting, the members of a private company or a public unlisted company (having
not more than fifty members), may pass a resolution (ordinary or special) by circulation signed by all
the members for the time being entitled to receive notice of a meeting. The resolution by circulation shall
be deemed to be passed on the date of signing by the last of the signatory member to such resolution.




                                                 Page 308 of 401
                                           VOTES OF MEMBERS

        37.     Subject to any rights or restrictions for the time being attached to any class or classes
of shares, on a show of hands every member present in person shall have one vote except for election of
directors in which case the provisions of section 159 shall apply. On a poll every member shall have
voting rights as laid down in section 134.

        38.    In case of joint-holders, the vote of the senior who tenders a vote, whether in person or by
proxy or through video-link shall be accepted to the exclusion of the votes of the other joint- holders; and
for this purpose seniority shall be determined by the order in which the names stand in the register of
members.

       39.     A member of unsound mind, or in respect of whom an order has been made by any court
having jurisdiction in lunacy, may vote, whether on show of hands or on a poll or through video link, by
his committee or other legal guardian, and any such committee or guardian may, on a poll, vote by proxy.

        40.    On a poll votes may be given either personally or through video- link, by proxy or through
postal ballot:

       Provided that nobody corporate shall vote by proxy as long as a resolution of its directors in
accordance with the provisions of section 138 is in force.

       41.     (1) The instrument appointing a proxy shall be in writing under the hand of the
appointer or of his attorney duly authorised in writing.

        (2)     The instrument appointing a proxy and the power-of-attorney or other authority (if any)
under which it is signed, or a notarially certified copy of that power or authority, shall be deposited at
the registered office of the company not less than forty-eight hours before the time for holding the meeting
at which the person named in the instrument proposes to vote and in default the instrument of proxy
shall not be treated as valid.

       42.      An instrument appointing a proxy may be in the following form, or a form as near thereto
as may be:

                INSTRUMENT OF PROXY
 ………………...……………………………...………………………………..............................
 Limited

 “I …………………..…………………..….…. s/o ……………………............................................. r/o
 ......................................................................... …………………………………… being a member of
 the
 ………………………………………….……………………………………….                                                               Limited, hereby
 appoint
 ……………………………………………….. s/o ...............................................................................
 r/o .........................................as my proxy to attend and vote on my behalf at the (statutory, annual,




                                                    Page 309 of 401
 extra-ordinary, as the case may be) general meeting of the company to be held on the …………….. day
 of ……………….., 20…… and at any adjournment thereof.”

        43.     A vote given in accordance with the terms of an instrument of proxy shall be valid
notwithstanding the previous death or insanity of the principal or revocation of the proxy or of the
authority under which the proxy was executed, or the transfer of the share in respect of which the proxy
is given, provided that no intimation in writing of such death, insanity, revocation or transfer as aforesaid
shall have been received by the company at the office before the commencement of the meeting or
adjourned meeting at which the proxy is used.

                                               DIRECTORS

        44.    The following subscribers of the memorandum of association shall be the first directors
of the company, so, however, that the number of directors shall not in any case be less than that specified
in section 154 and they shall hold office until the election of directors in the first annual general meeting:

       1.      ab

       2.      cd

       3.      ef

       4.      gh

      45.    The remuneration of the directors shall from time to time be determined by the
company in general meeting subject to the provisions of the Act.

     46.      Save as provided in section 153, no person shall be appointed as a director unless he is a
member of the company.

                              POWERS AND DUTIES OF DIRECTORS

         47.     The business of the company shall be managed by the directors, who may pay all
expenses incurred in promoting and registering the company, and may exercise all such powers of the
company as are not by the Act or any statutory modification thereof for the time being in force, or by these
regulations, required to be exercised by the company in general meeting, subject nevertheless to the
provisions of the Act or to any of these regulations, and such regulations being not inconsistent with the
aforesaid provisions, as may be prescribed by the company in general meeting but no regulation made
by the company in general meeting shall invalidate any prior act of the directors which would have been
valid if that regulation had not been made.

       48.   The directors shall appoint a chief executive in accordance with the provisions of sections
186 and 187.

       49.     The amount for the time being remaining undischarged of moneys borrowed or raised
by the directors for the purposes of the company (otherwise than by the issue of share capital) shall not




                                                 Page 310 of 401
at any time, without the sanction of the company in general meeting, exceed the issued share capital of
the company.

         50.    The directors shall duly comply with the provisions of the Act, or any statutory
modification thereof for the time being in force, and in particular with the provisions in regard to the
registration of the particulars of mortgages, charges and pledge affecting the property of the company or
created by it, to the keeping of a register of the directors, and to the sending to the registrar of an annual
list of members, and a summary of particulars relating thereto and notice of any consolidation or increase
of share capital, or sub-division of shares, and copies of special resolutions and a copy of the register of
directors and notifications of any changes therein.

                                            MINUTE BOOKS

       51.    The directors shall cause records to be kept and minutes to be made in book or books
with regard to—

               (a)     all resolutions and proceedings of general meeting(s) and the meeting(s) of
                       directors and Committee(s) of directors, and every member present at any general
                       meeting and every director present at any meeting of directors or Committee of
                       directors shall put his signature in a book to be kept for that purpose;

               (b)     recording the names of the persons present at each meeting of the directors and of
                       any committee of the directors, and the general meeting; and

               (c)     all orders made by the directors and Committee(s) of directors:
                              Provided that all records related to proceedings through video-link shall be
                       maintained in accordance with the relevant regulations specified by the
                       Commission which shall be appropriately rendered into writing as part of the
                       minute books according to the said regulations.

                                                THE SEAL

        52.     The directors shall provide for the safe custody of the seal and the seal shall not be affixed
to any instrument except by the authority of a resolution of the board of directors or by a committee of
directors authorized in that behalf by the directors and in the presence of at least two directors and of the
secretary or such other person as the directors may appoint for the purpose; and those two directors and
secretary or other person as aforesaid shall sign every instrument to which the seal of the company is so
affixed in their presence.

                                DISQUALIFICATION OF DIRECTORS

        53.     No person shall become the director of a company if he suffers from any of the
disabilities or disqualifications mentioned in section 153 or disqualified or debarred from holding such
office under any of the provisions of the Act as the case may be and, if already a director, shall cease to
hold such office from the date he so becomes disqualified or disabled:




                                                 Page 311 of 401
        Provided, however, that no director shall vacate his office by reason only of his being a member
of any company which has entered into contracts with, or done any work for, the company of which he is
director, but such director shall not vote in respect of any such contract or work, and if he does so vote,
his vote shall not be counted.

                                   PROCEEDINGS OF DIRECTORS

        54.     The directors may meet together for the dispatch of business, adjourn and otherwise
regulate their meetings, as they think fit. A director may, and the secretary on the requisition of a director
shall, at any time, summon a meeting of directors. Notice sent to a director through email whether such
director is in Pakistan or outside Pakistan shall be a valid notice.

        55.     The directors may elect a chairman of their meetings and determine the period for which
he is to hold office; but, if no such chairman is elected, or if at any meeting the chairman is not present
within ten minutes after the time appointed for holding the same or is unwilling to act as chairman, the
directors present may choose one of their number to be chairman of the meeting.

        56.    At least one-third (1/3rd) of the total number of directors or two (2) directors
whichever is higher, for the time being of the company, present personally or through video-link, shall
constitute a quorum.

        57.     Save as otherwise expressly provided in the Act, every question at meetings of the board
shall be determined by a majority of votes of the directors present in person or through video-link, each
director having one vote. In case of an equality of votes or tie, the chairman shall have a casting vote in
addition to his original vote as a director.

       58.     The directors may delegate any of their powers not required to be exercised in their meeting
to committees consisting of such member or members of their body as they think fit; any committee so
formed shall, in the exercise of the powers so delegated, conform to any restrictions that may be imposed
on them by the directors.

          59.   (1) A committee may elect a chairman of its meetings; but, if no such chairman is elected,
or if at any meeting the chairman is not present within ten minutes after the time appointed for holding the
same or is unwilling to act as chairman, the members present may choose one of their number to be
chairman of the meeting.

        (2)    A committee may meet and adjourn as it thinks proper. Questions arising at any meeting
shall be determined by a majority of votes of the members present. In case of an equality of votes, the
chairman shall have and exercise a second or casting vote.

        60.     All acts done by any meeting of the directors or of a committee of directors, or by any
person acting as a director, shall, notwithstanding that it be afterwards discovered that there was some
defect in the appointment of any such directors or persons acting as aforesaid, or that they or any of them
were disqualified, be as valid as if every such person had been duly appointed and was qualified to be a
director.




                                                 Page 312 of 401
        61.    A copy of the draft minutes of meeting of the board of directors shall be furnished to every
director within seven working days of the date of meeting.

        62.     A resolution in writing signed by all the directors for the time being entitled to receive
notice of a meeting of the directors shall be as valid and effectual as if it had been passed at a meeting of
the directors duly convened and held.

                                      FILLING OF VACANCIES

       63.     At the first annual general meeting of the company, all the directors shall stand retired
from office, and directors shall be elected in their place in accordance with section 159 for a term of three
years.

       64.     A retiring director shall be eligible for re-election.

       65.     The directors shall comply with the provisions of sections 154 to 159 and sections 161, 162
and 167 relating to the election of directors and matters ancillary thereto.

        66.     Any casual vacancy occurring on the board of directors may be filled up by the
directors, but the person so chosen shall be subject to retirement at the same time as if he had become a
director on the day on which the director in whose place he is chosen was last elected as director.

       67.     The company may remove a director but only in accordance with the provisions of the
Act.
                                     DIVIDENDS AND RESERVE


       68.    The company in general meeting may declare dividends but no dividend shall exceed
the amount recommended by the directors.

        69.     The directors may from time to time pay to the members such interim dividends as appear
to the directors to be justified by the profits of the company.

        70.    Any dividend may be paid by a company either in cash or in kind only out of its profits.
The payment of dividend in kind shall only be in the shape of shares of listed company held by the
distributing company.

       71.    Dividend shall not be paid out of unrealized gain on investment property credited to profit
and loss account.

       72.      Subject to the rights of persons (if any) entitled to shares with special rights as to
dividends, all dividends shall be declared and paid according to the amounts paid on the shares.

        73.    (1) The directors may, before recommending any dividend, set aside out of the profits
of the company such sums as they think proper as a reserve or reserves which shall, at the discretion of
the directors, be applicable for meeting contingencies, or for equalizing dividends, or for any other
purpose to which the profits of the company may be properly applied, and pending such application may,



                                                 Page 313 of 401
at the like discretion, either be employed in the business of company or be invested in such investments
(other than shares of the company) as the directors may, subject to the provisions of the Act, from time
to time think fit.

        (2)     The directors may carry forward any profits which they may think prudent not to
distribute, without setting them aside as a reserve.

        74.     If several persons are registered as joint-holders of any share, any one of them may give
effectual receipt for any dividend payable on the share.

        75.     (1) Notice of any dividend that may have been declared shall be given in manner
hereinafter mentioned to the persons entitled to share therein but, in the case of a public company, the
company may give such notice by advertisement in a newspaper circulating in the Province in which the
registered office of the company is situate.

        (2)    Any dividend declared by the company shall be paid to its registered shareholders or to
their order. The dividend payable in cash may be paid by cheque or warrant or in any electronic mode to
the shareholders entitled to the payment of the dividend, as per their direction.

        (3)   In case of a listed company, any dividend payable in cash shall only be paid through
electronic mode directly into the bank account designated by the entitled shareholders.

       76.     The dividend shall be paid within the period laid down under the Act.

                                               ACCOUNTS

       77.     The directors shall cause to be kept proper books of account as required under section
220.

        78.     The books of account shall be kept at the registered office of the company or at such
other place as the directors shall think fit and shall be open to inspection by the directors during business
hours.

        79.     The directors shall from time to time determine whether and to what extent and at what
time and places and under what conditions or regulations the accounts and books or papers of the
company or any of them shall be open to the inspection of members not being directors, and no member
(not being a director) shall have any right of inspecting any account and book or papers of the company
except as conferred by law or authorised by the directors or by the company in general meeting.

        80.     The directors shall as required by sections 223 and 226 cause to be prepared and to be laid
before the company in general meeting the financial statements duly audited and reports as are referred to
in those sections.

       81.    The financial statements and other reports referred to in regulation 80 shall be made out in
every year and laid before the company in the annual general meeting in accordance with sections 132
and 223.



                                                 Page 314 of 401
       82.     A copy of the financial statements and reports of directors and auditors shall, at least
twenty-one days preceding the meeting, be sent to the persons entitled to receive notices of general
meetings in the manner in which notices are to be given hereunder.

       83.     The directors shall in all respect comply with the provisions of sections 220 to 227.

       84.     Auditors shall be appointed and their duties regulated in accordance with sections 246 to
249.

                                                NOTICES

        85.     (1) A notice may be given by the company to any member to his registered address or if he
has no registered address in Pakistan to the address, if any, supplied by him to the company for the giving
of notices to him against an acknowledgement or by post or courier service or through electronic means
or in any other manner as may be specified by the Commission.

       (2)    Where a notice is sent by post, service of the notice shall be deemed to be effected by
properly addressing, prepaying and posting a letter containing the notice and, unless the contrary is
proved, to have been effected at the time at which the letter will be delivered in the ordinary course of
post.

        86.     A notice may be given by the company to the joint-holders of a share by giving the notice
to the joint-holder named first in the register in respect of the share.

        87.     A notice may be given by the company to the person entitled to a share in
consequence of the death or insolvency of a member in the manner provided under regulation 85
addressed to them by name, or by the title or representatives of the deceased, or assignees of the
insolvent, or by any like description, at the address, supplied for the purpose by the person claiming to be
so entitled.

        88.     Notice of every general meeting shall be given in the manner hereinbefore authorised to
(a) every member of the company and also to (b) every person entitled to a share in consequence of the
death or insolvency of a member, who but for his death or insolvency would be entitled to receive notice
of the meeting, and (c) to the auditors of the company for the time being and every person who is entitled
to receive notice of general meetings.
                                               WINDING UP
        89.      (1) In the case of members’ voluntary winding up, with the sanction of a special
resolution of the company, and, in the case of creditors’ voluntary winding up, of a meeting of the
creditors, the liquidator shall exercise any of the powers given by sub-section (1) of section 337 of the Act
to a liquidator in a winding up by the Court including inter-alia divide amongst the members, in specie
or kind, the whole or any part of the assets of the company, whether they consist of property of the same
kind or not.




                                                 Page 315 of 401
       (2)     For the purpose aforesaid, the liquidator may set such value as he deems fair upon any
property to be divided as aforesaid and may determine how such division shall be carried out as between
the members or different classes of members.

        (3)     The liquidator may, with the like sanction, vest the whole or any part of such assets in
trustees upon such trusts for the benefit of the contributories as the liquidator, with the like sanction,
thinks fit, but so that no member shall be compelled to accept any shares or other securities whereon
there is any liability.
                                               INDEMNITY
        90.     Every officer or agent for the time being of the company may be indemnified out of the
assets of the company against any liability incurred by him in defending any proceedings, whether civil
or criminal, arising out of his dealings in relation to the affairs of the company, except those brought by the
company against him, in which judgment is given in his favour or in which he is acquitted, or in
connection with any application under section 492 in which relief is granted to him by the Court.
        We, the several persons whose names and addresses are subscribed below, are desirous of being
formed into a company, in pursuance of these articles of association, and we respectively agree to take
the number of shares in the capital of the company set opposite our respective names:

      Name         NIC No. Father’s/ Nationality(ies)                            Usual      residential Number of
   and surname (in case of Husband’s with any former                Occupation   address in full or the shares




                                                                                                                      Signatures
     (present      foreigner, Name in Nationality                                registered/ principal taken by
 & former) in full Passport full                                                 office address for a each
 (in        Block No.)                                                           subscriber other than subscriber
 Letters)                                                                        natural person         (in figures
                                                                                                        and words)




                                  Total number of shares taken (in figures and words)
Dated the                       day of                                  , 20       __

itness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)

 Signature
 Full Name (in Block Letters)
 Father’s/ Husband’s name
 Nationality
 Occupation
 NIC No.
 Usual residential address



                                                  Page 316 of 401
 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)

 (Digital Signature Certificate Provider)

 Name:

Address:


                                                PART II

   REGULATIONS FOR MANAGEMENT OF A SINGLE MEMBER PRIVATE COMPANY
                           LIMITED BY SHARES

                                            INTERPRETATION

       1.    In the interpretation of these articles the following expressions shall have the
following meanings unless repugnant to or inconsistent with the subject articles—

               (a)    “company” or “this company” means                     (SMC-Private) Limited;

               (b)    “directors” or “board of directors” means board of directors consist of only the sole
                      director or more than one directors if so appointed under the relevant provisions of
                      the Act;

               (c)    “member director” means a director who is a member of the company;

               (d)    “non-member director” means an individual who is not a member, but has been
                      nominated under the provisions of the Act;

               (e)    “private company” means a private company having two more members;

               (f)    “sole member” means the single member of the company; and

               (g)    “sole director” means the director of the company who is for the time being the
                      only director and includes a non-member director of the company.

        2.     Unless the context otherwise requires, words or expressions contained in these
regulations shall have the same meaning as in the Act; and words importing the singular shall include the
plural, and vice versa, and words importing the masculine gender shall include feminine, and words
importing persons shall include bodies corporate.




                                               Page 317 of 401
                                           PRELIMINARY

        3.      Any provision of the Act or rules and regulations made thereunder which apply in relation
 to a private company limited by shares incorporated under the Act shall, in the absence of any express
 provision to the contrary, apply in relation to a single member company as it applies in relation to
 such a company which is formed by two or more persons or which has two or more persons as members
 and the provisions contained in part I of Table A of First Schedule in the Act shall be deemed part of
 these articles of association in so far as these are not inconsistent with or repugnant to the provisions
 contained herein below.


                                  SINGLE MEMBER COMPANY


       4.      The company is a single member company and as such being a private company limited
by shares—

               (a)    it shall not invite the public to subscribe for any shares of the company;

               (b)    the company shall not register any share(s) in the name of two or more persons to
                      hold one or more shares jointly; and

               (c)    number of the members of the company shall be limited to one.


                                               SHARES

       5.      The company may alter its share capital in accordance with section 85.

     6.      Share certificate shall be issued under the seal of the Company and shall be signed by the
member director or the non-member director, as the case may be.

                         TRANSFER AND TRANSMISSION OF SHARES

        7.      The company shall not transfer all of the shares of a single member to two or more persons
or part of shares of single member to other person(s) or allot further shares to any person other than the
single member or, at any time, allow transfer of shares or allotment of shares or both resulting in number
of members to become two or more, except for change of status from single member company to private
company and to alter its articles accordingly.

        8.     The single member may transfer all of his shares to a single person whereby the company
shall remain a single member company as it was before such transfer.

        9.     The sole member shall nominate a person who, in the event of death of the sole member,
shall be responsible to.—




                                               Page 318 of 401
              (a)     transfer the shares to the legal heirs of the deceased subject to succession to be
                      determined under the Islamic law of inheritance and in case of a non-Muslim
                      members, as per their respective law; and

              (b)     manage the affairs of the company as a trustee, till such time the title of shares are
                      transferred:

                      Provided that where the transfer by virtue of the above provision is made to more
              than one legal heir, the company shall cease to be a single member company and comply
              with the provisions of section 47 of the Act.

                                       CHANGE OF STATUS

      10.    The company may convert itself from single member private company to a private
company in accordance with the provisions of section 47.

                    MEETINGS, VOTES AND ELECTION OF DIRECTORS

        11.     All the requirements of the Act regarding calling of, holding and approval in general
meeting, board meeting and election of directors in case of a single member company, shall be deemed
complied with; if the decision is recorded in the relevant minutes book and signed by the sole member or
sole director as the case may be.

                                            DIRECTOR(S)


        12.     The company shall always have the sole member or in case it is not a natural person its
nominee, as a director but it may have such number of other director(s) who fulfil the conditions as
specified in section 153.

        13.  The board shall not have the power to remove the member director provided that where
the sole member is not a natural person, it may change its nominee.

        14.    The sole member shall have the power to remove any director, chief executive or
secretary through a resolution.

       15.     The director(s) shall appoint a chief executive in accordance with the provisions of
sections 186 and 187.

       16.    The directors may hold their meetings through tele or video link provided that the minutes
of such meeting are approved and signed subsequently by all the directors.

       17.    The directors shall cause records to be kept and minutes to be made in book or books
with regard to—




                                               Page 319 of 401
               (a)    all resolutions and proceedings of the meeting(s) of directors and Committee(s) of
                      directors, and every director present at any meeting of directors or Committee of
                      directors shall put his signatures in a book to be kept for that purpose;

               (b)    recording the names of the persons present at each meeting of the directors and of
                      any committee of the directors, and the general meeting; and

               (c)    all orders made by the directors and Committee(s) of directors:

                       Provided that all records related to proceedings through video-link shall be
               maintained in accordance with the relevant regulations specified by the Commission
               which shall be appropriately rendered into writing as part of the minute books according
               to the said regulations.
                                            SECRETARY

       18. The company may appoint a secretary who shall be responsible for discharge of duties and
functions normally discharged by a secretary under the corporate laws and secretarial practice.

                          CONTRACTS WITH THE SINGLE MEMBER

       19. Where a single member company enters into a contract with the single member of the
company, the single member company shall, unless the contract is in writing, ensure that the terms of
the contract are forthwith set out in a written memorandum or are recorded in the minutes of the first
meeting of the directors of the company following the making of the contract.

                                       DIVIDENDS AND RESERVES

       20.     The company may declare dividends and pay in accordance with the provisions of the
Act.

                                             ACCOUNTS
       21.     The director(s) shall cause to keep proper books of account in accordance with the
provisions of section 220.

        22.    Auditors shall be appointed and their duties regulated in accordance with the provisions
of sections 246 to 249.
                                             THE SEAL
        23.     The director shall provide for safe custody of the seal and the seal shall not be affixed
to any instrument except by the authority of a resolution of the board of directors or by a committee of
directors authorized in that behalf by the member director or the non-member director and in the presence
of at least member director or the non-member director and of the secretary or such other person as the
directors may appoint for the purpose and the member director or the non-member director and the
secretary or other person as aforesaid shall sign every instrument to which the seal of the company is
affixed in their presence.




                                               Page 320 of 401
                                              WINDING UP

       24.     The company shall follow, in case of its winding up, the relevant provisions of the Act.

                                               INDEMNITY

        25.     Every officer or agent for the time being of the company may be indemnified out of the
assets of the company against any liability incurred by him in defending any proceedings, whether civil
or criminal arising out of his dealings in relation to the affairs of the company, except those brought by the
company against him, in which judgment is given in his favour or in which he is acquitted, or in
connection with any application under section 487 in which relief is granted to him by the Court.

        I, whose name and address is subscribed below, am desirous of forming a company in pursuance
of these articles of association and agree to take the number of shares in the capital of the company as set
opposite my name:
 Name           NIC No.      Father’s/      Nationality                  Usual residential        Number of
 and            (in case     Husband’s      (ies)with                    address in full or the   shares taken
 surname        of           Name in        any former                   registered/ principal    by the
                                                            Occupation




                                                                                                                   Signature
 (present       foreigner    full           Nationality                  office address for a     subscriber (in
 &              Passport                                                 subscriber other than    figures and
 former)        No)                                                      natural person           words)
 in full




 Dated the                    day of                      , 20____
 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)
 Signatures

 Full Name (in Block Letters)
 Father’ s/ Husband’ s name
 Nationality
 Occupation
 NIC No.
 Usual residential address

 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted online)

 (Digital Signature Certificate Provider)

 Name:

 Address:



                                                 Page 321 of 401
                                             TABLE B
                                         (See section 41)

        MEMORANDUM OF ASSOCIATION OF COMPANY LIMITED BY SHARES

       1.    The name of the company is “ABC Textile Limited/(Private) Limited/(SMC-Private)
Limited”.

       2.    The registered office of the company will be situated in the Province of Sindh.

       3.    (i)     The principal line of business of the company shall be to carry-out the
                     manufacturing, sale, import and export of textiles.

             (ii)    Except for the businesses mentioned in sub-clause (iii) hereunder, the
                     company shall engage in all the lawful businesses and shall be authorized to take
                     all necessary steps and actions in connection therewith and ancillary thereto.

             (iii)   Notwithstanding anything contained in the foregoing sub-clauses of this clause
                     nothing contained herein shall be construed as empowering the Company to
                     undertake or indulge, directly or indirectly in the business of a Banking Company,
                     Non-banking Finance Company (Mutual Fund, Leasing, Investment Company,
                     Investment Advisor, Real Estate Investment Trust management company, Housing
                     Finance Company, Venture Capital Company, Discounting Services,
                     Microfinance or Microcredit business), Insurance Business, Modaraba
                     management company, Stock Brokerage business, forex, real estate business,
                     managing agency, business of providing the services of security guards or any
                     other business restricted under any law for the time being in force or as may be
                     specified by the Commission.

             (iv)    It is hereby undertaken that the company shall not:

                     (a)    engage in any of the business mentioned in sub-clause (iii) above or any
                            unlawful operation;

                     (b)    launch multi-level marketing (MLM), Pyramid and Ponzi Schemes, or
                            other related activities/businesses or any lottery business;

                     (c)    engage in any of the permissible business unless the requisite approval,
                            permission, consent or licence is obtained from competent authority as may
                            be required under any law for the time being in force.

       4.    The liability of the members is limited.

       5.      The authorized capital of the company is Rs.1,000,000/- (Rupees one Million only)
divided into 100,000 (one hundred thousand) ordinary shares of Rs.10/- (Rupees ten only) each.




                                             Page 322 of 401
        We, the several persons whose names and addresses are sub-scribed below, are desirous of
being formed into a company, in pursuance of this memorandum of association, and we respectively
agree to take the number of shares in the capital of the company as set opposite our respective names:

Name             NIC No.        Father’s/     Nationality (ies)                       Usual             Number of
and surname      (in case       Husband’s     with any former                         residential       shares taken




                                                                         Occupation
(present         of             Name in       Nationality                             address in full   by      each
& former) in     foreigner,     full                                                  or          the   subscriber




                                                                                                                       Signatures
full (in Block   Passport                                                             registered/       (in figures
Letters)         No)                                                                  principal         and words)
                                                                                      office address
                                                                                      for           a
                                                                                      subscriber
                                                                                      other      than
                                                                                      natural person




                              Total number of shares taken (in figures and words)

  Dated the                      day of                           , 20         ___

 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)


Signature
Full Name (in Block Letters)
Father’ s/ Husband’ s name
Nationality
Occupation
NIC No.
Usual residential address

 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)

 (Digital Signature Certificate Provider)

 Name:

 Address:




                                                Page 323 of 401
(Applicable in case of single member company)

       I, whose name and address is subscribed below, am desirous of forming a company in
pursuance of this memorandum of association and agree to take the number of shares in the capital of
the company as set opposite my name:

  Name and       NIC No. Father’s/       Nationality(ies)                    Usual            Number       of
  surname        (in case Husband’s      with any former                     residential      shares taken by
  (present &     of         Name in full Nationality                         address in full the subscriber
  former) in     foreigner,                                                  or           the (in figures and




                                                                Occupation




                                                                                                                Signature
  full (in       Passport                                                    registered/      words)
  Block          No)                                                         principal
  Letters)                                                                   office address
                                                                             for            a
                                                                             subscriber
                                                                             other       than
                                                                             natural person



 Dated the                  day of                       , 20   ___ ___
 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)

 Signature
 Full Name (in Block Letters)
 Father’ s/ Husband’ s name
 Nationality

 Occupation
 NIC No.
 Usual residential address

 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)

 (Digital Signature Certificate Provider)

 Name:

 Address:




                                              Page 324 of 401
                                              TABLE C
                                            (See section 41)

   MEMORANDUM AND ARTICLES OF ASSOCIATION OF A COMPANY LIMITED BY
            GUARANTEE AND NOT HAVING A SHARE CAPITAL

                               MEMORANDUM OF ASSOCIATION

       1.     The name of the company is “The ABC Hospital (Guarantee) Limited.”

       2.     The registered office of the company will be situated in the Province of Baluchistan.

       3.     (i)     The principal line of business of the company shall be to establish, run and manage
                      hospitals.

              (ii)    Except for the businesses mentioned in sub-clause (iii) hereunder, the company
                      shall engage in all the lawful businesses and shall be authorized to take all necessary
                      steps and actions in connection therewith and ancillary thereto.

              (iii)   Notwithstanding anything contained in the foregoing sub-clauses of this clause
                      nothing contained herein shall be construed as empowering the Company to
                      undertake or indulge, directly or indirectly in the business of a Banking Company,
                      Non-banking Finance Company (Mutual Fund, Leasing, Investment Company,
                      Investment Advisor, Real Estate Investment Trust management company, Housing
                      Finance Company, Venture Capital Company, Discounting Services, Microfinance
                      or Microcredit business), Insurance Business, Modaraba management company,
                      Stock Brokerage business, forex, real estate business, managing agency, business
                      of providing the services of security guards or any other business restricted under
                      any law for the time being in force or as may be specified by the Commission.

              (iv)    It is hereby undertaken that the company shall not:

                      (a)    engage in any of the business mentioned in sub-clause (iii)
                             above or any unlawful operation;

                      (b)     launch multi-level marketing (MLM), Pyramid and Ponzi Schemes, or
                              other related activities/businesses or any lottery business;

                      (c)     engage in any of the permissible business unless the requisite approval,
                              permission, consent or licence is obtained from competent authority as
                              may be required under any law for the time being in force.

       4.     The liability of the members is limited.

        5.      Every member of the company undertakes to contribute to the assets of the company
in the event of its being wound up while he is a member, or within one year afterwards, for payment




                                                Page 325 of 401
of the debts and liabilities of the company contracted before he ceases to be a member, and the costs,
charges and expenses of winding up and for the adjustment of the rights of the contributories among
themselves, such amount as may be required not exceeding…………………… rupees.

       We, the several persons whose names and addresses are subscribed below, are desirous of
being formed into a company, in pursuance of this memorandum of association:

  Name and surname       NIC No. (in     Father’ s/   Nationality(ie                   Usual residential
   (present         &    case       of   Husband’     s) with any                      address in full or
   former) in full (in   foreigner,      s Name in    former                           the registered /




                                                                          Occupation
                         Passport        full         Nationality




                                                                                                            Signatures
   Block Letters)                                                                      principal office
                         No)                                                           address for a
                                                                                       subscriber other
                                                                                       than      natural
                                                                                       person




_Dated the                     day of                              , 20        ___

 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)

  Signature
  Full Name (in Block Letters)
  Father’s/ Husband’s name
  Nationality
  Occupation
  NIC No.
  Usual residential address

 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)

 (Digital Signature Certificate Provider)

 Name:

 Address:




                                                 Page 326 of 401
 (Applicable in case of single member company)

       I, whose name and address is subscribed below, am desirous of forming a company in
pursuance of this memorandum of association:

 Name           and NIC     No. Father’s/ Nationality(ies)                         Usual residential
 surname (present (in case of Husband’s with any former                            address in full or
 & former) in full foreigner, Name in Nationality                                  the    registered/




                                                                      Occupation




                                                                                                        Signature
 (in                Passport    full                                               principal office
 Block Letters)     No)                                                            address for a
                                                                                   subscriber other
                                                                                   than       natural
                                                                                   person




 Dated the                      day of                         , 20       ___

 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)


 Signature
 Full Name (in Block Letters)
 Father’ s/ Husband’ s name
 Nationality
 Occupation
 NIC No.
 Usual residential address

 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)
 (Digital Signature Certificate Provider)
 Name:
 Address:

  ARTICLES OF ASSOCIATION OF A COMPANY LIMITED BY GUARANTEE AND NOT
                        HAVING A SHARE CAPITAL

                                         INTERPRETATION

        1.    (1) In these articles—

                     (a)     “section” means section of the Act;

                     (b)     “the Act” means the Companies Act, 2017.




                                             Page 327 of 401
                       (c)     “the seal” means the common seal or official seal of the company as the case
                               may be.

        (2)     Unless the context otherwise requires, words or expressions contained in these articles
shall bear the same meaning as in the Act or any statutory modification thereof in force at the date at which
these regulations become binding on the company.

                                               MEMBERS

        2.      The number of members with which the company proposes to be registered is 200, but the
directors may, from time to time, whenever the company or the business of the company requires it,
register an increase of members.

      3.     The subscribers to the memorandum and such other persons as the directors shall admit
to membership shall be members of the company.

                                        GENERAL MEETINGS

        4.     A general meeting, to be called annual general meeting, shall be held within sixteen months
from the date of incorporation of the company and thereafter once at least in every year within a period
of one hundred and twenty days following the close of its financial year as may be determined by the
directors.

       5.     All general meetings other than annual general meetings shall be called extraordinary
general meetings.

       6.      The directors may, whenever they think fit, call an extraordinary general meeting.


                             PROCEEDINGS AT GENERAL MEETINGS

      7.      All business shall except the businesses stated in sub-section (2) of section 134 shall be
deemed special that is transacted at a general meeting.

        8.      (1) No business shall be transacted at any general meeting unless a quorum of members
is present at the time when the meeting proceeds to business.

       (2)     Save as otherwise provided, three members present in person or through video-link who
represent not less than twenty five per cent of the total voting power either of their own account or as
proxies in person, shall be a quorum.

       9.       (1) If within half an hour from the time appointed for a meeting a quorum is not present,
the meeting, if called upon the requisition of members shall be dissolved.




                                                Page 328 of 401
       (2)     In any other case, the meeting shall stand adjourned to the same day in the next week, at
the same time and place, or to such other day and such other time and place as the directors may determine.

       (3)     If at the adjourned meeting a quorum is not present within half an hour from the time
appointed for the meeting the members present shall be a quorum.

       10.    (1) The Chairman, if any, of the board of directors shall preside as chairman at every
general meeting of the company.

       (2)     If there is no such chairman, or if he is not present within fifteen minutes after the time
appointed for the meeting or is unwilling to act as chairman of the meeting, the directors present shall
choose one of their number to be chairman of the meeting.

        (3)    If at any meeting no director is willing to act as chairman or if no director is present within
fifteen minutes after the time appointed for the meeting, the members present shall choose one of their
number to be the chairman of the meeting.

       11.      (1) The chairman may, with the consent of any meeting at which a quorum is present
(and shall if so directed by the meeting) adjourn the meeting from time to time and from place to place.

       (2)      No business shall be transacted at any adjourned meeting other than the business left
unfinished at the meeting from which the adjournment took place.

        (3)    When a meeting is adjourned for thirty days or more, notice of the adjourned meeting
shall be given as in the case of an original meeting.

       (4)      Save as aforesaid, it shall not be necessary to give any notice of an adjournment or of the
business to be transacted at an adjourned meeting.

        12.    At any general meeting a resolution put to the vote to the meeting shall be decided on a
show of hands and a declaration by the chairman that a resolution has been carried or carried unanimously,
or by a particular majority, or lost and an entry to that effect in the minutes of proceedings shall be
conclusive evidence of the fact without proof of the number of votes recorded in favour or against the
resolution.

       13.     In the case of an equality of votes, the chairman of the meeting shall have and exercise
a second or casting vote.

                                         VOTES OF MEMBERS

       14.     Every member shall have one vote.

       15.     A member of unsound mind, or in respect of whom an order has been made by any court
having jurisdiction in lunacy, may vote, by his committee or other legal guardian, and any such
committee or guardian may, vote by proxy.




                                                 Page 329 of 401
       16.    No member shall be entitled to vote at any general meeting unless all moneys presently
payable by him to the company have been paid.

        17.    (1) Votes may be given on any matter by the members either personally or through video-
link or by proxy or by means of postal ballot.

        (2)    At any general meeting, the company shall transact such businesses only through postal
ballot as may be notified by the Commission.

       18.    (1) No objection shall be raised to the qualification of any voter except at a meeting or
adjourned meeting at which the vote objected to is given or tendered, and every vote not disallowed at
such meeting shall be valid for all purposes.

      (2)     Any such objection made in due time shall be referred to the chairman of the meeting,
whose decision shall be final and conclusive.

        19.    A vote given in accordance with the terms of an instrument of proxy shall be valid,
notwithstanding the previous death or insanity of the principal or the revocation of the proxy or of the
authority under which the proxy was executed:

       Provided that no intimation in writing of such death, insanity or revocation shall have been
received by the company at its office before the commencement of the meeting or adjourned meeting at
which the proxy is used.

        20.  An instrument appointing a proxy shall be in writing and shall be deposited at the office
of the company or the place of meeting at least forty-eight hours before the meeting at which it is to be
used.

                                             DIRECTORS

        21.    The following subscribers of the memorandum of association shall be the first directors
of the company, so, however, that the number of directors shall not in any case be less than that specified
in section 154 and they shall hold office until the election of directors in the annual general meeting:

       1.      ab

       2.      cd

       3.      ef

       4.      gh

                                    ELECTION OF DIRECTORS

       22.     (i)     The directors of the company shall be elected in accordance with provisions of sub-
                       sections (1) to (4) of section 159 of the Act, in the following manner:




                                                Page 330 of 401
                       (a)    the directors of the company shall be elected by the members of the
                              company in general meeting;

                       (b)    each member shall have votes equal to the number of directors to be elected;

                       (c)    a member may give all his votes to a single candidate or divide them, not
                              being in fractions, between more than one of the candidates in such manner
                              as he may choose; and

                       (d)    the candidate who gets the highest number of votes shall be declared
                              elected as director and then the candidate who gets the next highest number
                              of votes shall be so declared and so on until the total number of directors
                              to be elected has been so elected.

               (ii)    If the number of persons who offer themselves to be elected is not more than the
                       number of directors fixed by the directors under sub-section (1) of section 159, all
                       persons who offered themselves shall be deemed to have been elected as directors.

                              POWER AND DUTIES OF DIRECTORS

       22.     The business of the company shall be managed by the directors, who may exercise all such
powers of the company as are not by the Act required to be exercised by the company in general meeting.

                                 PROCEEDINGS OF DIRECTORS

       23.     (1) The Directors may meet for the dispatch of business, adjourn and otherwise regulate
their meetings, as they think fit.

        (2)    A director may, and the chief executive or secretary on the requisition of a director shall,
at any time, summon a meeting of the directors.

        24.     (1) Save as otherwise expressly provided in the Act, questions arising at any meeting of
the directors shall be decided by a majority of votes.

        (2)    In case of any equality of votes, the chairman shall have and exercise a second or casting
vote.

        25.    The continuing directors may act notwithstanding any vacancy but, if and so long as their
number is reduced below the minimum fixed by the Act, the continuing directors or director may act for
the purpose of increasing the number of directors to that minimum or for summoning a general meeting
of the company, but for no other purpose.

        26.     (1) The directors may elect a chairman and determine the period for which he is to hold
office within the limits prescribed by the Act.




                                                Page 331 of 401
        (2)    If no such chairman is elected, or if at any meeting the Chairman is not present within
fifteen minutes after the time appointed for the meeting or is unwilling to act as chairman, the directors
present may choose one of their number to be chairman of the meeting.

        27.      All acts done by any meeting of the directors or by any person acting as director, shall,
notwithstanding that it may afterwards be discovered that there was some defect in the appointment of
any such director or of any person acting as aforesaid, or that they or any of them were disqualified, be
as valid as if every such director or such person had been duly appointed and was qualified to be a director.

        28.    At least one-third (1/3rd) of the total number of directors or two (2) directors
whichever is higher, for the time being of the company, present personally or through video-link, shall
constitute a quorum.

        28.    A resolution in writing, signed by all the directors for the time being entitled to receive
notice of a meeting, shall be as valid and effectual as if it had been passed at a meeting of the directors
duly convened and held.

                                            MINUTE BOOKS

       29.    The directors shall cause records to be kept and minutes to be made in book or books
with regard to—

               (a)     all resolutions and proceedings of general meeting(s) and the meeting(s) of
                       directors and committee(s) of directors, and every member present at any general
                       meeting and every director present at any meeting of directors or committee of
                       directors shall put his signature in a book to be kept for that purpose;

               (b)     recording the names of the persons present at each meeting of the directors and of
                       any committee of the directors, and the general meeting; and

               (c)     all orders made by the directors and committee(s) of directors:

                       Provided that all records related to proceedings through video-link shall be
               maintained in accordance with the relevant regulations specified by the Commission
               which shall be appropriately rendered into writing as part of the minute books according
               to the said regulations.

                                          CHIEF EXECUTIVE

        30.    Subject to the provisions of the Act, a chief executive shall be appointed by the directors
for such term, at such remuneration and upon such conditions as they may think fit.

                                                THE SEAL

       31.     The directors shall provide for the safe custody of the seal and the seal shall not be affixed
 to any instrument except by the authority of a resolution of the board of directors or by a committee




                                                 Page 332 of 401
of directors authorized in that behalf by the directors and in the presence of at least two directors and of
the secretary or such other person as the directors may appoint for the purpose; and those two directors
and secretary or other person as aforesaid shall sign every instrument to which the seal of the company
is so affixed in their presence.We, the several persons whose names and addresses are subscribed
below, are desirous of being formed into a company, in pursuance of these articles of association:

  Name and surname       NIC No. Father’s/ Nationality (ies)                          Usual residential
  (present & former)     (in case of Husband’s with any former                        address in full or
  in full (in Block      foreigner, Name in Nationality                               the registered




                                                                         Occupation




                                                                                                           Signatures
  Letters)               Passport full                                                 /principal office
                         No.)                                                          address for a
                                                                                       subscriber other
                                                                                       than natural




Dated the                      day of                             , 20       ___ _

Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)


 Signature
 Full Name (in Block Letters)
 Father’s/ Husband’s name
 Nationality
 Occupation
 NIC No.
 Usual residential address

Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)

(Digital Signature Certificate Provider)

Name:

Address:




                                                Page 333 of 401
(Applicable in case of single member company)

       I, whose name and address is subscribed below, am desirous of forming a company in
pursuance of these articles of association:

      Name         NIC No. Father’s/ Nationality(ies)                       Usual      residential
   and surname (in case of Husband’s with any former                        address in full or the
     (present      foreigner, Name in Nationality                           registered/principal
 & former) in full Passport full                                            office address for a




                                                               Occupation




                                                                                                     Signature
 (in        Block No.)                                                      subscriber other than
 Letters)                                                                   natural person




  Dated the                  day of                              , 20       ___

  Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)


 Signature

 Full Name (in Block Letters)
 Father’s/ Husband’s name
 Nationality
 Occupation
 NIC No.
 Usual residential address

Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)

(Digital Signature Certificate Provider)

Name:

Address:




                                             Page 334 of 401
                                      TABLE D
                                    [See section 41]

MEMORANDUM AND ARTICLES OF ASSOCIATION OF A COMPANY LIMITED BY
           GUARANTEE AND HAVING A SHARE CAPITAL

                       MEMORANDUM OF ASSOCIATION

  1.   The name of the company is “The ABC Hospital (Guarantee) Limited.”

  2.   The registered office of the company will be situated in the Province of Baluchistan.

  3.   (i)     The principal business of the company shall be to establish, run and manage
               hospitals.

       (ii)    Except for the businesses mentioned in sub-clause (iii) hereunder, the company
               shall engage in all the lawful businesses and shall be authorized to take all
               necessary steps and actions in connection therewith and ancillary thereto.

       (iii)   Notwithstanding anything contained in the foregoing sub-clauses of this clause
               nothing contained herein shall be construed as empowering the Company to
               undertake or indulge, directly or indirectly in the business of a Banking
               Company, Non-banking Finance Company (Mutual Fund, Leasing, Investment
               Company, Investment Advisor, Real Estate Investment Trust management
               company, Housing Finance Company, Venture Capital Company, Discounting
               Services, Microfinance or Microcredit business), Insurance Business, Modaraba
               management company, Stock Brokerage business, forex, real estate business,
               managing agency, business of providing the services of security guards or any
               other business restricted under any law for the time being in force or as may be
               specified by the Commission.

       (iv)    It is hereby undertaken that the company shall not:

               a.     engage in any of the business mentioned in sub-
                      clause (iii) above or any unlawful operation;

               b.     launch multi-level marketing (MLM), Pyramid and Ponzi Schemes, or
                      other related activities/businesses or any lottery business;

               c.     engage in any of the permissible business unless the requisite approval,
                      permission, consent or licence is obtained from competent authority as may
                      be required under any law for the time being in force.

  4.   The liability of the members is limited.




                                       Page 335 of 401
       5.       Every member of the company undertakes to contribute to the assets of the company in
the event of its being wound up while he is a member, or within one year afterwards, for payment of
the debts and liabilities of the company contracted before he ceases to be a member, and the costs,
charges and expenses of winding up and for the adjustment of the rights of the contributories among
themselves, such amount as may be required not exceeding ___________ rupees.

       6.      The authorized capital of the company is Rs.1,000,000/- (Rupees one Million only) divided
into 100,000 (one hundred thousand) ordinary shares of Rs.10/- (Rupees ten only) each.

        We, the several persons whose names and addresses are subscribed below, are desirous of being
formed into a company, in pursuance of this memorandum of association, and we respectively agree to
take the number of shares in the capital of the company as set opposite our respective names:

  Name       NIC No. Father’s/     Nationality(ies)                     Usual      residential Number
  and        (in case of Husband’s with any former                      address in full or the of shares




                                                           Occupation




                                                                                                           Signatures
  surname foreigner, Name in full Nationality                           registered/principal taken by
  (present Passport                                                     office address for the
 & former)      No.)                                                     a subscriber other subscriber
 in full (in                                                             than natural person (in figures
 Block                                                                                         and
 Letters)                                                                                       words)




                         Total number of shares taken (in figures and words)

Dated the                     day of                      , 20    ___
Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)

 Signature
 Full Name (in Block Letters)
 Father’s/ Husband’s name
 Nationality
 Occupation
 NIC No.
 Usual residential address

 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)
 (Digital Signature Certificate Provider)



                                              Page 336 of 401
Name:
Address:
(Applicable in case of single member company)

       I, whose name and address is subscribed below, am desirous of forming a company in pursuance
of this memorandum of association and agree to take the number of shares in the capital of the company
as set opposite my name:

  Name       NIC No. Father’s/     Nationality(ies)                      Usual          Number      of
  and        (in case of Husband’s with any former                       residential shares taken by
  surname foreigner, Name in Nationality                                 address     in the subscriber
  (present Passport full                                                 full or the (in figures and
 & former) No.)                                                          registered/ words)




                                                           Occupation




                                                                                                         Signature
 in full (in                                                             principal
 Block                                                                   office
 Letters)                                                                address for a
                                                                         subscriber
                                                                         other     than
                                                                         natural
                                                                         person



Dated the                      day of                                   , 20 _____

Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)

Signature
Full Name (in Block Letters)
Father’s/ Husband’s name
Nationality
Occupation
NIC No.
Usual residential address

Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)

(Digital Signature Certificate Provider)

Name:

Address:




                                             Page 337 of 401
      ARTICLES OF ASSOCIATION OF A COMPANY LIMITED BY GUARANTEE AND
                          HAVING A SHARE CAPITAL

                                           PRELIMINARY

       1.      (1) In these regulations—

               (a)    “section” means section of the Act;

               (b)    “the Act” means the Companies Act, 2017; and

               (c)     “the seal” means the common seal or official seal of the company as the case may
                       be.
        (2)    Unless the context otherwise requires, words or expressions contained in these
regulations shall have the same meaning as in the Act; and words importing the singular shall include the
plural, and vice versa, and words importing the masculine gender shall include feminine, and words
importing persons shall include bodies corporate.
        2.     The number of members with which the company proposes to be registered is 100, but the
directors may from time to time register an increase of members.
        3.      All the regulations in Table A of this Schedule shall be deemed to be incorporated with
these articles and shall apply to the company.
        We, the several persons whose names and addresses are subscribed below, are desirous of
being formed into a company, in pursuance of these articles of association, and we respectively agree to
take the number of shares in the capital of the company as set opposite our respective names:

  Name       NIC No. Father’s/     Nationality(ies)                           Usual             Number of
  and        (in case of Husband’s with any former                            residential       shares taken
  surname foreigner, Name in full Nationality                                 address in full by         the
                                                                 Occupation




                                                                                                               Signatures
  (present Passport                                                           or            the subscriber
 & former) No)                                                                registered/       (in
 in full (in                                                                  principal office figures and
 Block                                                                        address for a words)
 Letters)                                                                     subscriber
                                                                               other      than
                                                                               natural person




                         Total number of shares taken (in figures and words)

 Dated the                   _ day of                     , 20
 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)



                                               Page 338 of 401
 Signature
 Full Name (in Block Letters)
 Father’s/ Husband’s name
 Nationality
 Occupation
 NIC No.
 Usual residential address
 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)
 (Digital Signature Certificate Provider)
 Name:
 Address:
 (Applicable in case of single member company)
        I, whose name and address is subscribed below, am desirous of forming a company in pursuance
of these articles of association and agree to take the number of shares in the capital of the company as set
opposite my name:
 Name and NIC No. (in Father’s/          Nationality(ies)         Usual            Number of
 surname case            of Husband’s with any former             residential      shares taken
 (present foreigner, Name in full Nationality                     address in fullby           the

                                                                  Occupation
   &          Passport                                            or            thesubscriber




                                                                                                 Signature
   former) No)                                                    registered/      (in figures
   in full                                                        principal officeand words)
                                                                  address for a
                                                                   subscriber
                                                                   other      than
                                                                   natural person


 Dated the                     day of                  , 20

 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)

 Signature
 Full Name (in Block Letters)
 Father’ s/ Husband’ s name
 Nationality
 Occupation
 NIC No.
 Usual residential address
 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)
 (Digital Signature Certificate Provider)
 Name:
 Address:



                                                Page 339 of 401
                                              TABLE E
                                            (See section 41)

  MEMORANDUM AND ARTICLES OF ASSOCIATION OF AN UNLIMITED COMPANY
                     HAVING A SHARE CAPITAL

                               MEMORANDUM OF ASSOCIATION

       1.     The name of the company is “Khyber Fruit Products Company Unlimited”.

       2.     The registered office of the company will be situated in the Province of Sindh.

       3.     (i)     The principal line of business of the company shall be preservation, canning and
                      marketing of fruit and fruit products.

              (ii)    Except for the businesses mentioned in sub-clause (iii) hereunder, the company
                      shall engage in all the lawful businesses and shall be authorized to take all necessary
                      steps and actions in connection therewith and ancillary thereto.

              (iii)   Notwithstanding anything contained in the foregoing sub-clauses of this clause
                      nothing contained herein shall be construed as empowering the Company to
                      undertake or indulge, directly or indirectly in the business of a Banking Company,
                      Non-banking Finance Company (Mutual Fund, Leasing, Investment Company,
                      Investment Advisor, Real Estate Investment Trust management company, Housing
                      Finance Company, Venture Capital Company, Discounting Services, Microfinance
                      or Microcredit business), Insurance Business, Modaraba management company,
                      Stock Brokerage business, forex, real estate business, managing agency, business
                      of providing the services of security guards or any other business restricted under
                      any law for the time being in force or as may be specified by the Commission.

              (iv)    It is hereby undertaken that the company shall not:

                      (a)    engage in any of the business mentioned in sub-clause (iii) above or any
                             unlawful operation;

                      (b)    launch multi-level marketing (MLM), Pyramid and Ponzi Schemes, or
                             other related activities/businesses or any lottery business;

                      (c)    engage in any of the permissible business unless the requisite approval,
                             permission, consent or licence is obtained from competent authority as
                             may be required under any law for the time being in force.

       4.     The liability of the members is unlimited.

       5.      The authorized capital of the company is Rs.1,000,000/- (Rupees one Million only) divided
into 100,000 (one hundred thousand) ordinary shares of Rs.10/- (Rupees ten only) each.




                                                Page 340 of 401
        We, the several persons whose names and addresses are subscribed below, are desirous of
being formed into a company, in pursuance of this memorandum of association, and we respectively
agree to take the number of shares in the capital of the company as set opposite our respective names:

  Name       NIC No. Father’s/     Nationality(ies)                    Usual              Number of
  and        (in case of Husband’s with any former                      residential       shares taken
  surname foreigner, Name in full Nationality                           address in full by         the
  (present Passport                                                     or           the subscriber




                                                          Occupation




                                                                                                         Signatures
 & former) No)                                                          registered/       (in
 in full (in                                                            principal office figures and
 Block                                                                  address for a      words)
 Letters)                                                              subscriber other
                                                                       than       natural
                                                                       person




                         Total number of shares taken (in figures and words)



Dated the                     day of                      , 20    ___
Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)


 Signature

 Full Name (in Block Letters)
 Father’ s/ Husband’ s name
 Nationality
 Occupation
 NIC No.
 Usual residential address
 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)
 (Digital Signature Certificate Provider)
 Name:
 Address:




                                              Page 341 of 401
 (Applicable in case of single member company)

        I, whose name and address is subscribed below, am desirous of forming a company in pursuance
of this memorandum of association and agree to take the number of shares in the capital of the company
as set opposite my name:


  Name       NIC No. Father’s/     Nationality(ies)                    Usual residential Number of
  and        (in case of Husband’s with any former                     address in full or shares taken
  surname foreigner, Name in full Nationality                          the registered/ by          the




                                                         Occupation
  (present Passport                                                    principal office subscriber




                                                                                                         Signature
 & former) No)                                                         address for a      (in figures
 in full (in                                                            subscriber other and words)
 Block                                                                  than     natural
  Letters)                                                              person




 Dated the                     day of                                 , 20   ___

 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)

 Signature
 Full Name (in Block Letters)
 Father’s/ Husband’s name
 Nationality
 Occupation
 NIC No.
 Usual residential address
 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)

 (Digital Signature Certificate Provider)

 Name:

 Address:




                                              Page 342 of 401
      ARTICLES OF ASSOCIATION OF AN UNLIMITED COMPANY PRELIMINARY

        1.     (1) In these regulations

               (a)    “section” means section of the Act;

               (b)    “the Act” means the Companies Act, 2017; and

               (c)    “the seal” means the common seal or official seal of the company as the case may
                      be.

        (2)     Unless the context otherwise requires, words or expressions contained in these regulations
shall have the same meaning as in the Act; and words importing the singular shall include the plural, and
vice versa, and words importing the masculine gender shall include feminine, and words importing
persons shall include bodies corporate.

        2.      All the regulations in Table A of this Schedule shall be deemed to be incorporated with
these articles and shall apply to the company.

         We, the several persons whose names and addresses are subscribed below, are desirous of
being formed into a company, in pursuance of these articles of association, and we respectively agree to
take the number of shares in the capital of the company as set opposite our respective names:
     Name       NIC No.      Father’s/     Nationality(ies)        Usual          Number of
      and       (in case    Husband’s          with any            residential
   surname                  Name in             former                               shares
                   of                                              address   in     taken  by
   (present    foreigner,   full             Nationality
       &        Passport                                           full or the         the




                                                                                                   Signatures
                                                                 Occupation




  former) in      No)                                              registered/     subscriber
    full (in                                                       principal       (in figures
     Block                                                         office         and words)
   Letters)                                                        address for a
                                                                   subscriber
                                                                   other than
                                                                   natural
                                                                   person




                            Total number of shares taken (in figures and words)

 Dated the                     day of                            , 20         ___

Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)




                                               Page 343 of 401
 Signature
 Full Name (in Block Letters)
 Father’s/ Husband’s name
 Nationality
 Occupation
 NIC No.
 Usual residential address

 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)

 (Digital Signature Certificate Provider)

 Name:

 Address:

 (Applicable in case of single member company)

        I, whose name and address is subscribed below, am desirous of forming a company in pursuance
of these articles of association and agree to take the number of shares in the capital of the company as set
opposite my name:
 Name and NIC No. Father’s/     Nationality(ies)                           Usual              Number of
 surname (in case of Husband’s with any former                             residential        shares taken
 (present foreigner, Name    in Nationality                                address in full or by       the
         & Passport full                                                   the registered/ subscriber
                                                              Occupation




 former) in No)                                                            principal office (in figures




                                                                                                             Signature
 full    (in                                                               address for a and words)
 Block                                                                     subscriber other
 Letters)                                                                  than      natural
                                                                           person




 Dated the                      day of                                 , 20     ___

Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)




                                                Page 344 of 401
  Signature

  Full Name (in Block Letters)

  Father’s/ Husband’s name

  Nationality

  Occupation

  NIC No.

  Usual residential address

 Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)
 (Digital Signature Certificate Provider)

 Name:

 Address:
                                        TABLE F
                                      (See section 42)

MEMORANDUM AND ARTICLES OF ASSOCIATION OF A COMPANY LICENCED
                     UNDER SECTION 42

              [A company set up under Section 42 of the Companies Act, 2016]

                         MEMORANDUM OF ASSOCIATION

 I.      The name of the company is “XYZ Association”.

 II.     The registered office of the company will be situated in the Province of Baluchistan.

 III.    The object for which the company is established, are as follows:

 (1)     To promote education in the country by establishing, maintaining, assisting, running and
         managing schools and colleges for the low income segment in society in rural and urban
         areas.

 (2)     To ……………

 (3)     To ……………



                                            Page 345 of 401
IV.    In order to achieve its object, the company shall exercise the following powers:

(1)    To appeal, solicit or accept contributions, donations, grants and gifts, in cash or in kind,
       from lawful sources and to apply the same or income thereof for the objects of the
       company.

(2)    To open and operate bank accounts in the name of the company and to draw, make, accept,
       endorse, execute and issue promissory notes, bills, cheques and other instruments.

(3)    To acquire, alter, improve, charge, take on lease, exchange, hire, sell, let or otherwise
       dispose of any movable or immovable property and any rights and privileges whatsoever
       for any of the objects or purposes specified herein above. Provided that the company shall
       not undertake the business of real estate or housing schemes.

(4)    To borrow or raise money, with or without security, required for the purposes of the
       company upon such terms and in such manner as may be determined by the company for
       the promotion of its objects.

(5)    To mortgage the assets of the company and / or render guarantee for the performance of
       any contract made, discharge of any obligation incurred or repayment of any moneys
       borrowed by the company.

(6)    To purchase, sell, exchange, take on lease, hire or otherwise acquire lands, construct,
       maintain or alter any building and any other moveable or immovable properties or any
       right or privileges necessary or convenient for the use and purposes of the company.

(7)    To nominate delegates and advisors to represent the company at conferences,
       government bodies and other gatherings.

(8)    To co-operate with other charitable trusts, societies, associations, institutions or
       companies formed for all or any of these objects and statutory authorities operating for
       similar purposes and to exchange information and advice with them.

(9)    To pay out of the funds of the company the costs, charges and expenses of and
       incidental to the formation and registration of the company.

(10)   To invest the surplus moneys of the company not immediately required, in such a manner
       as may from time to time be determined by the company.

(11)   To create, establish, administer and manage funds including endowment fund conducive
       for the promotion of the objects of the company.

(12)   To enter into agreements, contracts and arrangements with organizations, institutions,
       bodies and individuals for the purpose of carrying out the functions and activities of the
       company.



                                        Page 346 of 401
(13)   To take such actions as are considered necessary to raise the status or to promote the
       efficiency of the company.

(14)   To conduct, hold and arrange symposia, seminars, conferences, lectures, workshops and
       dialogue and to print, publish and prepare journals, magazines, books, circulars, reports,
       catalogues and other works relating to any of the objects of or to the work done by
       thecompany, subject to the permission, if required of the relevant authorities.

(15)   To do all other such lawful acts and things as are incidental or conducive to the
       attainment of the above objects or any one of them.

V.     The company shall achieve the above said objects subject to the following conditions:—

(1)    The company is formed as a public company limited by guarantee.

(2)    Payment of remuneration by the company or its subsidiary entity for services or
       otherwise to members of the company or to their family members whether holding an
       office in the company or its subsidiary or not, shall be prohibited provided that the
       prohibition shall continue to apply for a period of five years after a member quits from
       his membership of the company.

(3)    No change in the Memorandum and Articles of Association shall be made except with
       the prior approval of the Securities and Exchange Commission of Pakistan.

(4)    Patronage of any government or authority, express or implied, shall not be claimed unless
       such government or authority has signified its consent thereto in writing.

(5)    The company shall not itself set up or otherwise engage in industrial and commercial
       activities or in any manner function as a trade organization.

(6)    The company shall not exploit or offend the religious susceptibilities of the people.

(7)    The company shall not, directly or indirectly, participate in any political campaign for
       elective public office or other political activities akin to those of a political party or
       contribute any funds or resources to any political party or any individual or body for any
       political purpose.

(8)    The subscribers to the Memorandum and Articles of Association of the company shall
       continue to be the members of the company unless allowed by the Commission on
       application to quit as members.

(9)    The company shall not appoint any person as director or chief executive unless he meets
       the fit and proper criteria as specified by the Commission from time to time.




                                       Page 347 of 401
       (10)   The company in all its letterheads, documents, sign boards, and other modes of
              communication, shall with its name, state the phrase “A company set up under section 42
              of the Companies Act, 2017.”

       (11)   The income and any profits of the company, shall be applied solely towards the
              promotion of objects of the company and no portion thereof shall be distributed, paid or
              transferred directly or indirectly by way of dividend, bonus or otherwise by way of profit
              to the members of the company or their family members.

       (12)   The company shall not appeal, solicit, receive or accept funds, grants, contributions,
              donations or gifts, in cash or in kind, from foreign sources except with the prior
              permission, clearance or approval from the relevant public authorities as may be required
              under any relevant statutory regulations and laws. No funds shall be received otherwise
              than through proper banking channels i.e., through crossed cheque, pay-order, bank draft.

       (13)   The company shall close its accounts on 30th of June each year.

       (14)   The company shall make no investment, whatsoever, in its associated companies except
              with the prior approval of the Commission and subject to such conditions as it may deem
              fit to impose.

       (15)   The company shall not undertake any trading activities and shall conform to relevant
              statutory regulations and laws.

       (16)   Notwithstanding anything stated in any object clause, the company shall obtain such
              other licences, permissions, or approvals of the relevant public authorities as may be
              required under any relevant statutory regulations and laws for the time being in force, to
              carry out its specific object.

       (17)   The company shall comply with such conditions as may be imposed by the Securities and
              Exchange Commission of Pakistan from time to time.

       VI.    The territories to which the object of the company shall extend are declared to include
whole of Pakistan.

       VII.   The liability of the members is limited.

        VIII. Every member of the company undertakes that he shall contribute to the assets of the
company in the event of its being wound up while he is a member or within one year afterwards, for
payment of the debts or liabilities of the company contracted before he ceases to be a member and the
costs, charges and expenses of winding up and for adjustment of the rights of the contributories among
themselves such amount as may be required but not exceeding Rs.100,000/- (Rupees One Hundred
Thousand Only).

       IX.   On the revocation of licence of a company under section 42 of the Companies Act, 2017,
by the Commission:



                                              Page 348 of 401
               (a)    the company shall stop all its activities except the recovery of money owed to it,
                      if any;

               (b)    the company shall not solicit or receive donations from any source; and

               (c)    all the assets of the company after the satisfaction of all debts and liabilities, shall
                      be transferred to another company licenced under section 42 of the Companies Act,
                      2017, preferably having similar or identical objects to those of the company, within
                      ninety days from the revocation of the licence or such extended period as may be
                      allowed by the Commission:

       Provided that a reasonable amount to meet the expenses of voluntary winding up or making an
application to the registrar for striking the name of the company off the register may be retained by the
company.

        X.       In the case of winding up or dissolution of the company, any surplus assets or property,
after the satisfaction of all debts and liabilities, shall not be paid or disbursed among the members, but
shall be given or transferred to some other company established under section 42 of the Companies Act,
2017, preferably having similar or identical objects to those of the company and with the approval
required under the relevant provisions of the Income Tax Act, 2001 and under intimation to the Securities
and Exchange Commission of Pakistan.

        We, the several, persons whose names and addresses are subscribed below are desirous of
being formed into a company in pursuance of this memorandum of association:—
 Name and surname NIC No. Father’s/               Nationality(ies)      Usual
 (present & former) in (in case of Husband’s with any former            residential
 full (in Block Letters) foreigner, Name       in Nationality           address in full or
                                                                               Occupation


                         Passport full                                  the registered/




                                                                                                     Signatures
                         No)                                            principal office
                                                                        address for a
                                                                        subscriber other
                                                                        than      natural
                                                                        person




 Dated the                     day of                             , 20   ___

Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)




                                                Page 349 of 401
Signature


Full Name (in Block Letters)

Father’ s/ Husband’ s name

Nationality

Occupation

NIC No.

Usual residential address




Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)

(Digital Signature Certificate Provider)

Name:

Address:




                                           Page 350 of 401
           [A company set up under Section 42 of the Companies Act, 2017]

                          ARTICLES OF ASSOCIATION

1.   In these Articles, unless the context or the subject matter otherwise requires:

     (a)      “the company” means ‘ XYZ Association’.

     (b)      “the office” means the registered office for the time being of the company.

     (c)      “the directors” mean the directors for the time being of the company.

     (d)      “the seal” means the common seal or official seal of the company as the case may
              be.

     (e)      “the Act” means the Companies Act, 2017.

     (f)      “the Commission” means the Securities and Exchange Commission of Pakistan.

     (g)      “the registrar” means the registrar of companies as defined in the Companies Act,
              2017.

     (h)      “the register” means the register of the members to be kept in pursuant to section
              119 of the Act.

     (i)      “chief executive” means the chief executive of the company.

     (j)      “secretary” means the company secretary of the company.

     (k)      “memorandum” means the memorandum of association of the company.

     (l)      “person” includes an individual, company, corporation and body corporate.

     (m)      “articles” means the articles of association of the company.

     (n)      “board” means the board of directors of the company.

     (o)      “year” used in the context of financial matters shall mean financial year of the
              company.
     (p)      Expressions referring to writing shall be construed as including references to
              typewriting, printing, lithography, photography and other modes of representing or
              reproducing words in visible form.

     (q)      Words importing the singular number include the plural number and vice versa and
              words importing the masculine gender include the feminine gender.




                                      Page 351 of 401
              (r)     Unless the context otherwise requires words or expressions contained in these
                      Articles shall be of the same meaning as in the Act or any statutory modification
                      thereof in force at the date at which these Articles become binding on the company.

                                           MEMBERSHIP

       2.      The number of members with which the company proposes to be registered is ……, but the
minimum number of members shall not be, at any time, less than three (3). However, the directors may,
from time to time, whenever the company or the business of the company requires, increase the number
of members.

       3.     The company in general meeting may from time to time lay down the qualifications and
conditions subject to which any person or class of persons shall be admitted to membership of the
company.

       4.      The rights and privileges of a member shall not be transferable and shall cease on his
death or otherwise ceasing to be a member.

      5.     The subscribers to the memorandum and such other persons as the directors shall admit
to membership shall be members of the company.

       6.     One person shall have the right to hold one membership.

                                 ADMISSION TO MEMBERSHIP

        7.      The application for seeking membership of the company shall be required to be
seconded by an existing member whereupon the board of directors shall decide the matter of his
admission as member or otherwise within ninety days of making of such application. No minor or
lunatic shall be admitted as a member of the company.

      8.     Every person, upon applying for admission to membership, shall submit to the
company an undertaking on the stamp paper of appropriate value that:

              (a)     I have not been associated with any money laundering or terrorist financing
                      activities and neither have approved receipt of nor received such monies and
                      likewise neither have approved disbursement of nor disbursed such monies in any
                      manner for money laundering or terrorist financing purposes; and

              (b)     I have not been associated with any illegal banking business, deposit taking or
                      financial dealings or any other illegal activities.

     9.      The board shall subject to the Articles, accept or reject any application for admission to
membership. The board’s decision shall be final and it shall not be liable to give any reasons thereof.




                                              Page 352 of 401
                       CESSATION / EXPULSION FROM MEMBERSHIP

       10.     A member renders himself liable to expulsion or suspension by the board if:

               (a)    he refuses or neglects to give effect to any decision of the board; or

               (b)    he infringes any of the regulations of the articles; or

               (c)    he is declared by a court of competent jurisdiction to have committed a fraud,
                      or to be bankrupt, or to be insane or otherwise incompetent; or

               (d)    he is held by the Committee of the company to have been guilty of any act
                      discreditable to a member of the company; or

               (e)    he is acting or is threatening to act in a manner prejudicial to the objects, interest
                      or functioning of the company or any other institute, body corporate, society,
                      association or institution in which the company has an interest.

        11.     The company in general meeting may, on an appeal of the aggrieved member and
after giving an opportunity of hearing, annul or modify the decision of the board with regard to expulsion
of the member by resolution supported by two-thirds majority. The person expelled shall be reinstated
as a member from the date of the resolution of the general meeting annulling the decision of the board.

       12.     Termination of membership shall occur automatically:
               (a) in the event of the death of a member; and
               (b) in the event a member fails to pay any amount due by him to the company within
                   three (3) months after such obligation has become due.

                          GENERAL MEETINGS AND PROCEEDINGS

                                  ANNUAL GENERAL MEETING

        13.      A general meeting to be called annual general meeting, shall be held, in accordance with
the provisions of Section 132, within sixteen months (16) months from the date of incorporation of the
company and thereafter once at least in every calendar year within a period of four (4) months following
the close of its financial year as may be determined by the directors.

                                  OTHER GENERAL MEETINGS

        14.     All other meetings of the members of the company other than an annual general meeting
shall be called “extraordinary general meetings”.




                                                Page 353 of 401
                            EXTRAORDINARY GENERAL MEETINGS

        15.    The directors may, whenever they think fit, call an extraordinary general meeting, and
extraordinary general meeting shall also be called on such requisition(s), as is provided by section 133
of the Act.
                              NOTICE OF GENERAL MEETINGS

        16.    Twenty-one (21) days’ notice at least (exclusive of the day on which the notice is served
or deemed to be served, but inclusive of the day for which notice is given) specifying the place, the day
and the hour of meeting and, in case of special business, the general nature of that business, shall be
given in the manner provided by the Act for the general meeting, to such persons as are, under the Act or
the Articles of the company, entitled to receive such notices from the company but the accidental
omission to give notice to or the non-receipt of notice by any member shall not invalidate the proceedings
at any general meeting.

                                          SPECIAL BUSINESS

        17.      All business that is transacted at an extra ordinary general meeting and that is
transacted at an annual general meeting with the exception of the consideration of the financial statements
and the reports of the director and auditors, the election of directors, the appointment of and the fixing of
remuneration of the auditors shall be deemed special business.

                                                QUORUM

       18.     No business shall be transacted at any general meeting unless a quorum of members
representing not less than two (2) members or twenty-five percent of the total number of members of the
company, whichever is greater, is present personally or through video-link at the time when the meeting
proceeds to business—

               (a)     in the case of a public listed company, unless the articles provide for a larger
                       number, not less than ten members present personally, or through video-link who
                       represent not less than twenty-five percent of the total voting power, either of their
                       own account or as proxies;

               (b)     in the case of any other company having share capital, unless the articles provide
                       for a larger number, two members present personally, or through video-link who
                       represent not less than twenty-five percent of the total voting power, either of their
                       own account or as proxies.

                          EFFECT OF QUORUM NOT BEING PRESENT

       19.      If within half an hour from the time appointed for the meeting a quorum is not present,
the meeting, if called upon the requisition of members, shall be dissolved and in any other case, it shall
stand adjourned to the same day in the next week at the same time and place and if at the adjourned
meeting a quorum is not present within half an hour from the time appointed for the meeting, the members
present in person or through video-link, being not less than two, shall be a quorum.



                                                 Page 354 of 401
                                      CHAIRMAN OF MEETING

        20.    The chairman of the board of directors, shall preside as chairman at every general meeting
of the company, but if he is not present within fifteen minutes after the time appointed for the meeting, or
is unwilling to act as chairman, any of the directors present may be elected to be the chairman and if
none of the directors present is willing to act as chairman, the members present shall choose one of their
number to be the chairman.

                                            ADJOURNMENT

        21.     The chairman may, with the consent of any meeting at which a quorum is present (and
shall if so directed by the meeting), adjourn the meeting from time to time but no business shall be
transacted at any adjourned meeting other than the business left unfinished at the meeting from which
the adjournment took place. When a meeting is adjourned for fifteen (15) days or more, notice of the
adjourned meeting shall be given as in the case of an original meeting. Save as aforesaid, it shall not be
necessary to give any notice of an adjournment or of the business to be transacted at an adjourned
meeting.

                                                 VOTING

        22.    At any general meeting a resolution put to the vote to the meeting shall be decided on a
show of hands and a declaration by the chairman that a resolution has been carried, or carried
unanimously, or by a particular majority, or lost, and an entry to that effect in the book of the proceedings
of the company shall be conclusive evidence of the fact, without proof of the number or proportion of
the votes recorded in favour of or against that resolution.

                                            CASTING VOTE

       23.     In the case of an equality of votes, the chairman of the meeting shall have and exercise
a second or casting vote.

                                        VOTES OF MEMBERS

        24.    (1) Votes may be given on any matter by the members either personally or through video-
link or by proxy or by means of postal ballot.

        (2)    At any general meeting, the company shall transact such businesses only through postal
ballot as may be notified by the Commission.

                                        OBJECTION TO VOTE

        25.   No objection shall be raised to the qualification of any voter except at the meeting or
adjourned meeting at which the vote objected to is given and tendered, and every vote not disallowed at
such meeting shall be valid for all purposes. Any such objection made in due time shall be referred to
the chairman of the meeting, whose decision shall be final and conclusive.




                                                 Page 355 of 401
                             MANAGEMENT AND ADMINISTRATION

      26.      There shall be, for the overall management of the company’s affairs, a board of directors,
which will be elected from amongst the members.

       27.     One term of the board of directors would be for three years.

      28.   No person shall be appointed as a director if he is ineligible to hold office of director of a
company under section 153 of the Act.

      29.    No member / person shall hold more than one office in the company, such as those of
Chief Executive / director or company secretary simultaneously.

                                         FIRST DIRECTORS

        30.    The following subscribers of the memorandum of association shall be the first directors
of the company, so, however, that the number of directors shall not in any case be less than that specified
in section 154 and they shall hold office until the election of directors in the annual general meeting:

       1.      ab
       2.      cd
       3.      ef
       4.      gh

                                     NUMBER OF DIRECTORS

        31.     The number of directors shall not be less than three (3) and not more than nine (9). The
directors of a company shall, subject to section 154, fix the number of elected directors of the company
not later than thirty-five days before the convening of the general meeting at which directors are to be
elected, and the number so fixed shall not be changed except with the prior approval of a general meeting
of the company such that the minimum number of directors shall not be, at any time, less than three (3).
A retiring director shall be eligible for re- election.

                         PROCEDURE FOR ELECTION OF DIRECTORS

       32.     (i)     The directors of the company shall be elected in accordance with provisions of sub-
                       sections (1) to (4) of section 159 of the Act, in the following manner:

                       (a)    the directors of the company shall be elected by the members of the
                              company in general meeting;

                       (b)    each member shall have votes equal to the number of directors to be elected;




                                                Page 356 of 401
                       (c)    a member may give all his votes to a single candidate or divide them, not
                              being in fractions, between more than one of the candidates in such manner
                              as he may choose; and

                       (d)    the candidate who gets the highest number of votes shall be declared elected
                              as director and then the candidate who gets the next highest number of
                              votes shall be so declared and so on until the total number of directors to
                              be elected has been so elected.

               (ii)    If the number of persons who offer themselves to be elected is not more than the
                       number of directors fixed by the directors under sub-section (1) of section 159, all
                       persons who offered themselves shall be deemed to have been elected as directors.

             CASUAL VACANCY AND ALTERNATE OR SUBSTITUTE DIRECTORS

       33.     (a)     Any casual vacancy occurring among the directors may be filled up by the directors
                       within thirty days of the vacancy and the person so appointed shall hold office for
                       the remainder of the term of director in whose place he is appointed.

               (b)     An existing director may, with the approval of the board of directors, appoint
                       an alternate director to act for him during his absence from Pakistan of not less than
                       ninety days. The alternate director so appointed shall ipso facto vacate office if and
                       when the director appointing him returns to Pakistan.

               (c)     A person shall be eligible for appointment against casual vacancy or to act as
                       alternate director only if he is a member and is not already a director of the
                       company.

                                     REMOVAL OF DIRECTOR

      34.     The company may remove a director through a resolution passed in a general meeting
of members in accordance with section 163 of the Act.

                                    CHAIRMAN OF THE BOARD

       35.    The directors may elect one of their members as the Chairman of the board. The
Chairman of the board shall preside at all meetings of the board but, if at any meeting the chairman is not
present within ten minutes after the time appointed for holding the same or is unwilling to act as
chairman, the directors present in person or through video-link may choose one of their member to be
chairman of the meeting.

                             DUTIES AND POWERS OF THE BOARD

         36.   The board shall conduct and manage all the business affairs of the company, exercise
all the powers, authorities and discretion of the company, obtain or oppose the application by others for
all concessions, grants, charters and legislative acts and authorization from any government or authority,



                                                Page 357 of 401
enter into such contracts and do all such other things as may be necessary for carrying on the business of
the company, except only such of them as under the statutes and Articles are expressly directed to be
exercised by general meetings and (without in any way prejudicing or limiting the extent of such general
powers) shall have the following special powers and duties:

               (a)     To present to the general meeting of the company any matters which the directors
                       feel are material to the company, its objects or interests or affecting the interests of
                       members and make suitable recommendations regarding such matters.

               (b)     To regulate, through articles, the admission of members.

               (c)     To appoint, remove or suspend the legal advisors, bankers, or other officers on such
                       terms and conditions as they shall think fit and as may be agreed upon.

               (d)     To determine the remuneration, terms and conditions and powers of such
                       appointees and from time to time, revoke such appointments and name another
                       person of similar status to such office except for the auditor in which case the
                       relevant provisions of the Act shall be followed.

               (e)     To delegate, from time to time, to any such appointee all or any of the powers and
                       authority of the board and to reconstitute, restrict or vary such delegations.

               (f)     To appoint any qualified person as a first auditor(s) subject to provisions of the
                       Act;

               (g)     To agree upon and pay any expenses in connection with the company’s objects and
                       undertakings and pay all the expenses incidental to the formation and regulation
                       of the company.

               (h)     To constitute from time to time committee(s) from among themselves or co-opt
                       other persons for the purpose and delegate to them such functions and powers as
                       the board may deem fit to carry out the objects of the company.

               (i)     Subject to the provisions of section 183 of the Act, the directors may exercise all
                       the powers of the company to borrow and mortgage or charge its undertaking,
                       property and assets (both present and future) or issue securities, whether
                       outright security for any debt, liability or obligation of the company.

                                  PROCEEDINGS OF THE BOARD

        37.     The board shall meet at least once in each quarter of every year, subject thereto meetings
of the board shall be held at such time as the directors shall think fit. All meetings of the board shall be
held at the registered office of the company or at such other place as the board shall from time to
time determine. The meetings of the board shall be called by the chairman on his own accord or at the
request of the chief executive (or any three directors) by giving at least seven (7) days’ notice to the
members of the board.




                                                 Page 358 of 401
        38.    At least one-third (1/3rd) of the total number of directors or two (2) directors
whichever is higher, for the time being of the company, present personally or through video-link, shall
constitute a quorum.

        39.     Save as otherwise expressly provided in the Act, every question at meetings of the board
shall be determined by a majority of votes of the directors present in person or through video-link, each
director having one vote. In case of an equality of votes or tie, the chairman shall have a casting vote in
addition to his original vote as a director.

       40.    The directors shall cause records to be kept and minutes to be made in book or books
with regard to—

               (a)     all resolutions and proceedings of general meeting(s) and the meeting(s) of
                       directors and committee(s) of directors, and every member present at any general
                       meeting and every director present at any meeting of directors or committee of
                       directors shall put his signature in a book to be kept for that purpose;

               (b)     recording the names of the persons present at each meeting of the directors and of
                       any committee of the directors, and the general meeting; and

               (c)     all orders made by the directors and committee(s) of directors:

                              Provided that all records related to proceedings through video-link shall be
                       maintained in accordance with the relevant regulations specified by the
                       Commission which shall be appropriately rendered into writing as part of the
                       minute books according to the said regulations.

                            RESOLUTION THROUGH CIRCULATION

        41.    A resolution in writing signed by all directors for the time being entitled to receive notice
of the meeting of directors or affirmed by them in writing shall be as valid and effectual as if it had been
passed at a meeting of the directors duly convened and held.

                                         CHIEF EXECUTIVE

        42.     The directors may appoint a person to be the Chief Executive of the company and vest in
him such powers and functions as they deem fit in relation to the management and administration of the
affairs of the company subject to their general supervision and control. The Chief Executive, if not
already a director, shall be deemed to be a director of the company and be entitled to all the rights and
privileges and subject to all the liabilities of that office.




                                                Page 359 of 401
                         QUALIFICATION OF THE CHIEF EXECUTIVE

       43.      No person who is not eligible to become a director of the company under section 153 of
the Act, shall be appointed or continue as the Chief Executive of the company.

                                REMOVAL OF CHIEF EXECUTIVE

        44.     The directors by passing resolution by not less than three-fourths of the total number
of directors for the time being or the company may by a special resolution passed in a general meeting
remove a chief executive before the expiry of his term in office.

                                          MINUTE BOOKS

       45.    The directors shall cause records to be kept and minutes to be made in book or books
with regard to—

               (a)    all resolutions and proceedings of general meeting(s) and the meeting(s) of
                      directors and committee(s) of directors, and every member present at any general
                      meeting and every director present at any meeting of directors or committee of
                      directors shall put his signature in a book to be kept for that purpose;

               (b)    recording the names of the persons present at each meeting of the directors and of
                      any committee of the directors, and the general meeting; and

               (c)    all orders made by the directors and committee(s) of directors:

                             Provided that all records related to proceedings through video-link shall be
                      maintained in accordance with the relevant regulations specified by the
                      Commission which shall be appropriately recorded into writing and made part of
                      the minute books according to the said regulations.

                                             SECRETARY

       46.     The Secretary shall be appointed (or removed) by the chairman of the company with
the approval of the board.

        47.    The Secretary shall be responsible for all secretarial functions and shall ensure
compliance with respect to requirements of the Act concerning the meetings and record of proceedings
of the board, committees and the general meeting of members, review the applications for admission to
membership and the recommendations accompanying the same to ensure that they are in the form
prescribed, ensure that all notices required by these Articles or under the Act are duly sent and that all
returns required under the Act are duly filed with concerned Company Registration Office.




                                               Page 360 of 401
                                            COMMITTEES

       48.    The directors may delegate any of their powers to committees consisting of such member
or members of their body as they think fit and they may from time to time revoke such delegation. Any
committee so formed shall, in the exercise of the powers so delegated, conform to any regulations that
may from time to time be imposed on it by the directors.

                            CHAIRMAN OF COMMITTEE MEETINGS

         49.   A committee may elect a chairman of its meetings, but, if no such chairman is elected,
or if at any meeting the chairman is not present within fifteen (15) minutes after the time appointed for
holding the same or is unwilling to act as chairman, the members present may choose one of them to be
the chairman of the meeting.

                          PROCEEDINGS OF COMMITTEE MEMBERS

        50.    A committee may meet and adjourn as it thinks proper. Questions arising at any meeting
shall be determined by a majority of votes of the members present. In case of an equality of votes, the
chairman shall have and exercise a second or casting vote.

                                    VALIDITY OF DIRECTORS’ ACTS

        51.    All acts done by any meeting of the directors or of a committee of directors, or by any
person acting as a director, shall, notwithstanding that it be afterwards discovered that there was some
defect in the appointment of such directors or persons acting as aforesaid, or that they or any of them
were disqualified, be as valid as if every such person had been duly appointed and was qualified to be a
director.

                                               THE SEAL

        52.    The directors shall provide for the safe custody of the seal, which shall not be affixed
to any instrument except by the authority of a resolution of the board or by a committee of directors
authorized in that behalf by the directors, and two directors or one director and the Secretary of the
company shall sign every instrument to which the seal shall be affixed.

                                              FINANCES

        53.     The funds of the company shall be applied in defraying the expenses and shall be
applicable in or towards the acquisition by purchase, lease or otherwise and furnishing and maintenance
of suitable premises and assets for the use of the company and shall be subject to the general control and
direction of the board.

        54.    No person, except persons duly authorized by the board and acting within the limits of the
authority as conferred, shall have authority to sign any cheque or to enter into any contract so as thereby
to impose any liability on the company or to pledge the assets of the company.




                                                Page 361 of 401
                                                ACCOUNTS

                                         BOOKS OF ACCOUNT

        55.     The directors shall cause to be kept proper books of account as required under Section
220 of the Act so that such books of account shall be kept at the registered office or at such other place as
the directors think fit as provided in the said section 220 and shall be open to inspection by the directors
during business hours.



                                     INSPECTION BY MEMBERS

        56.      The directors shall from time to time determine the time and places for inspection of the
accounts and books of the company by the members not being directors, and no member (not being a
director) shall have any right to inspect any account and book or papers of the company except as conferred
by law or authorized by the directors or by the company in general meeting.

                                         ANNUAL ACCOUNTS

        57.     The directors shall as required by section 223 of the Act cause to be prepared and to be
laid before the company in annual general meeting such financial statements duly audited and reports of
the auditors and the directors as are required under the Act.

                        COPY OF ACCOUNTS TO BE SENT TO MEMBERS

        58.     A copy of financial statements alongwith the reports of directors and auditors of the
company shall, at least twenty-one (21) clear days before the holding of the general meeting, be sent to
all the members and the persons entitled to receive notices of general meetings, in the manner in which
notices are to be given as provided in section 55 of the Act.

                                                   AUDIT

        59.     Auditors shall be appointed and their duties regulated in accordance with Sections 246 to
249 of the Act.

                                        NOTICE TO MEMBERS

       60.     Notice shall be given by the company to members and auditors of the company and other
persons entitled to receive notice in accordance with section 55 of the Act.

                                               INDEMNITY

        61.     Every officer or agent for the time being of the company may be indemnified out of the
assets of the company against any liability incurred by him in defending any proceedings, whether civil
or criminal, arising out of his dealings in relation to the affairs of the company, except those brought by the



                                                  Page 362 of 401
company against him in which judgment is given in his favour or in which he is acquitted, or in
connection with any application under section 492 in which relief is granted to him by the Court.

                                                 SECRECY
        62.     Every director, secretary, auditor, trustee, member of a committee, officer, servant, agent,
accountant, or other person employed in the business of the company shall observe strict secrecy
representing all transactions of the company, and the state of account with individuals and in matters
relating thereto and shall not reveal any of the matters which may come to his knowledge in the discharge
of his duties except when required so to do by the directors or the company in general meeting or by a
court of law, and except so far as may be necessary in order to comply with any of the provisions herein
contained.
                                               WINDING UP

        63.      In the case of winding up or dissolution of the company, any surplus assets or property,
after the satisfaction of all debts and liabilities, shall not be paid or disbursed among the members, but
shall be given or transferred to some other company established under section 42 of the Act, preferably
having similar or identical objects to those of the company and with the approval required under the
relevant provisions of the Income Tax Ordinance, 2001 and under intimation to the Securities and
Exchange Commission of Pakistan.


       64.    With regard to winding up, the company shall comply with the relevant provisions of the
Act and the conditions of licence granted under section 42 of the Act or any directions contained in a
revocation order passed by the Commission under the said section 42.

                       SUPPLEMENTARY PROVISIONS RELATING TO TAX

       65.     The company shall abide by and adhere to the following rules:

               (i)      The company shall get its annual accounts audited from a firm of Chartered
                        Accountants.

               (ii)     The company shall, in the event of its dissolution, after meeting all liabilities,
                        transfer all its assets to an Institution, fund, trust, society or organization, which
                        is an approved non-profit organization, and intimation of such transfer will be
                        given to Commissioner, Federal Board of Revenue, within ninety days of the
                        dissolution.

               (iii)    The company shall utilize its money, property or income or any part thereof, solely
                        for promoting its objects.

               (iv)     The company shall not pay or transfer any portion of its money, property or income,
                        directly by way of dividend, bonus or profit, to any of its members(s) or the relative
                        or relatives of member or members.




                                                 Page 363 of 401
              (v)     The company shall maintain its banks accounts with a scheduled bank or in a post
                      office or national saving organization, National Bank of Pakistan or national
                      commercialized banks.

              (vi)    The company shall regularly maintain its books of accounts in accordance with
                      generally accepted accounting principles and permit their inspection to the
                      interested members of the public, without any hindrance, at all reasonable times.

              (vii)   Without prejudice to the powers conferred on the Commission under section 42
                      of the Act, the association shall not change its memorandum and articles of
                      association without approval of Commissioner, Income Tax, if it has been
                      approved by him as a non-profit organization.

              (viii) The company shall restrict the surpluses or monies validly set apart, excluding
                     restricted funds, up to twenty five percent (25%) of the total income of the year.
                     Provided that such surpluses or monies set apart are invested in Government
                     Securities, a collective investment scheme authorized or registered under the Non-
                     Banking Finance Companies (Establishment and Regulation) Rules, 2003, mutual
                     funds, a real estate investment trust approved and authorized under Real Estate
                     Investment Trust Regulations, 2008 or scheduled banks.

       We, the several, persons whose names and addresses are subscribed below are desirous of
being formed into a company in pursuance of these articles of association:-

 Name and NIC No. Father’s/     Nationality(ies)                        Usual residential address in
 surname (in case of Husband’s with any former                          full or the registered/ principal
                                                           Occupation




 (present foreigner, Name    in Nationality                             office address for a subscriber




                                                                                                            Signatures
 & former) Passport full                                                other than natural person
 in full (in No)
 Block
 Letters)




 Dated the                      day of                                  , 20   ___

Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted in physical form)

 Signature
 Full Name (in Block Letters)
 Father’ s/ Husband’ s name
 Nationality



                                              Page 364 of 401
 Occupation
 NIC No.
 Usual residential address
Witness to above signatures: (For the documents submitted electronically)
(Digital Signature Certificate Provider)
Name:
Address:




                          SECOND SCHEDULE
FORM OF STATEMENT IN LIEU OF PROSPECTUS TO BE DELIVERED TO REGISTRAR
          BY A COMPANY WHICH DOES NOT ISSUE A PROSPECTUS

                                            SECTION 1

        FORM OF STATEMENT AND PARTICULARS TO BE CONTAINED THEREIN

                             (Pursuant to section 19 of the Companies Act, 2017)

         1       Name of the company
 .       2       Corporate           Universal
                 Identification No. (CUIN):


         3        Registered Office:
 .       4        Telephone No.
 .       5        Fax No.
 .       6        Website Address:
 .       7        E-mail Address:
 .

8.      Authorized share capital of the company:—

         S. Kind      of Class     of Face/nominal             Number   of Total    Special
        No. shares       shares       value Rs.                shares      Amount   rights in case
                                                                           (Rs.)    of other than
                                                                                    ordinary
                                                                                    shares

         1.
         2.



                                                 Page 365 of 401
         3.

9.      Description of the business to be actually undertaken :___




10.     Future prospects of the said business:—




11.     Particulars of chief executive, directors, company secretary, chief accountant, chief financial
officer, auditor, legal advisor and managing agent (if any) of the company

 Name         Father’s/    CNIC      Occupation      Tele.        Cell   E-mail    Residential
 *            husband’s    No.       and             No.          No.    Address   Address
              name                   directorship in                               ***
                                     other company
                                     **
 (a) Chief Executive

 (b) Directors:—
 1.
 2.
 3.
 4.
 5.
 6.
 7.
 (c) Company Secretary:—

 (d) Chief Accountant/Chief Financial Officer:—

 (e) Auditor(s) of the company:—

 (f) Legal advisor:—

 (g) Managing agent; if any:—


12.     Remuneration payable to the persons referred to in 11 above:—




                                                Page 366 of 401
 S.No.     Position in the Company        Remuneration payable Relevant provision Relevant clause of
                                                               of article, if any agreement if any

 (a)      Chief Executive
 (b)      Directors
          (1)
          (2)
          (3)
          (4)
          (5)
          (6)
          (7)
 (c)      Company Secretary
 (d)      Chief Accountant/Chief
          Financial Officer
 (e)      Auditor
 (f)      Legal Advisor
 (g)      Managing Agent

13.  Number and amount of shares issued, including those agreed to be taken by virtue of
Memorandum of Association for cash:—
 S. No.       Kind of       Class of      Face / Nominal Number of       Amount         Names of
              shares        shares        Value          shares                         allottee



14.      Number and amount of shares agreed to be issued for consideration otherwise than in cash:—

 Number of       Face /          Amount         Details of             Date for          To whom
 shares          nominal                        consideration          exercising the    option
                 Value                          otherwise than in cash option            offered




15.      Commission agreed to be paid for arranging the subscribers of shares:—
 Nature of the      Number of shares Rate of the        Amount of the   Amount of the     Direct or
 commission         agreed to be     commission         commission paid commission        indirect
                    subscribed                                          payable           interest if
                    against the                                                           any, of the
                    commission                                                            persons,
                                                                                          stated in
                                                                                          clause 11



16.      Number and amount of debentures agreed to be issued for cash:—



                                                Page 367 of 401
Number of        Face/ Nominal Amount            Date for              To whom    Whether offer
debentures       Value                           exercising the        option     accepted Yes / No
                                                 option                offered



17.    Number and amount of debentures agreed to be issued for consideration otherwise than in cash:—
 Number of     Face Value Amount           Details of          Date for        To whom option
 debentures                                consideration       exercising the offered
                                                               option


18.    Commission agreed to be paid for arranging the subscribers of debentures:—

Nature of the    Number of       Rate of the       Amount of the Amount of the Director indirect
commission       debentures      commission        commission    commission    interest if any, of
                 agreed to be                      paid          payable       the persons,
                 subscribed                                                    stated in
                 against the                                                   clause11
                 commission

19.     Details of the every agreement entered into since the date of incorporation relating to property
or other intangible assets of the value exceeding Rs.100,000/-:—

Name(s) &              Particulars of the Amount                 Consideration   Direct or indirect
address(es) of the     property or other intended to be                          interest if any, of the
vendor/purchaser       intangible assets paid or                                 persons, stated in
                       intended to be     received in                            clause 11
                       purchased or       cash
                       sold



20.    Details of all other material contracts executed or intended to be executed by the company:—
 S. No.   Nature of   Dates and    Time and      Name of the Important             Direct or indirect
          contract    places of    place for     parties to  terms &               interest if any, of
                      execution of inspection of contracts   conditions of         the persons,
                      contracts    contracts                 contracts             narrated in clause
                                                                                   11
         1
 .       2
 .       3
 .
(Copies of contracts to be enclosed. If a contract is not reduced in writing, a memorandum giving full
particulars and if not in English, its translation in English or Urdu shall be enclosed)




                                               Page 368 of 401
21.     In case it is proposed to acquire a running business, net profit / loss of that business as certified
by the auditor for the last 5 years:—
Year ended           Amount of net          Business carried on since      Direct or indirect interest, if any,
                     profit / loss          (date)                         of the persons, stated in clause
                                                                           11




22.   Details of preliminary expenses:—
S. No. Particulars of Amount of        Paid /                  Paid by   Payable by Consideration (in
       payment          preliminary    Payable to                                   cash or kind to be
                        expenses                                                    specified)

        1
.       2
.       3
.       4
.
23.     Minimum subscription and its proposed utilization
        Amount of minimum subscription
        Proposed utilization of minimum subscription:-
(i)         Price of any property purchased or to be purchased.

(ii)        Preliminary expenses payable by the company.
(iii)       Commission payable to any person in
            consideration of his agreeing to subscribe or
            procure any shares in the company
(iv)        Repayment of any moneys borrowed by the
            company in respect of any of the foregoing
            matters.
(v)         Working capital.
(vi)        Other expenditures.
24.    Amount to be provided in respect of the matters aforesaid otherwise than out of the proceeds
of minimum subscription and the sources out of which those amount to be provided.
S.No.                     Amount                                  Source of funds




25.     Signatures of the Directors or their agents authorized in writing.




                                                    Page 369 of 401
S. No.                Name                                            Signature




Date: --------------
Note: *—In case of Auditor and Legal Advisor, being a firm the name of firm shall be mentioned.
**— The occupation of the individual and the name(s) of the company(s) in which he holds the office of
Chief Executive/Director shall be mentioned.
***— In case of Auditor and Legal Advisor, the address of his/its office shall be mentioned.

                                                  SECTION 2

                                        REPORTS TO BE SET OUT

        1.     Where it is proposed to acquire a business, a report made by auditors (who are named in
the statement) upon:—

                (a)      the profits or losses of the business in respect of each of the five financial years
                         immediately preceding the delivery of the statement to the registrar; and

                (b)      the assets and liabilities of the business as at the last date to which the accounts of
                         the business were made up.

        2.      (1) where it is proposed to acquire shares in a body corporate, which by reason of the
acquisition or anything to be done in consequence thereof or in connection therewith will become a
subsidiary of the company, a report made by auditors (who shall be named in the statement) with respect
to the profits and losses and assets and liabilities of the other body corporate in respect of each of the
five financial years immediately preceding the delivery of the statement to the registrar;

         (2)    If the other body corporate has no subsidiaries, the report referred to in sub-clause (1)
shall—

                (a)      so far as regards profits and losses, deal with the profits or losses of the body
                         corporate in respect of each of the five financial years immediately preceding the
                         delivery of the statement to the registrar; and

                (b)      so far as regards assets and liabilities, deal with the assets and liabilities of the body
                         corporate as at the last date to which the accounts of the body corporate were made
                         up.

         (3) If the other body corporate has subsidiaries the report referred to in sub-clause(1) shall__




                                                    Page 370 of 401
               (a)    so far as regards profits and losses, deal separately with other body corporate’
                      s profits or losses as provided by sub-clause (2), and in addition either—

                      (i)     as a whole with the combined profits or losses of its subsidiaries so far as
                              they concern members of the other body corporate; or

                      (ii)    individual with the profits or losses of each subsidiary, so far as they
                              concern member of the other body corporate; or instead of dealing
                              separately with the other body corporate’s profits or losses, deal as a whole
                              with the profits or losses of the other body corporate and, so far as they
                              concern members of the other body corporate, with the combined profits
                              or losses of its subsidiaries; and

               (b)    so far as regards assets and liabilities deal separately with the other body corporate’s
                      assets and liabilities as provided by sub-clause (2) and, in addition, deal either—

                      (i)     as a whole with the combined assets and liabilities of its subsidiaries, with
                              or without the other body corporate’s assets and liabilities; or

                      (ii)    individually with the assets and liabilities of each subsidiary; and shall
                              indicate, as respects the assets and liabilities of the subsidiaries, the
                              allowance to be made for persons other than members of the company.


                                              SECTION 3

            PROVISIONS APPLYING TO SECTIONS 1 AND 2 OF THIS STATEMENT

       3.      (1) Every person shall, for the purposes of the statement, be deemed to be a vendor who
has entered into any contract, absolute or conditional, for the sale or purchase, or for any option of
purchase, of any property to be acquired by the company, in any case where-

               (a)    the purchase money is not fully paid at the date of the issue of the statement;

               (b)    the purchase money is to be paid or satisfied, wholly or in part, out of the proceeds
                      of the issue offered for subscription; or

               (c)    the contract depends for its validity or fulfilment on the result of that issue.

        (2)    In case the company was incorporated or the body corporate referred above was
established less than five years before the making of the statement, reference to five financial years in
sections 1 and 2 shall be deemed replaced for the actual period.

       4.      Any report required by section 2 of the statement shall either—




                                                Page 371 of 401
              (a)     indicate by way of note any adjustments as respects and figures of any profits or
                      losses or assets and liabilities dealt with by the report which appears to the person
                      making the report necessary; or

              (b)     make those adjustments and indicate that adjustments have been made.

       5.     Any report by auditors required by section 2 of the statement, shall be made by auditors
qualified under the Act for appointment as auditors of a company.




                                               Page 372 of 401
                                                             THIRD SCHEDULE
                                                             (Section 224 of the Act)
                                                       Classification of Companies
S.                                                                                      Applicable         Relevant
No. Classification Criteria of Company                                                  Accounting         Schedule of
                                                                                        Framework          Companies Act
1.   Public Interest Company (PIC)
     Sub-categories of PIC:
     a)    Listed Company                                                               International       Fourth Schedule
                                                                                        Financial Reporting
                                                                                        Standards
     1
      [b)       Non-listed Company which is:
                       (i) a public sector company as defined in the Act; or
                       (ii) registered and/or licensed under the Administered
                             Legislation or Rules, or regulations made thereunder,
                             as follows,–

                                 (a)      Non-banking Finance Companies which are
                                          Asset Management Companies, Pension Fund
                                          Managers, REIT Management Companies or
                                                                                   International       Fifth
                                          Deposit Taking NBFCs;
                                                                                   Financial           Schedule
                                 (b)      Modaraba Company
                                 (c)      Insurer                                  Reporting Standards
                                 (d)      Securities Exchange
                                 (e)      Commodity Exchange
                                 (f)      Central Depository
                                 (g)      Clearing House; or

                         (iii) Registered, notified and/or licensed under the Banking
                               Companies Ordinance, 1962 (LVII of 1962) or
                               Microfinance Institutions Ordinance, 2001(LV of
                               2001), as follows:

                                  (a)   Banking Company including Foreign Banking
                                        Company
                                 (b)    Microfinance Bank
                                 (c)    Development Finance Institution (DFI)] 2[;]
                                        2
                                          [or]
                         2
                           [(iva) all companies engaged in production and sale of
                                  sugar]




            1
                Subs by SRO 1195(1)/2019, dated 03/10/2019
            2
                Subs and Ins by SRO 614(1)/ 2020




                                                                   Page 373 of 401
2.   Large Sized Company (LSC)
     Sub-categories of LSC
     a)    Non-listed Company with:
                (i)     paid-up capital of Rs.200 million
                        or more; or                            International Financial        Fifth
                (ii)    turnover or Rs. 1 billion or more;      Reporting Standards         Schedule
                        or
                (iii) Employees more than 750.
     b)    A Foreign Company with turnover of
           Rs. 1 billion or more.
     c)    Non-listed Company licenced/formed under
           Section 42 / Section 45 of the Act having            International Financial
           annual              gross               revenue     Reporting Standards and    Fifth Schedule
           (grants/income/subsidies/donations) including        Accounting Standards
           other income / revenue of Rs.200 million and                for NPOs
           above.
3.   Medium Sized Company (MSC)
     Sub-categories of MSC:
     a)    Non-listed Public Company with:
               (i) paid-up capital less than Rs.200
                     million;
              (ii) turnover less than Rs. 1 billion;
              (iii) Employees more than 250 but less
                     than 750.
     b)    Private Company with:
               (i) paid-up capital of greater than Rs. 10                                 Fifth Schedule
                                                               Revised AFRS for SSEs
                      million but not exceeding Rs. 200
                      million;
               (ii) turnover greater than Rs. 100 million
                      but not exceeding Rs. 1 billion;
               (iii) Employees more than 250 but less
                      than 750.
     c)     A Foreign Company which have turnover less
            than Rs. 1 billion.
     d)     Non-listed Company licenced/formed under
            Section 42 or Section 45 of the Act Which has
            annual              gross               revenue Accounting Standards of Fifth Schedule
            (grants/income/subsidies/donations) including NPOs
            other income or revenue less than Rs.200
            million.
3.   Small Sized Company (SSC)
          A private company having:
                (i)    paid-up capital up to Rs. 10 million;
                                                                                    Fifth Schedule
                (ii)   turnover not exceeding Rs.100 Revised AFRS for SSEs
                       million;
                (iii) Employees not more than 250.




                                             Page 374 of 401
NOTE:

       1.      The classification of a company shall be based on the previous year’s audited financial
statements.

         2.     The classification of a company can be changed where it does not fall under the previous
criteria for two consecutive years.

      3.      The number of employees means the average number of persons employed by a
company in that financial year calculated on monthly basis.

                                         FOURTH SCHEDULE
                                           (See Section 225)

      DISCLOSURE REQUIREMENTS AS TO FINANCIAL STATEMENTS OF LISTED
                    COMPANIES AND THEIR SUBSIDIARIES

                                                  PART I

                                    GENERAL REQUIREMENTS

       I.     All listed companies and their subsidiaries shall follow the International Financial
Reporting Standards in regard to financial statements as are notified for the purpose in the official Gazette
by the Commission, under section 225 of the Companies Act, 2017 (Act);

        II.    The disclosure requirements, as provided in this schedule, are in addition to the disclosure
requirements prescribed in International Financial Reporting Standards notified by the Commission and
shall be made in the notes to the accounts unless specifically required otherwise;

       III.    In addition to the information expressly required to be disclosed under the Act and this
schedule, there shall be added such other information as may be considered necessary to ensure that
required disclosure is not misleading.

       IV.     In this schedule, unless there is anything repugnant in the subject or context—

               A.      “capital reserve” includes:

                       (i)     share premium account;

                       (ii)    reserve created under any other law for the time being in force;

                       (iii)   reserve arising as a consequence of scheme of arrangement;

                       (iv)    profit prior to incorporation; and

                       (v)     any other reserve not regarded free for distribution by way of dividend



                                                 Page 375 of 401
             B.      “executive” means an employee, other than the chief executive and directors, whose
                     basic salary exceeds twelve hundred thousand rupees in a financial year;

             C.      “revenue reserve” means reserve that is normally regarded as available for
                     distribution through the profit and loss account, including general reserves and
                     other specific reserves created out of profit and un-appropriated or accumulated
                     profits of previous years;

      V.     Any word or expression used herein but not defined in the Act shall have the same
meaning as under the International Financial Reporting Standards;


      VI.     The following shall be disclosed in the financial statements, namely:—

      1.     General information about the company comprising the following:

             (i)     Geographical location and address of all business units including Mills/plant;

             (ii)    Particulars of company’s immovable fixed assets, including location and area of
                     land;

             (iii)   The capacity of an industrial unit, actual production and the reasons for
                     shortfall;

             (iv)    Number of persons employed as on the date of financial statements and average
                     number of employees during the year, separately disclosing factory employees;

             (v)     Name of associated companies or related parties or undertakings along with the
                     basis of relationship describing common directorship and percentage of
                     shareholding.

      2.     In respect of associated companies, subsidiaries, joint ventures or holding companies
             incorporated outside Pakistan, following shall be separately disclosed;

             (i)     Name of undertaking, registered address and country of incorporation;

             (ii)    Basis of association;

             (iii)   Aggregate Percentage of shareholding, including shareholding through other
                     companies or entities;

             (iv)    Name of Chief Executive Officer or Principal Officer or Authorized Agent;

             (v)     Operational status; and




                                               Page 376 of 401
     (vi)    Auditor’s opinion on latest available financial statements.

3.   General nature of any credit facilities available to the company under any contract, other
     than trade credit available in the ordinary course of business, and not availed of at the date
     of the statement of financial position;

4.   Any penalty in terms of money or otherwise imposed under any law by any
     authority, on the Company shall be disclosed in the first annual report furnished after the
     imposition of the penalty. If, as a result of any appeal, revision petition, or review
     application, such penalty is reduced enhanced or waived, the original penalty imposed
     shall nevertheless be disclosed, and the fact of any reduction, enhancement or waiver
     shall be disclosed, in the first annual report furnished after such reduction, enhancement
     or waiver;

5.   Summary of significant transactions and events that have affected the company’s
     financial position and performance during the year;

6.   In financial statements issued after initial or secondary public offering(s) of securities or
     issuance of debt instrument(s) implementation of plans as disclosed in the
     prospectus/offering document with regards to utilization of proceeds raised shall be
     disclosed till full implementation of such plans;

7.   Particulars of major foreign shareholders, other than natural person, holding more than
     5% of paid up capital in the company:

     (i)     Names and address of beneficial owners and legal status along with the name
             of Chief Executive or Principal Officer or Authorized Agent;

     (ii)    Name and particulars of Pakistani resident associated with such shareholder or
             entity, if any; and

     (iii)   Detail of conditions and compliance status thereof, imposed by regulatory
             authorities in Pakistan/foreign jurisdiction for foreign investments, if any.

8.   In cases where company has given loans or advances or has made investments (both short
     term and long term) in foreign companies or undertakings following disclosures are
     required to be made:

     (i)     Name of the company or undertaking along with jurisdiction where it is located;

     (ii)    Name and address of beneficial owner of investee company, if any;

     (iii)   Amount of loan/investment (both in local and foreign currency);




                                      Page 377 of 401
      (iv)    Terms and conditions and period for which loans or advances or investments
              has been made;

      (v)     Amount of return received;

      (vi)    Details of all litigations against the Investee company in the foreign jurisdictions;

      (vii)   Any default/breach relating to foreign loan or investment; and

      (viii) Gain or loss in case of disposals of foreign investments.

9.    In cases where company has made export sales following disclosures are required to be
      made in respect of outstanding trade debts:

      (i)     Amount of export sales made in each foreign jurisdiction along with break up into
              confirmed LC, contract or other significant categories;

      (ii)    Name of company or undertaking in case of related party;

      (iii)   Name of defaulting parties, relationship if any, and the default amount; and

      (iv)    Brief description of any legal action taken against the defaulting parties.

10.   Sharia complaint companies and the companies listed on Islamic index shall disclose:


      (i)     Loans/advances obtained as per Islamic mode;

      (ii)    Shariah compliant bank deposits/bank balances;

      (iii)   Profit earned from Shariah compliant bank deposits/bank balances;

      (iv)    Revenue earned from a Shariah compliant business segment;

      (v)     Gain/loss or dividend earned from Shariah compliant investments;

      (vi)    Exchange gain earned from actual currency;

      (vii)   Mark up paid on Islamic mode of financing;

      (viii) Relationship with Shariah compliant banks; and

      (ix)    Profits earned or interest paid on any conventional loan or advance.




                                       Page 378 of 401
                                         PART II

      REQUIREMENTS AS TO STATEMENT OF FINANCIAL POSITION

11.   Following items shall be disclosed as separate line items on the face of the financial
      statements;

      (i)      Revaluation surplus on property, plant and equipment;

      (ii)     Long term deposits and prepayments;

      (iii)    Unpaid dividend;

      (iv)     Unclaimed dividend; and

      (v)      Cash and bank balances.

Fixed Assets

12.   Where any property or asset acquired with the funds of the company and is not held in
      the name of the company or is not in the possession and control of the company, this fact
      along with reasons for the property or asset not being in the name of or possession or control
      of the company shall be stated; and the description and value of the property or asset, the
      person in whose name and possession or control it is held shall be disclosed;

13.   Land and building shall be distinguished between free-hold and leasehold;

14.   Forced sale value shall be disclosed separately in case of revaluation of Property, Plant
      and Equipment or investment property.

15.   In the case of sale of fixed assets, if the aggregate book value of assets exceeds five hundred
      thousand rupees, following particulars of each asset shall be disclosed,—

      (i)      cost or revalued amount, as the case may be;
      (ii)     the book value;
      (iii)    the sale price and the mode of disposal (e.g. by tender or negotiation);
      (iv)     the particulars of the purchaser;
      (v)      gain or loss; and
      (vi)     relationship, if any of purchaser with Company or any of its directors.




                                        Page 379 of 401
       Long Term Investments

       16.     Investments in associated companies or undertakings have been made in accordance with
               the requirements under the Act;

       Long Term Loans And Advances

       17.     With regards to loans and advances to directors following shall be disclosed:

               (i)     that the loans and advances have been made in compliance with the requirements
                       of the Act;

               (ii)    the purposes for which loans or advances were made; and

               (iii)   reconciliation of the carrying amount at the beginning and end of the period,
                       showing disbursements and repayments;

       18.     In case of any loans or advances obtained/provided, at terms other than arm’ s length basis,
reasons thereof shall be disclosed;

       19.     In respect of loans and advances to associates and related parties there shall be
disclosed,—

               (i)     the name of each associate and related party;
               (ii)    the terms of loans and advances;
               (iii)   the particulars of collateral security held, if any;
               (iv)    the maximum aggregate amount outstanding at any time during the year calculated
                       by reference to month-end balances;
               (v)     provisions for doubtful loans and advances; and
               (vi)    loans and advances written off, if any.

       Current Assets

       20.     In respect of debts/receivables from associates and related parties there shall be
               disclosed,___

               (i)     the name of each associate and related party;

               (ii)    the maximum aggregate amount outstanding at any time during the year calculated
                       by reference to month-end balances;

               (iii)   receivables, that are either past due or impaired, along with age analysis
                       distinguishing between trade debts, loans, advances and other receivables;




                                                 Page 380 of 401
       (iv)    debts written off as irrecoverable, distinguishing between trade debts and other
               receivables;

       (v)     provisions for doubtful or bad debts distinguishing between trade debts, loans,
               advances and other receivables; and

       (vi)    justification for reversal of provisions of doubtful debts, if any;

21.    In respect of loans and advances, other than those to the suppliers of goods or services,
       the name of the borrower and terms of repayment if the loan or advance exceeds rupees
       one million, together with the particulars of collateral security, if any, shall be disclosed
       separately;

22.    Provision, if any, made for bad or doubtful loans and advances or for diminution in the
       value of or loss in respect of any asset shall be shown as a deduction from the gross
       amounts;

Share Capital And Reserves

23.    Capital and Revenue reserves shall be clearly distinguished. Any reserve required to be
       maintained under the Act shall be separately disclosed. Any legal or other restrictions, on
       the ability of the company to distribute or otherwise, shall be disclosed for all kind of
       reserves maintained by the company;

24.    In respect of issued share capital of a company following shall be disclosed
       separately:

       (i)     shares allotted for consideration paid in cash;

       (ii)    shares allotted for consideration other than cash, showing separately shares issued
               against property and others (to be specified);

       (iii)   shares allotted as bonus shares; and

       (iv)    treasury shares;

25.    Shareholder agreements for voting rights, board selection, rights of first refusal, and
       block voting shall be disclosed.

Non-Current Liabilities

26.    Amount due to associated companies and related parties shall be disclosed separately;

Current Liabilities

27.    Following items shall be disclosed as separate line items:



                                         Page 381 of 401
      (i)      Payable to provident fund;
      (ii)     Deposits, accrued liabilities and advances;
      (iii)    Loans from banking companies and other financial institutions, other than related
               parties;
      (iv)     Loans and advances from related parties including sponsors and directors along
               with purpose and utilization of amounts; and
      (v)      Loans and advances shall be classified as secured and unsecured.

28.   In the case of provident fund/provident fund trust, maintained by the company a
      statement that, investments in collective investment schemes, listed equity and listed debt
      securities out of provident fund/trust have been made in accordance with the provisions of
      section 218 of the Act and the Rules formulated for this purpose.

29.   In respect of security deposit payable, following shall be disclosed:

      (i)      Bifurcation of amount received as security deposits for goods/services to be
               delivered/provided, into amounts utilizable for company business and others;

      (ii)     Amount utilized for the purpose of the business from the security deposit in
               accordance with requirements of written agreements, in terms of section 217 of
               the Act; and

      (iii)    Amount kept in separate bank account;

Contingencies And Commitments

30.   In describing legal proceedings, under any court, agency or government authority,
      whether local or foreign, include name of the court, agency or authority in which the
      proceedings are pending, the date instituted, the principal parties thereto, a description of
      the factual basis of the proceeding and the relief sought;

                                         PART III

              REQUIREMENTS AS TO PROFIT AND LOSS ACCOUNT

31.   Following items shall be disclosed as deduction from turnover as separate line items:

      (i)      trade discount; and

      (ii)     sales and other taxes directly attributed to sales.

32.   The aggregate amount of auditors’ remuneration, showing separately fees, expenses and
      other remuneration for services rendered as auditors and for services rendered in any other




                                         Page 382 of 401
      capacity and stating the nature of such other services. In the case of joint auditors, the
      aforesaid information shall be shown separately for each of the joint auditors;

33.   In case, donation to a single party exceeds Rs. 500,000, name of donee(s) shall be
      disclosed and where any director or his spouse has interest in the donee(s), irrespective of
      the amount, names of such directors along with their interest shall be disclosed;

34.   Management assessment of sufficiency of tax provision made in the company’s
      financial statements shall be clearly stated along with comparisons of tax provision as per
      accounts viz a viz tax assessment for last three years;

35.   Complete particulars of the aggregate amount charged by the company shall be disclosed
      separately for the directors, chief executive and executives together with the number of
      such directors and executives such as:

      (i)     fees;

      (ii)    managerial remuneration;

      (iii)   commission or bonus, indicating the nature thereof;

      (iv)    reimbursable expenses which are in the nature of a perquisite or benefit;

      (v)     pension, gratuities, company’s contribution to provident, superannuation and
              other staff funds, compensation for loss of office and in connection with retirement
              from office;

      (v)     other perquisites and benefits in cash or in kind stating their nature and, where
              practicable, their approximate money values; and

      (vi)    amount for any other services rendered.

36.   In case of royalties paid to companies/entities/individuals, following shall be disclosed:

      (i)     Name and registered address; and

      (ii)    Relationship with company or directors, if any.




                                       Page 383 of 401
                                          FIFTH SCHEDULE

                                            (See section 225)

  DISCLOSURE REQUIREMENTS AS TO FINANCIAL STATEMENTS OF NON- LISTED
                  COMPANIES AND THEIR SUBSIDIARIES

                                                 PART I

                                    GENERAL REQUIREMENTS

       I.      The companies other than listed companies and their subsidiaries shall follow the
applicable Financial Reporting Framework as defined in Third Schedule, in regards to financial
statements as are notified for the purpose in the official Gazette by the Commission, under section 225 of
the Companies Act, 2017;

        II.    The disclosure requirements, as provided in this schedule, are in addition to the disclosure
requirements prescribed in applicable Financial Reporting Framework notified by the Commission and
shall be made in the notes to the accounts unless specifically required otherwise;

       III.     In addition to the information expressly required to be disclosed under the Act and this
schedule, there shall be added such other information as may be necessary to ensure that required
disclosure is not misleading;

        IV.     Any word or expression used herein but not defined in the Act and/or Fourth Schedule
shall have the same meaning as under the applicable Accounting Framework.

       V.      The following shall be disclosed in the financial statements namely:

       1.      General information about the company comprising the following:

               (i)     geographical location of all business units including mills/plant;

               (ii)    the capacity of an industrial unit, actual production and the reasons for
                       shortfall;

               (iii)   number of persons employed as on the date of financial statements and average
                       number of employees during the year separately disclosing factory employees; and

               (iv)    name of associated companies or related parties or undertakings along with the
                       basis of relationship describing common directorship and/or percentage of
                       shareholding;

       2.      In respect of associated companies, subsidiaries, joint ventures or holding companies
               incorporated outside Pakistan, name of undertaking, registered address and country of
               incorporation shall be disclosed;



                                                Page 384 of 401
3.   Summary of significant transactions and events that have affected the company’s
     financial position and performance during the year;

4.   Particulars of major foreign shareholders, other than natural person, holding more than
     5% of paid up capital of the company:

     (i)      names and address of beneficial owners and legal status along with the name of
              Chief Executive or Principal Officer or Authorized Agent;

     (ii)     name and particulars of Pakistani resident associated with such shareholder or
              entity, if any; and

     (iii)    detail of conditions and compliance status thereof, imposed by regulatory
              authorities in Pakistan/foreign jurisdiction for foreign investments, if any.

5.   In cases, where company has given loans or advances or has made investments (both
     short term and long term) in foreign companies or undertakings, name of the company or
     undertaking along with jurisdiction where it is located shall be disclosed.

                                        PART II

     REQUIREMENTS AS TO STATEMENT OF FINANCIAL POSITION

6.   Following items shall be disclosed as separate line items on the face of the financial
     statements;

      (i)     revaluation surplus on property, plant and equipment;

      (ii)    long term deposits and prepayment;

      (iii)   unpaid dividend;

      (iv)    unclaimed dividend; and

      (v)     cash and bank balances.

                                     Fixed Assets

7.   Where any property or asset acquired with the funds of the company, is not held in the
     name of the company or is not in the possession and control of the company, this fact
     along with reasons for the property or asset not being in the name of or possession or control
     of the company shall be stated; and the description and value of the property or asset, the
     person in whose name and possession or control it is held shall be disclosed;

8.   Land and building shall be distinguished between freehold and leasehold.




                                        Page 385 of 401
9.    Forced sale value shall be disclosed separately in case of revaluation of property, plant
      and equipment or investment property;

10.   In the case of sale of fixed assets, if the aggregate book value of assets exceeds five hundred
      thousand rupees, following particulars of each asset shall be disclosed,—

      (i)     cost or revalued amount, as the case may be;
      (ii)    the book value;
      (iii)   the sale price and the mode of disposal (e.g. by tender or negotiation);
      (iv)    the particulars of the purchaser;
      (v)     gain or loss; and
      (vi)    relationship, if any of purchaser with company or any of its directors.

                                  Long Term Investments

11.   Investments in associated companies or undertakings have been made in accordance with
      the requirements under the Act.
                         Long Term Loans And Advances

12.   With regards to loans and advances to directors, following shall be disclosed:

      (i)     the purposes for which loans or advances were made; and

      (ii)    reconciliation of the carrying amount at the beginning and end of the period,
              showing disbursements and repayments;

13.   In case of any loans or advances obtained/provided, at terms other than arm’ s length basis,
      reasons thereof shall be disclosed;

14.   In respect of loans, advances to associates there shall be disclosed:

      (i)     the name of each associate and related parties;

      (ii)    the terms of loans and advances;

      (iii)   the particulars of collateral security held, if any;

      (iv)    the maximum aggregate amount outstanding at any time during the year calculated
              by reference to month-end balances;

      (v)     provisions for doubtful loans and advances; and

      (vi)    loans or advances written off, if any.



                                        Page 386 of 401
                                    Current Assets

15.   In respect of debts/receivables from associates there shall be disclosed:

      (i)     the name of each associate and related party;

      (ii)    the maximum aggregate amount outstanding at any time during the year calculated
              by reference to month-end balances;

      (iii)   receivables, that are either past due or impaired, along with age analysis
              distinguishing between trade debts, loans, advances and other receivables;

      (iv)    debts written off as irrecoverable distinguishing between trade debts and other
              receivables;

      (v)     provisions for doubtful or bad debts distinguishing between trade debts, loans,
              advances and other receivables; and

      (vi)    justification for reversal of provisions of doubtful debts, if any;

16.   Provision, if any, made for bad or doubtful loans and advances or for diminution in the
      value of or loss in respect of any asset shall be shown as a deduction from the gross
      amounts;

                             Share Capital And Reserves

17.   Capital and revenue reserves shall be clearly distinguished. Any reserve required to be
      maintained under the Act shall be separately disclosed. Any legal or other restrictions on
      the ability of the company to distribute or otherwise apply its reserves shall also be
      disclosed for all kind of reserves maintained by the company;

18.   In respect of issued share capital of a company following shall be disclosed
      separately;

      (i)     shares allotted for consideration paid in cash;

      (ii)    shares allotted for consideration other than cash, showing separately shares issued
              against property and others (to be specified);

      (iii)   shares allotted as bonus shares; and

      (iv)    treasury shares;

19.   Shareholder agreements for voting rights, board selection, rights of first refusal, and
      block voting shall be disclosed.



                                        Page 387 of 401
                               Non-Current Liabilities

20.   Amount due to associated company shall be disclosed separately;

                                  Current Liabilities

21.   Following items shall be disclosed as separate line items;

      (i)     payable to provident fund;
      (ii)    deposits, accrued liabilities and advances;
      (iii)   loans from banking companies and other financial institutions other than
              associated company;

      (iv)    loans and advances from associated company, sponsors and directors along with
              purpose and utilization of amounts; and

      (v)     loans and advances shall be classified as secured and unsecured.

22.   In the case of provident fund/provident fund trust, maintained by the company, a
      statement that, the investments in collective investment schemes, listed equity and listed
      debt securities out of provident fund/trust have been made in accordance with the
      provisions of section 218 of the Act and the Rules formulated for this purpose;

23.   In respect of security deposit payable, following shall be disclosed:

      (i)     bifurcation of amount received as security deposits for goods/services to be
              delivered/provided, into amounts utilizable for company business and others;

      (ii)    amount utilized for the purpose of the business from the security deposit in
              accordance with requirements of written agreements, in terms of section 217 of
              the Act; and

      (iii)   amount kept in separate bank account;


                         Contingencies And Commitments

24.   In describing legal proceedings, under any court, agency or government authority,
      whether local or foreign include name of the court, agency or authority in which the
      proceedings are pending, the date instituted, the principal parties thereto, a description of
      the factual basis of the proceeding and the relief sought.




                                       Page 388 of 401
                                        PART III

                 REQUIREMENTS AS TO PROFIT AND LOSS

25.   Following items shall be disclosed as deduction from turnover as separate line items;

      (i)     trade discount; and

      (ii)    sales and other taxes directly attributable to sales.

26.   The aggregate amount of auditors’ remuneration, showing separately fees, expenses and
      other remuneration for services rendered as auditors and for services rendered in any other
      capacity and stating the nature of such other services. In the case of joint auditors, the
      aforesaid information shall be shown separately for each of the joint auditors;

27.   In case, donation to a single party exceeds Rs. 500,000 name of donee(s) shall be
      disclosed and where any director or his spouse has interest in the donee(s) irrespective of
      the amount, names of such directors along with their interest shall be disclosed;

28.   Management assessment of sufficiency of tax provision made in the company’s
      financial statements along with comparisons of tax provision as per accounts viz a viz tax
      assessment for last three years;

29.   Complete particulars of the aggregate amount charged by the company shall be disclosed
      separately for the directors, chief executive and executives together with the number of
      such directors and executives such as:
      (i)     fees;
      (ii)    managerial remuneration;
      (iii)   commission or bonus, indicating the nature thereof;
      (iv)    reimbursable expenses which are in the nature of a perquisite or benefit;
      (v)     pension, gratuities, company’s contribution to provident, superannuation and
              other staff funds, compensation for loss of office and in connection with retirement
              from office;
      (vi)    other perquisites and benefits in cash or in kind stating their nature and, where
              practicable, their approximate money values; and
      (vii)   amount for any other services rendered.

30.   In case of royalties paid to companies/entities/individuals following shall be disclosed:

      (i)     Name and registered address; and

      (ii)    Relationship with company or directors, if any.




                                        Page 389 of 401
                                         SIXTH SCHEDULE
                                           (See section 258)

                       OFFENCES PUNISHABLE UNDER SECTION 258

                                         (SERIOUS FRAUD)

       1.     Offences punishable under section 496.

                                     SEVENTH SCHEDULE

                                     (See section 462 and 469)

  TABLE OF FEES TO BE PAID TO THE REGISTRAR AND THE COMMISSION

                                                                   For submission of For submission
                              Item                                 documents          of documents in
                                                                   electronically Rs. physical form
                                                                                      Rs.

I. By a company having a share capital:-

(1)     For registration of a company whose nominal share
capital does not exceed 100,000 rupees, a fee of ….                            1,000           2,000


(2)     For registration of a company whose nominal share
capital exceeds 100,000 rupees, the additional fee to be
determined according to the amount of nominal share capital
as follows, namely—

(i)     For every 100,000 rupees of nominal share capital or                    500             1,000
part of 100,000 rupees, up to 10,000,000 rupees, a fees of ….



(ii)    For every 100,000 rupees of nominal share capital or                    400               750
part of 100,000 rupees, after the first 10,000,000 rupees, up to
5,000,000,000 a fee of …




                                               Page 390 of 401
       (iii)   For every 100,000 rupees of nominal share            150   250
               capital or part of 100,000 rupees after the first
               5,000,000,000 rupees, up to any amount of fee
               of …:

        Provided that a company which is wholly owned by the
Federal Government and has been notified by the Federal
Government in the official Gazette for exemption from paying
fee shall be charged a fee of Rs. 10,000:

        Provided further that the fee payable at the time of
registration of company shall not exceed forty million rupees in
case of electronic submission and fifty million rupees in case
of physical submission.

(3)     For registration of an increase in the share capital made
after the first registration of the company, an amount equal to
the difference between the amount which would have been
payable on registration of the company by reference to its
capital as increased and the amount which would have been
payable by reference to its capital immediately before the
increase, calculated at the rates given under sub-item (2):

        Provided that no such fee shall be applicable on
registration of an increase in authorized share capital of a
transferee company after merger consequent to sanction of
application for compromises, arrangements or reconstruction
for merger of companies by the Commission pursuant to
Section 279 to 282 or section 284 of the Act, to the extent of
aggregate of authorized capital of the transferor and transferee
companies.

        Explanation.–For the purpose of calculation of fee for
registration of an increase in the share capital of the company
which has shifted from physical mode of filing to electronic
mode of filing, the difference of fee shall be calculated on the
basis of the rates applicable for electronic submission on the
amount of capital before and after such increase:

        Provided further that where a company to be formed has
been notified by the Federal Government in the official Gazette
to be wholly owned by it, a fee of Rs.10,000/- shall be charged
irrespective of amount of share capital.




                                               Page 391 of 401
(4)     For conversion of any existing company not having
share capital into a company having a share capital, the same
fee as is charged for registration of a new company having
share capital.

(5)     For filing, registering or recording any document               5,000   7,500
notifying particulars relating to a mortgage or charge or pledge
or other interest created by a company, or any modification
therein or satisfaction thereof, a fee of….

(6)     For filing, registering or recording the particulars           10,000   15,000
relating to satisfaction of mortgage or charge or pledge
beyond the period prescribed under section 109 but not
exceeding one year, a fee of ….

(7)     For filing, registering or recording the particulars           15,000   22,500
relating to satisfaction of mortgage or charge or pledge beyond
one year of the period prescribed under section 109, a
fee of …
(8)     For filing, registering or recording any document other
than that at sub-items (5), (6) and (7) above, required to be filed,
registered or recorded under the Act or making a record of any
fact under the Act, a fee to be determined according to the
amount of nominal share capital as follows, namely-
       (i)      For company having a nominal share capital of
                up to. 100,000 rupees, a fee of ….                       250      500

       (ii)     For company having a nominal share capital of
                more than 100,000 rupees but not more than
                1,000,000 rupees, a fee of ….                            300      600
       (iii)    For company having a nominal share capital of
                more than 1,000,000 rupees but not more than
                10,000,000 rupees, a fee of ….                           400      800
       (iv)     For company having a nominal share capital of
                more than 10,000,000 rupees but not more than
                100,000,000 rupees, a fee of ….                          500     1000

       (v)      For company having a nominal share capital of
                more than 100,000,000 rupees, a fee of ….                600     1200
      II. By a company limited by guarantee and not
having a share capital, other than a company registered
under a licence granted under section 42.




                                                 Page 392 of 401
(1)       For registration of a new company, a fee of ….

(2)     For conversion of any existing company having a share
capital into a company limited by guarantee, the same fee as is
charged for registration a new company in terms of sub-item
(1).                                                                       20,000   30,000

(3)     Companies limited by guarantee and having share
capital shall be charged registration fee as mentioned at item I
above.
(4)     For filing, registering or recording any document
notifying particulars relating to a mortgage or charge or
pledge or other interest created by a company, or any                       5,000    7,500
modification therein or satisfaction thereof, a fee of ….

(5)     For filing, registering or recording the particulars
relating to satisfaction of mortgage or charge or pledge beyond
the period prescribed under section 109 but not exceeding one
year, a fee of…                                                            10,000   15,000

(6)     For filing, registering or recording the particulars               15,000   22,500
relating to satisfaction of mortgage or charge or pledge beyond
one year of the period prescribed under section 109, a fee of …

(7)     For filing, registering or recording any document other               600    1,200
than that at Sr. No. (4), (5) and (6) above, required to be filed,
registered or recorded under the Act or making a record of any
fact under the Act, a fee of…
III.  By a company registered under a licence granted
under section 42 and not having a share capital:-
(1)    For an application seeking grant of licence 1[* * *] a              15,000   25,000
non-refundable processing fee of …
(2)       For registration, a fee of …..                                   25,000   50,000
(3)     Companies limited by guarantee and having share
capital shall be charged registration fee as mentioned at item I
above.


      1
          Omitted by SRO 812(1) 2019, dated 11-07-2019




                                                         Page 393 of 401
(4)     For filing, registering or recording any document                       5,000    7,500
notifying particulars relating to a mortgage or charge or
pledge or other interest created by a company, or any
modification therein or satisfaction thereof, a fee of….
(5)     For filing, registering or recording the particulars                   10,000   15,000
relating to satisfaction of mortgage or charge or pledge
beyond the period prescribed under section 109 but not
exceeding one year, a fee of…
(6)     For filing, registering or recording the particulars                   15,000   22,500
relating to satisfaction of mortgage or charge or pledge
beyond one year of the period prescribed under section 109, a
fee of …
(7)      For filing, registering or recording any document                       250      500
other than that at Sr. No. (4), (5) and (6) above, required to be
filed, registered or recorded under the Act or making a record
of any fact under the Act, a fee of …..

IV.    By a company established outside Pakistan which
has a place of business in Pakistan:-
1                                                                        1
 [(1) For filing, registering or recording a document                        [10,000]   50,000
containing charter/statute/ memorandum and articles, etc. for
registration by a foreign company under the Act required or
authorized to be filed, registered or recorded a fee of …..]

(2)     For filing, registering or recording any document                      5,000     7,500
notifying particulars relating to a mortgage or charge or pledge
or other interest created by a company, or any modification
therein or satisfaction thereof, a fee of….

(3)     For filing, registering or recording the particulars                  10,000    15,000
relating to satisfaction of mortgage or charge or pledge
beyond the period prescribed under section 109 but not
exceeding one year, a fee of…

(4)     For filing, registering or recording the particulars                  15,000    22,500
relating to satisfaction of mortgage or charge or pledge beyond
one year of the period prescribed under section 109, a fee of …

(5)     For filing, registering or recording any document other                  600     1,200
than that at Sr. No. (2), (3) and (4) above, required to be filed
registered or recorded under the Act or making a record of
any fact under the Act, a fee of ….

      1
          Subs by SRO 812(1) 2019, dated 11-07-2019.




                                                       Page 394 of 401
V.     For inspection of documents and register kept by              200            500
the registrar in respect of a company, a fee of …..
VI.      (1) For a certified copy of the certificate of              100            200
incorporation or a certificate of commencement of business or
a certificate of registration of mortgage or charge or any other
certificate or licence issued under the Act, a fee of….
(2)    For a certified copy of the Memorandum and Articles           250            500
of Association of private limited company, a fee of .…

(3)    For a certified copy of the Memorandum and Articles           500          1,000
of Association of other than a private limited company, a fee
….
(4)    For a certified copy of any return excepting financial        100            200
statements, of private limited company, a fee of…

(5)    For a certified copy of any return excepting financial        200            300
statements, of other than a private limited company, a fee of
….
(6)     For a certified copy or extract of any other document,         20            20
financial statements or register, calculated at the rate, per page
or fractional part thereof required to be copied, subject
to a minimum fee of one hundred rupees, a fee of ….
       Provided that fee prescribed under this item shall not
be charged for certified copies of one set of incorporation
documents consisting of Certificate of Incorporation,
Memorandum and Articles of Association, and the relevant
forms, to be issued one time only at the time of registration of
company:

         Provided further that upon registration of any return
(i.e. statutory forms) one certified copy of the said return shall
be issued along with the acknowledgement of filing without
charging any copying fee.
VII.    System generated reports:-
(1)     For providing a system generated list of companies Rs. 2 per data Rs. 2 per data
registered with the Commission, a fee calculated at the rate per field    field
data field, subject to a minimum fee of five hundred rupees, a
fee of …
(2)     For a system generated company profile, per company,         200            200
a fee of …




                                                 Page 395 of 401
VIII. Annual fee payable by an inactive company under
section 424 of the Act, payable on 1st January each year
after obtaining the status of an inactive company-
(1)          not having any capital                                          1,000    2,000
(2)          having an authorized share capital of-

             (i)           up to Rs. 5.0 million, a fee of ….                1,000    2,000

             (ii)          more than Rs. 5.0 million and up to Rs. 10.0      2,000    4,000
                           million, a fee of ….

             (iii)         more than Rs. 10.0 million, a fee of ….           5,000   10,000
2[IX.                                                                                  2
             Omitted]                                                                      [*]


[X.     For seeking approval, sanction, permission,
exemption, direction or confirmation of the Commission
or the registrar in the following matters, as the case may
be, a non-refundable application processing fee in
respect of application for]

(1)   Reservation of any proposed name for registration of                    200      500
a company from the registrar under section 10, a fee of….:


                     1
                         * *      *        *          *    *         *


(2)     approval for change of name of a company under                       2,500    5,000
section 11 and 12, a fee of ….

(3)     alteration in memorandum of association under                        5,000   10,000
section 32, a fee of ….


        1
            Omitted by SRO 794(1) 2017, dated 10-08-2017
        2
            Omitted by SRO 812(1) 2019, dated 11-07-2019




                                                           Page 396 of 401
(4)   conversion of status of company from a public                               2,500         5,000
company to a private company under section 46, a fee of….


(5)    conversion of status of a company from a private                           2,500         5,000
company to a single member company under section 47, a
fee of ….

(6)     conversion of status from an unlimited company to a                       2,500         5,000
limited company under section 48, a fee of ….


(7)    conversion of status of a company limited by                               2,500         5,000
guarantee to a company limited by shares under section 49, a
fee of ….

(8)     issuance of shares at discount under section 82,                          5,000        10,000
a fee of ….

1                                                                            1             1
    [(9)       (i)       issuance of further share capital, otherwise            [25,000       [50,000
                         than right under section 83, a fee of ….
               (ii)      for approval of Employee Stock Option                   25,000        50,000
                         Scheme under section 83, a fee of ….
               (iii)     issuance of shares with different rights and            25,000]       50,000]
                         privileges, a fee of ….]




           1
               Subs by SRO 812(1) 2019, dated 11-07-2019




                                                           Page 397 of 401
(10) rectification in the particulars of mortgages or charges                                  5,000              7,500
or pledge or extension in time for filling the particulars of
mortgages or charges or pledge under section 108, a fee of ….

                                                                                          1                 1
1
 [(10A) approval to extend period under section 125, a fee                                    [5,000]           [10,000]
of….]
(11) extension in the prescribed period for holding annual
general meeting under section 132, a fee of …
          (i)        by a public company, a fee of ….                                         10,000             15,000

          (ii)       by a private company, a fee of ….                                         3,000              5,000
(12) direction for holding annual general meeting/ Extra
Ordinary General Meeting under section 147-
                                                                                              10,000             15,000
          (i)        by a public company, a fee of ….
          (ii)       by a private company, a fee of ....                                       3,000              5,000
2
 [(12A) Approval, confirmation, exemption or relaxation (as                          2                  2
applicable) from any of the requirements of Listed Companies                             [500,000]          [500,000]
(Code of Corporate Governance) Regulations, 2017, a fee
of….]
(13) fresh election of directors by 1[* *] company under                                       5,000             10,000
section 162, a fee of ….
(14) approval of loan to director under section 182, a fee                                     5,000             10,000
of….
1
 [(14A) approval to appoint sole purchase, sales agent under                              1
                                                                                              [5,000]       1
                                                                                                                [10,000]
section 196, a fee of ….]

(15) approval for preparation of accounts of more than one                                     2,500              5,000
year under section 223, a fee of ….
(16) seeking modification under section 225, in respect of                                     2,500              5,000
requirements of the relevant Schedule, a fee of ….
(17) exemption under section 225 from the applicability of                                     2,500              5,000
fourth schedule or fifth schedule, a fee of ….


      1
          Ins and Omitted by SRO 794 (1)/ 2017, dated 10/08/2017
      2
          Ins by SRO 228 (1) / 2018, dated 08/02/2018




                                                                   Page 398 of 401
(18)          exemption from the applicability of section 228, a fee of....                  2,500            5,000

1                                                                                        1               1
 [(18A) approval for extension of financial year under section 229, a fee                 [2,500]        [5,000]
of …..
                                                                                         1           1
(18B)        approval to withhold or defer payment under section 243, a fee of            [5,000]     [10,000]
…..]

(19)         appointment of auditor under section 246, a fee of….                            2,500            5,000

(20)    investigation into the affairs of a company under section 256, a                 10,000              20,000
fee of ….
(21)    approval of the Commission to refer the matter to the Mediation                      5,000           10,000
and Conciliation Panel under section 276, a fee of ….
2
 [(21A) approval for empanelment on Mediation and Conciliation Panel,
a fee of ….]                                                                     2
                                                                                  [50,000]           2
                                                                                                         [50,000]
                                                                                                          50,000]
(22)   sanctioning compromise or arrangement including reconstruction,                   50,000           100,000
amalgamation or division under section 279 to 282, a fee of ….


(23)         appointment of Administrator under section 291, a fee of ….                 10,000              20,000

(24)    obtaining the status of an inactive company under section 424, a                     5,000           10,000
fee of ….

(25)      for an application by an inactive company for obtaining the status                 5,000           10,000
of an active company under section 424, a fee of ….

(26)     restoration of name of a company, struck off by the registrar under                 5,000           10,000
section 425 ….

(27)     easy exit of a company by striking its name off the register                        5,000           10,000
under section 426, a fee of ....

3
 [(28)       registration as intermediary under section 455, a fee of…

             (i)       For individuals:
                                                                                     3                   3
                            Registration fee                                          [10,000                [10,000
                            Correction/update fee                                       2,000                  2,000
                            Filing fee                                                    500                    500

             (ii)      for firms/Companies/Limited Liability Partnerships:
                             registration processing fee                                 10,000              10,000
                             correction/update fee                                        5,000               5,000
                             filing fee]                                                   500]                500]


         1
             Ins. by SRO 794(1)/2017 dated 10/08/2017.
         2
             Ins by SRO 228(1)/2018, dated 08/02/2018
         3
             Subs by SRO 812(1) 2019, dated 11/07/2019




                                                             Page 399 of 401
(29) approval by the Commission sought by a real estate                       25,000           50,000
company under section 456, a fee of ….

(30)   registration as valuer under section 460, a fee of …                   10,000           20,000

(31)   licence as transfer agent under section 467, a fee of                  10,000           20,000
       ….
(32) issuance of duplicate of any certificate issued under                    1,000             2,000
the provisions of the Act or the rules or regulations framed
thereunder, a fee of ….
(33) for an application other than those specified in this item                 500             1,000
or an appeal submitted to the registrar or the Commission
under the Act by or on behalf of company, a fee of…
(34) for an application/appeal /complaint submitted to the
registrar or the Commission under the Act-
       (i)     by a member of the company or any other                          500               500
               person having dealing with the company, a fee
               of…

       (ii)    by any creditor of the company, a fee of…                        500             1,000

(35) for processing under Fast Track Registration Services
(FTRS), the FTRS fee shall be in addition to normal fee and
charged as given below:-

       (i)     for incorporation of a company…                    Equal to normal Equal to normal
                                                                  fee but subject to fee but subject to
                                                                  maximum of Rs. maximum of
                                                                  10,000             Rs. 20,000
       (ii)    for reservation of any proposed name for                         500              1000
               registration of company…

       (iii)   for seeking approval of change of name…                        2,500             5,000

       (iv)    for filing, registering or recording any                       5,000             7,500
               documents notifying particulars relating to a
               mortgage or charge or pledge or other interest
               created by a company, or any modification
               therein or satisfaction thereof …




                                              Page 400 of 401
Notes:

     (i)    The fee for submission of documents electronically shall be applicable only for the
            documents for which the facility of filing or lodging the documents electronically has
            been provided by the Commission.

     (ii)   Where no fee has been prescribed for submission of documents electronically, the
            documents can only be submitted in physical form.

                                      EIGHTH SCHEDULE
                                         (See section 477)

            DIRECT COMPLAINT TO THE COURT BY THE COMMISSION,
                     REGISTRAR, MEMBER OR CREDITOR
                       IN CASE OF CERTAIN OFFENCES

     1.     Sub-section (5) of section 73.

     2.     Section 95.

     3.     Section 177.

     4.     Sub-section (2) of section 243.

     5.     Sub-section (4) of section 351.

     6.     Section 404.

     7.     Sub-section (5) of section 418.

     8.     Proviso to sub-section (4) of section 460.

     9.     Sub-section (2) of section 497.

     10.    Sub-section (2) of section 499.




                                             ____________




                                              Page 401 of 401


Source: Pakistan Code, Ministry of Law and Justice (pakistancode.gov.pk). Text on this page is reproduced verbatim from the official PDF and is provided for reference only. For the authoritative version, always consult the source document or a current reported edition.

Need legal advice on Companies Act?

LexForm advocates handle matters under Companies Act across Pakistan, the UK, the EU, and the US.